Selected quad for the lemma: life_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
life_n church_n proposition_n singer_n 24 3 15.9655 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14350 The common places of the most famous and renowmed diuine Doctor Peter Martyr diuided into foure principall parts: with a large addition of manie theologicall and necessarie discourses, some neuer extant before. Translated and partlie gathered by Anthonie Marten, one of the sewers of hir Maiesties most honourable chamber.; Loci communes. English Vermigli, Pietro Martire, 1499-1562.; Simmler, Josias, 1530-1576.; Marten, Anthony, d. 1597. 1583 (1583) STC 24669; ESTC S117880 3,788,596 1,858

There are 74 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

signify_v sufficient_a of_o himself_o it_o be_v very_o much_o use_v of_o the_o old_a father_n when_o they_o obtain_v their_o wealth_n and_o riches_n of_o god_n but_o the_o name_n jehovah_n be_v then_o first_o utter_v when_o god_n begin_v to_o show_v forth_o miracle_n for_o thereby_o be_v show_v that_o it_o be_v in_o god_n to_o invert_v both_o the_o nature_n and_o be_v of_o thing_n at_o his_o pleasure_n proposition_n 3_o when_o the_o sorcerer_n of_o pharaoh_n say_v it_o be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n they_o yield_v not_o a_o true_a confession_n unto_o god_n proposition_n 4_o why_o pharaos_n sorcerer_n rather_o fail_v in_o the_o three_o sign_n than_o in_o the_o rest_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v a_o certain_a and_o sure_a reason_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o viij_o ix_o x._o and_o xi_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o they_o which_o give_v divine_a worship_n unto_o creature_n be_v not_o therefore_o excuse_v because_o they_o say_v that_o in_o they_o they_o worship_v god_n or_o the_o property_n of_o god_n proposition_n 2_o albeit_o that_o idolater_n do_v feign_v that_o they_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n in_o his_o creature_n they_o do_v not_o give_v the_o honour_n to_o he_o but_o to_o devil_n proposition_n 3_o we_o must_v well_o distinguish_v between_o the_o precept_n of_o god_n so_o that_o we_o may_v see_v which_o be_v general_a or_o which_o be_v for_o a_o time_n or_o command_v to_o some_o certain_a person_n proposition_n 4_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o affirm_v that_o god_n harden_v the_o hart_n of_o pharaoh_n &_o that_o pharaoh_n harden_v his_o own_o hart_n speak_v not_o contrary_a proposition_n 5_o that_o god_n harden_v the_o heart_n of_o some_o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o send_v his_o word_n unto_o they_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o itself_o proposition_n 6_o hail_n tempest_n disease_n and_o other_o like_a calamity_n although_o they_o be_v do_v sometime_o by_o natural_a cause_n yet_o be_v they_o punishment_n for_o sin_n and_o be_v ordain_v to_o warn_v and_o provoke_v man_n to_o repentance_n proposition_n 7_o the_o corruption_n and_o destruction_n of_o good_a thing_n can_v be_v assign_v the_o last_o end_n of_o those_o calamity_n since_o a_o end_n respect_v that_o which_o be_v good_a proposition_n 8_o albeit_o that_o faith_n be_v weak_a yet_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v since_o god_n do_v attribute_n much_o thereunto_o proposition_n 9_o by_o faith_n not_o only_o be_v we_o ourselves_o save_v but_o even_o the_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o we_o which_o likewise_o through_o our_o unbeléefe_n do_v perish_v proposition_n 10_o the_o excessive_a speech_n and_o figure_n use_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n make_v not_o therein_o lie_v discourse_n proposition_n 11_o albeit_o that_o in_o the_o old_a ceremony_n many_o thing_n be_v oftentimes_o commend_v as_o serve_v unto_o those_o time_n and_o that_o civil_a government_n yet_o therein_o be_v first_o set_v forth_o christ_n and_o the_o redemption_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v by_o he_o proposition_n 12_o to_o the_o end_n that_o sacrament_n may_v be_v honourable_o celebrate_v be_v require_v a_o meeting_n together_o not_o of_o one_o or_o two_o brethren_n but_o of_o mo_z at_o once_o proposition_n 13_o the_o holy_a and_o profane_a history_n although_o they_o have_v many_o case_n that_o be_v alike_o yet_o herein_o they_o differ_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a history_n thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereof_o in_o the_o profane_a history_n there_o be_v no_o express_a mention_n make_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o we_o acknowledge_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v there_o set_v forth_o to_o be_v the_o great_a work_n of_o god_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o fourteen_o and_o xv_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o to_o celebrate_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n in_o song_n be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o aught_o to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n proposition_n 2_o music_n have_v the_o power_n to_o stir_v up_o the_o affection_n of_o faithful_a man_n unto_o godliness_n proposition_n 3_o we_o ought_v not_o only_o to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n and_o sing_v his_o praise_n with_o man_n voice_n but_o also_o to_o add_v thereunto_o instrument_n of_o music_n proposition_n 4_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n song_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o else_o take_v out_o of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o people_n proposition_n 5_o we_o must_v also_o beware_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o sing_v those_o song_n be_v not_o lascivious_a proposition_n 6_o the_o stipend_n which_o be_v give_v to_o singer_n in_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o from_o the_o deacons_n proposition_n 7_o whereas_o a_o apt_a voice_n be_v require_v in_o the_o singer_n of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o the_o censure_n of_o their_o life_n be_v not_o neglect_v proposition_n 8_o such_o music_n must_v be_v have_v in_o the_o church_n as_o do_v not_o hinder_v the_o prayer_n and_o attention_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o further_o the_o same_o so_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a proposition_n 9_o dance_v in_o itself_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n unlawful_a proposition_n 10_o to_o use_n danse_v as_o they_o now_o be_v where_o man_n lead_v woman_n and_o that_o such_o as_o be_v not_o their_o own_o be_v far_o from_o christian_n godliness_n proposition_n 11_o the_o danse_v which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v of_o man_n by_o themselves_o and_o woman_n by_o themselves_o proposition_n 12_o action_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v just_a and_o unjust_a not_o only_o according_a to_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o accident_n which_o many_o time_n follow_v they_o probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n when_o they_o pass_v the_o red_a sea_n come_v not_o to_o the_o other_o shore_n which_o be_v right_o over_o against_o they_o proposition_n 2_o they_o hold_v their_o iornie_n by_o sea_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o semicircle_n proposition_n 3_o the_o sea_n shore_n of_o the_o desert_n elim_n from_o whence_o they_o depart_v be_v the_o self-same_a with_o that_o whereunto_o they_o arrive_v albeit_o that_o the_o place_n of_o the_o shore_n be_v not_o all_o one_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xvi_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o god_n forsake_v not_o those_o which_o obey_v his_o call_n but_o rather_o succore_v they_o according_a to_o their_o necessity_n proposition_n 2_o other_o good_a thing_n always_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v of_o god_n not_o as_o a_o principal_a reward_n but_o as_o necessary_a help_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o our_o call_n proposition_n 3_o when_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n our_o daily_a bread_n be_v require_v temporal_a good_a thing_n be_v desire_v temporal_a good_a thing_n be_v ask_v proposition_n 4_o albeit_o that_o god_n command_v that_o manna_n shall_v be_v daily_o gather_v yet_o be_v it_o not_o therefore_o forbid_v to_o lay_v up_o in_o barn_n or_o storehouse_n the_o fruit_n which_o come_v yearly_a for_o the_o necessary_a use_n of_o this_o life_n so_o that_o we_o avoid_v covetous_a carefulness_n the_o hindrance_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o infidelity_n proposition_n 5_o they_o fall_v into_o the_o carefulness_n forbid_v we_o of_o to_o morrow_n which_o leave_v their_o vocation_n or_o do_v not_o diligent_o execute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v get_v themselves_o substance_n or_o else_o to_o obtain_v a_o more_o delicate_a estate_n proposition_n 6_o whereas_o manna_n be_v preserve_v till_o the_o morrow_n become_v corrupt_v and_o be_v full_a of_o worm_n it_o be_v do_v by_o miracle_n proposition_n 7_o it_o be_v a_o weak_a argument_n of_o some_o of_o the_o papist_n that_o therefore_o the_o sacrament_n must_v be_v keep_v in_o church_n because_o it_o be_v command_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o manna_n shall_v be_v keep_v for_o a_o perpetual_a monument_n proposition_n 8_o the_o miracle_n of_o give_v manna_n by_o reason_n that_o it_o comprehend_v many_o other_o miracle_n it_o also_o endure_v long_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n proposition_n 9_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a opinion_n to_o affirm_v that_o by_o the_o merit_n and_o force_v of_o certain_a word_n though_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n man_n do_v obtain_v some_o certain_a benefit_n of_o god_n proposition_n 10_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n be_v the_o sacrament_n as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o manna_n with_o the_o old_a father_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n proposition_n 11_o whereas_o christ_n say_v in_o john_n that_o they_o which_o eat_v his_o flesh_n shall_v not_o die_v but_o shall_v have_v life_n he_o understand_v the_o same_o of_o true_a and_o spiritual_a eat_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destitute_a of_o fruit_n proposition_n
cause_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o be_v reveal_v in_o they_o proposition_n 4_o the_o sum_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n which_o part_n be_v indifferent_o contain_v as_o well_o in_o the_o new_a as_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n proposition_n 5_o the_o five_o book_n of_o genesis_n have_v a_o preface_n agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v capable_a both_o of_o the_o one_o part_n and_o the_o other_o proposition_n 6_o they_o which_o perceive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n teach_v here_o by_o the_o creation_n do_v obtain_v the_o same_o by_o faith_n proposition_n 7_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o world_n be_v so_o make_v by_o god_n that_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v avouch_v no_o alteration_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o heaven_n and_o earth_n which_o be_v write_v to_o have_v be_v first_o make_v do_v express_v the_o matter_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v forth_o both_o of_o the_o body_n above_o and_o beneath_o proposition_n 2_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v carry_v upon_o the_o water_n may_v very_o probable_o be_v take_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o for_o the_o wind_n proposition_n 3_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o bring_n forth_o of_o thing_n be_v a_o manifestation_n of_o his_o will_n proposition_n 4_o whereas_o god_n may_v many_o way_n have_v make_v the_o world_n he_o only_o approve_v this_o way_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o add_v and_o god_n see_v that_o it_o be_v good_a proposition_n 5_o the_o evening_n and_o morning_n be_v make_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o gather_v together_o &_o spread_v forth_o of_o the_o light_n before_o the_o bring_v forth_o of_o the_o sun_n proposition_n 6_o the_o water_n above_o the_o firmament_n be_v in_o the_o middle_a region_n of_o the_o air_n a_o disputation_n of_o the_o article_n of_o creation_n proposition_n 1_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o creation_n of_o thing_n we_o bring_v not_o forth_o one_o thing_n out_o of_o another_o after_o aristotle_n manner_n but_o we_o affirm_v all_o nature_n as_o well_o bodily_a as_o without_o body_n to_o be_v create_v of_o nothing_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n proposition_n 2_o for_o god_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o will_v make_v manifest_a both_o his_o power_n and_o his_o mercy_n create_v of_o nothing_o a_o infinite_a sort_n of_o man_n in_o the_o whole_a nature_n of_o thing_n proposition_n 3_o and_o thus_o must_v this_o creation_n be_v understand_v not_o that_o thing_n be_v here_o create_v in_o such_o wise_a as_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o be_v without_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n but_o god_n continual_o govern_v and_o direct_v they_o as_o paul_n in_o the_o act_n say_v in_o he_o we_o be_v we_o live_v and_o have_v our_o move_n proposition_n 4_o further_n the_o manner_n of_o the_o creation_n be_v this_o first_o god_n make_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o proposition_n 5_o beside_o this_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o certain_a mind_n which_o shall_v understand_v this_o infinite_a power_n and_o wisdom_n of_o this_o creation_n he_o make_v man_n and_o give_v he_o rule_v over_o his_o creature_n proposition_n 6_o and_o because_o he_o have_v make_v he_o after_o his_o own_o image_n he_o command_v also_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v acknowledge_v and_o magnify_v of_o he_o above_o his_o work_n proposition_n 7_o and_o this_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n for_o man_n to_o do_v when_o he_o have_v the_o whole_a power_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n proposition_n 8_o for_o the_o image_n of_o god_n according_a whereunto_o god_n have_v make_v man_n be_v the_o mind_n itself_o in_o man_n in_o the_o which_o mind_n shine_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o will_n true_a obedience_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o albeit_o that_o name_n be_v many_o time_n give_v by_o man_n yet_o this_o also_o must_v be_v refer_v unto_o god_n see_v the_o end_n &_o condition_n from_o whence_o thing_n be_v name_v be_v of_o god_n and_o by_o his_o procurement_n he_o that_o name_v be_v rather_o move_v in_o respect_n of_o one_o of_o those_o thing_n than_o in_o respect_n of_o another_o proposition_n 2_o the_o keep_v back_o of_o water_n from_o drown_v the_o earth_n we_o attribute_v not_o to_o the_o star_n but_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o also_o the_o power_n whereby_o plant_n and_o herb_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n proposition_n 3_o the_o great_a light_n be_v set_v for_o sign_n to_o gather_v thereby_o the_o fair_a and_o stormy_a weather_n to_o come_v and_o the_o other_o disposition_n of_o the_o air_n and_o they_o be_v also_o sign_n whereby_o the_o wrath_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v perceive_v before_o hand_n proposition_n 4_o unto_o the_o sign_n of_o heaven_n must_v not_o be_v attribute_v a_o power_n over_o the_o reasonable_a part_n of_o our_o mind_n neither_o yet_o a_o free_a power_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v proposition_n 5_o albeit_o it_o be_v say_v let_v the_o water_n or_o earth_n bring_v forth_o this_o or_o that_o yet_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n must_v be_v attribute_v to_o god_n alone_o proposition_n 6_o so_o must_v we_o occupy_v ourselves_o in_o the_o book_n of_o philosophy_n and_o in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o natural_a thing_n as_o we_o refer_v all_o the_o property_n instrument_n action_n and_o substance_n of_o they_o unto_o god_n the_o author_n proposition_n 7_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n as_o touch_v the_o image_n and_o similitude_n of_o god_n do_v most_o full_o agree_v unto_o christ_n and_o by_o he_o be_v restore_v unto_o us._n proposition_n 8_o in_o that_o that_o man_n be_v create_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v set_v over_o creature_n we_o gather_v a_o rule_n what_o manner_n of_o election_n we_o ought_v to_o make_v either_o of_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o magistrate_n proposition_n 9_o the_o perfection_n of_o life_n must_v not_o be_v weigh_v by_o abstinence_n from_o eat_v of_o flesh_n proposition_n 10_o the_o true_a sabbath_n be_v the_o cease_n from_o work_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o our_o nature_n corrupt_v but_o not_o from_o those_o whereunto_o god_n lead_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o admonition_n proposition_n 11_o all_o the_o life_n of_o a_o christian_n man_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o sabbath_n after_o the_o manner_n before_o say_v probable_a proposition_n 1_o a_o man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v create_v unto_o the_o image_n and_o similitude_n of_o god_n because_o since_o he_o be_v make_v of_o a_o reasonable_a nature_n and_o endue_v with_o all_o virtue_n whereby_o he_o shall_v represent_v god_n he_o have_v by_o god_n his_o dominion_n over_o creature_n proposition_n 2_o god_n have_v oftentimes_o restore_v by_o faith_n unto_o the_o godly_a that_o power_n over_o creature_n which_o be_v give_v at_o the_o beginning_n proposition_n 3_o our_o body_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v the_o instrument_n wherewith_o we_o through_o our_o action_n do_v express_v the_o property_n of_o god_n proposition_n 4_o by_o this_o reason_n that_o a_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o image_n and_o similitude_n of_o god_n be_v declare_v the_o nature_n of_o true_a felicity_n of_o virtue_n and_o of_o all_o law_n and_o who_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o have_v for_o her_o citizen_n proposition_n 5_o when_o god_n say_v be_v you_o fruitful_a and_o multiply_v he_o command_v matrimony_n by_o which_o precept_n all_o man_n be_v bind_v which_o can_v do_v that_o duty_n or_o by_o a_o special_a instinct_n of_o god_n be_v not_o move_v that_o in_o single_a life_n they_o shall_v be_v more_o ready_a to_o serve_v the_o gospel_n proposition_n 6_o the_o eat_n of_o flesh_n be_v not_o dispense_v with_o before_o the_o flood_n either_o because_o man_n be_v then_o strong_a or_o because_o the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o better_a fruit_n than_o now_o it_o do_v or_o else_o that_o man_n may_v more_o enure_v themselves_o to_o humanity_n proposition_n 7_o whereas_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v take_v many_o argument_n and_o similitude_n whereby_o we_o be_v persuade_v to_o live_v well_o there_o be_v a_o form_n give_v we_o from_o plant_n light_n &_o live_a creature_n which_o form_n we_o may_v use_v in_o other_o thing_n when_o they_o happen_v proposition_n take_v out_o of_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o man_n soul_n be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n neither_o have_v it_o the_o same_o nature_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o other_o brute_n beast_n have_v proposition_n 2_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v not_o
all_o create_v at_o the_o beginning_n but_o be_v daily_o create_v of_o god_n to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o body_n proposition_n 3_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o paradise_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v so_o allegoricallie_o as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o history_n shall_v not_o be_v retain_v but_o the_o allegory_n may_v profitable_o he_o join_v unto_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v proposition_n 4_o whether_o that_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n be_v yet_o extant_a can_v be_v define_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n proposition_n 5_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v by_o desert_n of_o action_n command_v or_o forbid_v therein_o but_o for_o that_o in_o it_o be_v contain_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o do_v of_o thing_n which_o always_o must_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o counsel_n of_o man_n proposition_n 6_o both_o kind_n of_o death_n as_o well_o of_o the_o body_n as_o of_o the_o soul_n be_v set_v before_o adam_n if_o he_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n proposition_n 7_o the_o first_o man_n be_v create_v mortal_a albeit_o it_o be_v in_o he_o not_o to_o die_v proposition_n 8_o it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v alone_o because_o it_o be_v not_o pleasant_a nor_o honest_a nor_o profitable_a proposition_n 9_o three_o exercise_n be_v set_v before_o man_n at_o his_o creation_n namely_o to_o obey_v god_n to_o behold_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n create_v and_o to_o exercise_v husbandry_n proposition_n 10_o the_o sleep_n of_o adam_n in_o the_o bring_n forth_o of_o the_o woman_n signify_v unto_o we_o that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n purchase_v his_o church_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o breathe_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o first_o man_n be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n be_v a_o token_n show_v we_o that_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n but_o outward_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n proposition_n 2_o the_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n be_v plant_v in_o the_o region_n of_o eden_n as_o the_o name_n declare_v not_o far_o from_o assyria_n mesopotamia_n and_o arabia_n proposition_n 3_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n have_v fruit_n which_o prolong_v life_n to_o they_o that_o shall_v eat_v of_o it_o allegoricallie_o signify_v christ_n proposition_n 4_o the_o tree_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a be_v not_o only_o so_o call_v of_o that_o which_o follow_v but_o because_o of_o the_o same_o there_o be_v a_o law_n give_v who_o property_n be_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a proposition_n 5_o by_o forbid_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o rule_v ourselves_o by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n or_o else_o to_o determine_v by_o man_n judgement_n what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o be_v evil_a which_o nevertheless_o be_v requisite_a that_o we_o decree_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o word_n proposition_n 6_o see_v the_o law_n be_v give_v to_o adam_n the_o woman_n be_v not_o yet_o create_v it_o show_v that_o woman_n shall_v be_v instruct_v by_o man_n as_o touch_v the_o law_n and_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n proposition_n 7_o the_o woman_n be_v make_v of_o the_o rib_n of_o man_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v founde_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o christ_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o second_o and_o three_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o child_n must_v not_o for_o their_o wife_n sake_n so_o leave_v their_o parent_n as_o not_o to_o succour_v or_o reverence_v they_o albeit_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o live_v near_o to_o their_o wife_n than_o to_o their_o parent_n proposition_n 2_o whereas_o the_o husband_n and_o wife_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o flesh_n matrimony_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v inseparable_a so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v be_v one_o flesh_n which_o be_v take_v away_o by_o adultery_n and_o for_o want_v of_o power_n to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o marriage_n one_o towards_o another_o proposition_n 3_o matrimony_n be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v a_o mystery_n because_o it_o represent_v unto_o we_o the_o most_o streict_n conjunction_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o church_n proposition_n 4_o the_o church_n immediate_o from_o her_o beginning_n have_v adam_n for_o her_o governor_n not_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v with_o the_o selfsame_o word_n both_o as_o touch_v christ_n and_o as_o touch_v matrimony_n proposition_n 5_o temptation_n be_v therefore_o permit_v by_o god_n because_o they_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o church_n proposition_n 6_o the_o devil_n promise_v unto_o the_o woman_n those_o thing_n which_o she_o have_v already_o to_o wit_n the_o open_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o likeness_n to_o god_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o whereas_o god_n bring_v eve_n frame_v unto_o adam_n we_o be_v thereby_o teach_v that_o those_o marriage_n be_v not_o well_o knit_v where_o god_n join_v not_o the_o party_n together_o proposition_n 2_o since_o that_o man_n soul_n be_v a_o spiritual_a substance_n and_o be_v immortal_a we_o must_v not_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v derive_v unto_o the_o child_n by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o parent_n proposition_n 3_o the_o serpent_n be_v the_o fit_a instrument_n in_o temptation_n to_o express_v the_o ill_a practice_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o craftiness_n against_o man_n proposition_n 4_o the_o wicked_a will_n of_o the_o tempter_n declare_v the_o most_o skilful_a wisdom_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o know_v how_o to_o use_v well_o even_o most_o wicked_a thing_n proposition_n 5_o this_o do_v the_o devil_n by_o his_o first_o temptation_n chéeflie_o endeavour_n that_o god_n word_n shall_v not_o be_v beléeve_v as_o it_o be_v requisite_a proposition_n 6_o the_o original_n of_o eve_n fall_n be_v that_o set_v aside_o the_o earnest_a cogitation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n she_o begin_v to_o weigh_v in_o her_o mind_n the_o commodity_n of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n which_o the_o devil_n set_v before_o she_o together_o with_o the_o beauty_n and_o sweetness_n thereof_o proposition_n 7_o the_o shame_n and_o the_o devise_n of_o the_o cover_n be_v not_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o devil_n but_o to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o a_o bridle_n whereby_o the_o evil_a now_o bring_v in_o might_n the_o less_o spread_v itself_o abroad_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o shame_n and_o the_o shun_v of_o god_n sight_n be_v property_n which_o follow_v sin_n proposition_n 2_o the_o enmity_n which_o god_n put_v between_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o woman_n belong_v unto_o all_o godly_a man_n proposition_n 3_o albeit_o the_o power_n of_o tread_v down_o the_o devil_n be_v proper_a unto_o christ_n yet_o do_v he_o communicate_v the_o same_o with_o the_o faithful_a proposition_n 4_o the_o curse_n which_o god_n lay_v upon_o the_o first_o man_n be_v not_o only_o punishment_n but_o also_o they_o show_v man_n their_o duty_n and_o bring_v remedy_n against_o temptation_n and_o sin_n proposition_n 5_o if_o the_o creature_n through_o man_n transgression_n fall_v into_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o they_o be_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o upon_o the_o restitution_n of_o he_o those_o also_o shall_v be_v restore_v proposition_n 6_o since_o god_n remoove_v idleness_n from_o man_n they_o which_o altogether_o shun_v labour_n agree_v not_o with_o his_o will_n proposition_n 7_o christ_n take_v not_o away_o by_o his_o first_o come_n the_o punishment_n of_o these_o curse_n but_o mitigate_v they_o howbeit_o at_o his_o second_o come_v he_o will_v altogether_o take_v they_o away_o proposition_n 8_o see_v garment_n be_v invent_v for_o the_o profit_n and_o honesty_n of_o this_o present_a life_n those_o garment_n be_v justly_o find_v fault_n withal_o which_o have_v any_o thing_n against_o these_o two_o property_n proposition_n 9_o sacrifice_n be_v sign_n whereby_o we_o confess_v the_o excellency_n of_o god_n proposition_n 10_o any_o man_n be_v accept_v of_o god_n before_o his_o work_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o proposition_n 11_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n either_o by_o exhort_v or_o command_v show_v shall_v be_v do_v those_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o be_v do_v of_o we_o unless_o we_o be_v holpen_v by_o his_o grace_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o say_v that_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o first_o man_n be_v open_v after_o sin_n because_o there_o break_v out_o a_o new_a feel_v of_o new_a punishment_n proposition_n 2_o by_o the_o example_n of_o god_n who_o so_o preciselie_o inquire_v after_o sin_n judge_n be_v admonish_v that_o they_o condemn_v not_o man_n before_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o their_o cause_n examine_v proposition_n 3_o in_o the_o curse_v of_o the_o serpent_n those_o punishment_n of_o
move_v thereunto_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n sin_n have_v there_o no_o place_n proposition_n 9_o by_o prosperity_n and_o adversity_n as_o touch_v outward_a thing_n can_v certeinelie_o be_v judge_v what_o man_n be_v most_o belove_a of_o god_n proposition_n 10_o albeit_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n cause_n that_o those_o thing_n may_v profit_v who_o he_o will_v since_o that_o depend_v of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o whereas_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v diligent_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o certain_a action_n of_o the_o father_n while_o they_o be_v child_n they_o declare_v unto_o we_o that_o god_n have_v be_v often_o accustom_v by_o such_o manner_n of_o sign_n to_o show_v to_o man_n those_o thing_n which_o shall_v afterward_o happen_v to_o they_o of_o ripe_a year_n proposition_n 2_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n by_o a_o allegorical_a signification_n do_v oftentimes_o show_v unto_o we_o figure_n of_o thing_n belong_v to_o edification_n proposition_n 3_o it_o be_v read_v of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o sometime_o about_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n they_o solemn_o bless_v their_o child_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o those_o excellent_a prophecy_n and_o sentence_n which_o they_o then_o utter_v in_o their_o blessing_n may_v the_o more_o attentivelie_o be_v perceive_v &_o preserve_v proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xxvij_o and_o xxviij_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o whereas_o everlasting_a felicity_n to_o be_v obtain_v by_o christ_n be_v not_o perceive_v by_o man_n sense_n or_o reason_n it_o be_v fit_o describe_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o name_n of_o earthly_a good_a thing_n proposition_n 2_o unto_o the_o faithful_a although_o they_o live_v now_o under_o the_o cross_n and_o in_o persecution_n be_v attribute_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n great_a abundance_n of_o temporal_a good_a wherein_o be_v express_v the_o true_a felicity_n which_o they_o present_o possess_v already_o begoone_o though_o not_o perfect_a and_o absolute_a proposition_n 3_o weep_v and_o sorrow_n after_o sin_n commit_v be_v unprofitable_a if_o it_o procee_v not_o from_o true_a repentance_n proposition_n 4_o god_n direct_v man_n work_n though_o unwares_o to_o they_o unto_o the_o end_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v and_o sometime_o show_v they_o his_o counsel_n and_o purpose_n proposition_n 5_o he_o that_o according_a to_o his_o vocation_n provide_v that_o a_o unworthy_a man_n be_v not_o promote_v or_o prefer_v before_o other_o must_v be_v suppose_v to_o deal_v towards_o he_o not_o of_o hatred_n but_o of_o love_n forsomuch_o as_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o indevour_v lest_o he_o be_v so_o prefer_v shall_v while_o he_o behave_v himself_o amiss_o incur_v a_o more_o gréevous_a damnation_n proposition_n 6_o it_o be_v more_o expedient_a for_o they_o which_o be_v uncircumspect_a and_o no_o good_a man_n rather_o to_o serve_v than_o to_o bear_v rule_n therefore_o we_o ought_v so_o long_o as_o they_o so_o behave_v themselves_o to_o wish_v that_o condition_n proposition_n 7_o albeit_o it_o be_v forbid_v woman_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o for_o that_o they_o be_v sometime_o wise_a and_o lighten_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n their_o counsel_n must_v private_o be_v hear_v and_o must_v not_o by_o and_o by_o be_v contemn_v because_o they_o procee_v from_o woman_n proposition_n 8_o to_o avoid_v and_o fly_v from_o persecution_n if_o it_o be_v do_v in_o place_n and_o time_n be_v commendable_a proposition_n 9_o albeit_o for_o give_v sentence_n of_o any_o man_n honesty_n &_o just_a life_n we_o have_v no_o token_n more_o certain_a than_o by_o his_o work_n yet_o hereby_o be_v not_o gather_v a_o necessary_a argument_n to_o induce_v the_o same_o proposition_n 10_o it_o be_v first_o of_o all_o attribute_v unto_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o thereby_o to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o every_o of_o the_o faithful_a proposition_n 11_o to_o set_v up_o any_o show_n public_o in_o remembrance_n of_o god_n benefit_n be_v neither_o superstitious_a nor_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n proposition_n 12_o those_o prayer_n be_v most_o effectual_a whereby_o we_o desire_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v promise_v we_o of_o god_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o both_o may_v well_o be_v as_o well_o that_o isaac_n know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n concern_v his_o child_n before_o he_o bless_v they_o as_o also_o that_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o same_o proposition_n 2_o since_o there_o be_v but_o one_o christ_n the_o same_o blessing_n can_v not_o be_v give_v to_o esau_n that_o be_v give_v to_o jacob_n proposition_n 3_o rebecca_n may_v be_v excuse_v in_o prefer_v of_o the_o young_a son_n before_o the_o elder_n as_o well_o because_o of_o the_o oracle_n which_o she_o have_v hear_v of_o they_o as_o for_o that_o she_o have_v a_o care_n that_o the_o better_a man_n may_v be_v set_v over_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o the_o less_o worthy_a be_v remoove_v proposition_n 4_o the_o custom_n as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o prey_n and_o prophesy_v at_o the_o make_n of_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n seem_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o old_a father_n who_o in_o blessing_n of_o their_o child_n both_o desire_v of_o god_n good_a thing_n for_o they_o and_o foreshow_v of_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xxviij_o and_o xxix_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n call_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n do_v not_o only_o foresee_v thing_n to_o come_v but_o also_o appoint_v proper_a end_n unto_o thing_n create_v and_o direct_v they_o thereunto_o proposition_n 2_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o base_a among_o the_o creature_n that_o escape_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n proposition_n 3_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v by_o chance_n or_o fortune_n this_o must_v be_v refer_v not_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o to_o our_o understanding_n proposition_n 4_o a_o vow_n stand_v in_o those_o kind_n of_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n proposition_n 5_o it_o be_v ingraff_v in_o man_n by_o nature_n to_o make_v vow_n unto_o god_n if_o at_o any_o time_n they_o labour_v earnest_o to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n of_o he_o proposition_n 6_o a_o vow_n be_v a_o holy_a promise_n whereby_o we_o do_v bind_v ourselves_o to_o offer_v something_o unto_o the_o live_a god_n proposition_n 7_o for_o to_o vow_n well_o be_v necessary_a the_o knowledge_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n or_o to_o be_v desire_v of_o he_o that_o in_o vow_v we_o offer_v not_o except_o that_o which_o we_o know_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n neither_o to_o desire_v that_o which_o may_v be_v repugnant_a to_o his_o will_n proposition_n 8_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v that_o please_v god_n we_o must_v very_o diligent_o examine_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o before_o the_o law_n be_v give_v the_o father_n may_v examine_v those_o thing_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o nature_n light_n proposition_n 9_o vow_n of_o sole_a life_n and_o those_o whereby_o man_n bound_v themselves_o to_o go_v on_o pilgrimage_n as_o it_o be_v in_o popery_n be_v to_o be_v account_v ungodlie_a proposition_n 10_o when_o jacob_n vow_v the_o ten_o and_o that_o he_o will_v appoint_v a_o certain_a place_n for_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n he_o offer_v those_o thing_n unto_o god_n which_o of_o himself_o he_o know_v to_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o proposition_n 11_o albeit_o that_o even_o without_o a_o vow_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o know_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n yet_o to_o vow_v something_o be_v not_o superfluous_a proposition_n 12_o the_o bond_n of_o a_o vow_n be_v not_o against_o true_a liberty_n proposition_n 13_o where_o we_o be_v uncerteine_a of_o any_o thing_n whether_o it_o please_v god_n or_o that_o we_o see_v thereby_o that_o danger_n hang_v over_o we_o we_o must_v forbear_v from_o vow_v whereby_o we_o shall_v bind_v ourselves_o to_o offer_v it_o unto_o god_n proposition_n 14_o they_o that_o decree_n to_o vow_v some_o thing_n must_v above_o all_o other_o thing_n take_v heed_n that_o themselves_o may_v please_v god_n proposition_n 15_o as_o in_o matrimony_n god_n forbid_v many_o degree_n of_o kindred_n so_o will_v he_o have_v it_o between_o they_o which_o be_v not_o very_o far_o off_o in_o kindred_n to_o the_o intent_n their_o love_n may_v be_v the_o more_o and_o their_o agreement_n the_o great_a proposition_n 16_o since_o in_o matrimony_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o person_n be_v require_v if_o one_o
for_o a_o sin_n to_o the_o intent_n a_o man_n may_v follow_v his_o call_n be_v not_o to_o be_v disallow_v and_o so_o likewise_o if_o it_o be_v do_v for_o avoid_v of_o persecution_n proposition_n 2_o that_o departure_n be_v condemn_v which_o proceed_v of_o the_o hatred_n of_o man_n or_o for_o a_o desire_n of_o commodity_n and_o which_o be_v do_v for_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n proposition_n 3_o god_n not_o only_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v give_v he_o reverence_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v also_o declare_v the_o same_o by_o outward_a token_n proposition_n 4_o since_o god_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v not_o perceive_v by_o the_o sense_n yet_o do_v he_o apply_v himself_o to_o man_n capacity_n and_o by_o his_o sensible_a word_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v know_v of_o man_n in_o corporal_a form_n and_o sacrament_n proposition_n 5_o although_o it_o shall_v be_v certain_a unto_o every_o man_n that_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o unprofitable_a to_o consider_v of_o he_o under_o figure_n and_o form_n deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n proposition_n 6_o since_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n which_o be_v dead_a thereof_o be_v infer_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a proposition_n 7_o whereas_o the_o jew_n will_v not_o once_o name_v that_o name_n of_o god_n jehovah_n which_o be_v write_v with_o four_o letter_n it_o be_v superstitious_a proposition_n 8_o the_o power_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v only_o by_o the_o pronounce_v or_o rehearse_v thereof_o proposition_n 9_o god_n in_o command_v the_o israelit_n that_o they_o shall_v require_v of_o the_o egyptian_n gold_n silver_n garment_n and_o vessel_n command_v they_o not_o to_o steal_v albeit_o that_o god_n otherwhile_o seem_v to_o command_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o second_o table_n yet_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o command_v not_o against_o the_o same_o proposition_n 10_o there_o may_v be_v a_o good_a use_n of_o gold_n silver_n precious_a stone_n silk_n and_o such_o like_a probable_a proposition_n 1_o when_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o oftentimes_o it_o happen_v the_o name_n of_o angel_n be_v join_v with_o the_o name_n of_o god_n there_o be_v mean_v the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o son_n proposition_n 2_o the_o name_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o show_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o consider_v he_o to_o be_v such_o a_o god_n as_o will_v not_o suffer_v his_o promise_n to_o be_v in_o vain_a proposition_n 3_o in_o this_o name_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o be_v betoken_v the_o eternity_n of_o his_o nature_n proposition_n 4_o this_o name_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o show_v that_o god_n be_v diverselie_o to_o be_v name_v according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o his_o action_n proposition_n 5_o this_o name_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o name_n jehovah_n proposition_n 6_o the_o hebrews_n require_v not_o the_o egyptian_n to_o lend_v they_o gold_n silver_n garment_n &c_n &c_n but_o require_v to_o have_v they_o give_v free_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o miracle_n be_v testimony_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o such_o as_o without_o regard_n they_o shall_v be_v beléeve_v proposition_n 2_o god_n give_v not_o to_o every_o one_o of_o his_o minister_n all_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v the_o more_o unite_a one_o to_o a_o other_o proposition_n 3_o domestical_a and_o civil_a duty_n be_v allow_v by_o god_n and_o must_v not_o be_v leave_v off_o under_o pretence_n of_o the_o call_n of_o god_n so_o they_o be_v not_o repugnant_a thereunto_o proposition_n 4_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o he_o that_o enter_v the_o holy_a ministry_n to_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n proposition_n 5_o the_o call_n of_o god_n be_v a_o declaration_n of_o his_o will_n as_o touch_v the_o kind_n of_o life_n or_o peculiar_a function_n whereunto_o we_o be_v appoint_v proposition_n 6_o sometime_o the_o calling_n be_v by_o god_n himself_o without_o any_o mean_n and_o sometime_o by_o those_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o ordinary_a power_n proposition_n 7_o some_o be_v call_v otherwhile_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a power_n proposition_n 8_o sometime_o nature_n be_v the_o mean_a or_o instrument_n of_o the_o call_n of_o god_n proposition_n 9_o in_o every_o vocation_n be_v require_v that_o he_o which_o be_v call_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o call_v he_o proposition_n 10_o to_o execute_v well_o the_o call_n of_o god_n it_o behoove_v that_o he_o which_o be_v call_v be_v certain_a thereof_o proposition_n 11_o the_o calling_n of_o god_n have_v promise_n and_o gift_n join_v with_o they_o proposition_n 12_o it_o be_v against_o the_o call_n of_o god_n as_o well_o if_o a_o man_n arrogantlie_o obtrude_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o obstinate_o resist_v it_o proposition_n 13_o many_o thing_n of_o themselves_o seem_v to_o have_v but_o small_a decency_n which_o nevertheless_o must_v be_v do_v if_o respect_n be_v have_v unto_o the_o call_n proposition_n 14_o they_o which_o neglect_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n do_v lay_v open_v themselves_o unto_o most_o gréevous_a danger_n even_o of_o the_o body_n proposition_n 15_o when_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o god_n be_v please_v with_o sacrifice_n that_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v for_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o work_n but_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n join_v therewithal_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o v._o vi_fw-la seven_o and_o viij_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o two_o kind_n there_o be_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n one_o be_v common_a and_o be_v call_v natural_a which_o also_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o ungodlie_a a_o other_o be_v full_a and_o effectual_a whereupon_o follow_v a_o obedience_n of_o god_n law_n and_o final_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o be_v only_o of_o the_o elect_a proposition_n 2_o in_o adversity_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o man_n and_o the_o devil_n may_v be_v the_o minister_n and_o instrument_n but_o that_o they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n as_o the_o chief_a cause_n for_o the_o which_o we_o must_v fly_v unto_o he_o by_o prayer_n proposition_n 3_o it_o be_v sin_n no_o doubt_n to_o be_v move_v against_o god_n for_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o oppression_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o yet_o to_o express_v such_o a_o affection_n before_o god_n as_o the_o saint_n do_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v both_o profitable_a and_o just_a proposition_n 4_o although_o both_o the_o godly_a and_o ungodlie_a be_v move_v for_o the_o say_a cause_n against_o the_o judgment_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v there_o a_o difference_n between_o they_o as_o well_o such_o as_o be_v between_o the_o incontinent_a and_o intemperate_a as_o also_o because_o the_o one_o sort_n repent_v and_o the_o other_o obstinate_o persist_v in_o their_o sin_n proposition_n 5_o a_o covenant_n be_v a_o agreement_n of_o certain_a among_o themselves_o whereby_o every_o of_o they_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v something_o &_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o himself_o require_v something_o of_o other_o proposition_n 6_o miracle_n by_o themselves_o make_v no_o firm_a argument_n of_o doctrine_n unless_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n proposition_n 7_o god_n will_v otherwhile_o have_v miracle_n do_v by_o the_o adversary_n of_o religion_n that_o the_o godly_a by_o such_o kind_n of_o temptation_n may_v be_v try_v and_o that_o the_o ungodlie_a be_v the_o more_o blind_v thereby_o may_v be_v punish_v for_o their_o ungodliness_n proposition_n 8_o the_o miracle_n which_o the_o sorcerer_n of_o pharaoh_n show_v be_v not_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a cause_n of_o his_o incredulity_n proposition_n 9_o repentance_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n the_o first_o be_v perfect_a and_o whole_a which_o do_v please_v god_n another_o be_v temporal_a upon_o which_o god_n bestow_v some_o thing_n the_o three_o be_v hypocritical_a the_o which_o god_n do_v detest_v probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o name_n shadai_n if_o it_o signify_v omnipotent_a it_o ought_v chéeflie_o to_o be_v respect_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v require_v that_o we_o shall_v think_v he_o can_v perform_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v but_o the_o name_n jehovah_n when_o god_n perform_v his_o promise_n for_o it_o be_v derive_v from_o his_o essence_n and_o god_n both_o in_o act_n &_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o bring_v to_o pass_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v proposition_n 2_o if_o the_o name_n shadai_n
determine_v of_o the_o goodness_n and_o naughtiness_n of_o humane_a action_n those_o eat_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a forbid_v to_o our_o first_o parent_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xx_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o sabbath_n be_v partly_o moral_a day_n thou_o shall_v keep_v holy_a the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o partly_o ceremonial_a whereupon_o some_o thing_n contain_v therein_o be_v eternal_a and_o some_o thing_n but_o for_o a_o time_n proposition_n 2_o the_o christian_n church_n err_v not_o when_o in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o jew_n sabbath_n it_o appoint_v the_o lord_n day_n to_o be_v keep_v whereof_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n although_o there_o be_v no_o commandment_n there_o extant_a as_o touch_v the_o observation_n thereof_o proposition_n 3_o the_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o compel_v stranger_n although_o they_o be_v of_o a_o other_o manner_n of_o religion_n that_o they_o do_v nothing_o open_o against_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o city_n proposition_n 4_o those_o work_n be_v not_o forbid_v to_o be_v do_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n which_o may_v neither_o be_v defer_v nor_o prevent_v without_o the_o loss_n of_o life_n proposition_n 5_o the_o work_n of_o charity_n which_o we_o be_v bind_v necessary_o to_o do_v unto_o our_o neighbour_n must_v be_v prefer_v before_o holy_a ceremony_n proposition_n 6_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n have_v a_o order_n among_o themselves_o therefore_o when_o two_o of_o they_o meet_v together_o at_o one_o time_n which_o can_v be_v perform_v both_o at_o once_o we_o must_v apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o former_a not_o indeed_o neglect_v the_o latter_a but_o defer_v it_o till_o a_o other_o time_n proposition_n 7_o those_o work_n must_v be_v do_v upon_o holy_a day_n which_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v manifest_a do_v belong_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n proposition_n 8_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o church_n to_o add_v unto_o the_o ceremony_n deliver_v to_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n both_o time_n manner_n place_n yea_o and_o some_o ceremony_n as_o well_o for_o ornament_n as_o for_o edifieng_v of_o the_o faithful_a who_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o they_o as_o the_o papist_n have_v do_v in_o their_o mass_n which_o now_o can_v be_v do_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n proposition_n 9_o the_o monk_n which_o draw_v away_o child_n from_o their_o parent_n and_o make_v they_o monk_n parent_n honour_n thy_o parent_n sin_n more_o gréevouslie_o than_o do_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n who_o christ_n reproove_v because_o they_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o honour_v parent_n proposition_n 10_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o temporal_a thing_n god_n include_v spiritual_a promise_n proposition_n 11_o temporal_a thing_n although_o they_o sometime_o seem_v vile_a yet_o be_v they_o contain_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v be_v teach_v that_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n extend_v itself_o unto_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o let_v we_o know_v that_o good_a thing_n although_o they_o be_v never_o so_o small_a must_v be_v ask_v from_o god_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o in_o the_o word_n parent_n be_v comprehend_v schoolmaster_n master_n &_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n because_o in_o old_a time_n when_o there_o be_v but_o few_o man_n the_o good_a man_n of_o the_o house_n perform_v all_o these_o duty_n proposition_n 2_o in_o the_o table_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n parent_n be_v not_o express_o command_v concern_v duty_n towards_o their_o child_n because_o they_o have_v by_o nature_n more_o vehement_a affection_n ingraff_v thereunto_o than_o child_n have_v towards_o their_o parent_n proposition_n 3_o the_o precept_n of_o honour_v parent_n be_v chéefelie_o in_o the_o promise_n as_o paul_n say_v namely_o in_o the_o particular_a promise_n for_o that_o promise_n which_o be_v in_o the_o second_o precept_n be_v general_a proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xx_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o when_o god_n command_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o kill_v he_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n kill_v thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v forbid_v anger_n which_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o every_o anger_n but_o of_o that_o only_a which_o be_v against_o charity_n proposition_n 2_o revenge_n belong_v not_o to_o private_a man_n see_v it_o be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o magistrate_n proposition_n 3_o they_o which_o say_v that_o the_o commandment_n of_o not_o revenge_v be_v a_o counsel_n and_o not_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n do_v great_o err_v proposition_n 4_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o every_o man_n against_o they_o that_o be_v private_a to_o repel_v violence_n by_o violence_n so_o it_o be_v not_o do_v of_o hatred_n or_o desire_n to_o revenge_n and_o only_o when_o a_o extreme_a necessity_n force_v wherein_o we_o can_v use_v the_o help_n of_o lawful_a defender_n proposition_n 5_o the_o mishap_n of_o those_o that_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n be_v to_o be_v lament_v but_o yet_o the_o execution_n of_o a_o just_a judgement_n against_o they_o must_v not_o be_v hinder_v by_o our_o defence_n or_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o other_o proposition_n 6_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o kill_v himself_o wherefore_o pe●llianus_n be_v justly_o condemn_v for_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v martyr_n who_o when_o they_o be_v fall_v into_o gréevous_a mischéefe_n kill_v themselves_o under_o pretence_n of_o repentance_n proposition_n 7_o neither_o be_v those_o to_o be_v hear_v which_o grant_v the_o same_o when_o chastity_n be_v put_v in_o danger_n proposition_n 8_o the_o death_n of_o samson_n excuse_v not_o they_o which_o of_o their_o own_o will_v do_v kill_v themselves_o proposition_n 9_o in_o the_o precept_n wherein_o adultery_n be_v forbid_v adultery_n thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n matrimony_n which_o be_v the_o contrary_a be_v commend_v for_o that_o it_o be_v a_o lawful_a ●oming_n together_o of_o man_n and_o wife_n into_o one_o flesh_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n for_o the_o procreating_a of_o child_n and_o godly_a education_n of_o they_o and_o that_o fornication_n may_v be_v avoid_v proposition_n 10_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o matrimony_n be_v not_o as_o many_o think_v a_o venial_a sin_n proposition_n 11_o they_o which_o say_v that_o matrimony_n be_v not_o good_a but_o in_o comparison_n of_o whoredom_n and_o adultery_n be_v of_o a_o ill_a judgement_n proposition_n 12_o matrimony_n be_v violate_v when_o man_n and_o wife_n be_v lawful_o join_v together_o into_o one_o flesh_n there_o be_v mingle_v a_o strange_a flesh_n not_o only_o in_o the_o gross_a and_o outward_a fact_n but_o with_o the_o hart_n with_o word_n beck_n and_o other_o dispute_v action_n proposition_n 13_o also_o matrimony_n be_v violate_v by_o a_o divorce_n admit_v without_o lawful_a cause_n proposition_n 14_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n and_o wife_n that_o the_o one_o shall_v grant_v to_o the_o other_o the_o use_n of_o their_o body_n unto_o other_o out_o of_o matrimony_n proposition_n 15_o in_o a_o well_o order_v commonweal_n the_o crime_n of_o adultery_n ought_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n proposition_n 16_o christ_n release_v not_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o that_o respect_n that_o he_o condemn_v not_o that_o woman_n which_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xx_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o by_o that_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v the_o israelite_n can_v not_o be_v reproove_v of_o theft_n when_o they_o rob_v egypt_n steal_v thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v since_o to_o usurp_v other_o man_n good_n against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n belong_v unto_o the_o nature_n of_o theft_n but_o they_o carry_v not_o out_o other_o man_n good_n but_o their_o own_o to_o wit_n be_v give_v they_o by_o god_n proposition_n 2_o by_o this_o precept_n be_v establish_v private_a possession_n of_o thing_n so_o as_o there_o must_v be_v no_o community_n bring_v in_o as_o touch_v the_o possession_n of_o all_o our_o good_n but_o only_o as_o touch_v a_o participation_n of_o the_o use_n and_o fruit_n proposition_n 3_o the_o intercourse_n of_o merchant_n if_o it_o be_v justly_o order_v be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v but_o it_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o bond_n of_o humane_a society_n proposition_n 4_o they_o which_o deceive_v the_o magistrate_n of_o tribute_n be_v guilty_a of_o theft_n no_o less_o guilty_a be_v pr●…ces_n when_o they_o exact_v great_a tribute_n than_o reason_n will_v or_o else_o when_o they_o grant_v not_o unto_o the_o subject_n those_o thing_n for_o the_o which_o they_o pay_v tribute_n proposition_n 5_o they_o which_o de●…a●…_n minister_n young_a student_n and_o the_o poor_a of_o the_o
possidete_fw-la animas_fw-la vestras_fw-la the_o common_a place_n of_o the_o most_o famous_a and_o renown_a divine_a doctor_n peter_n martyr_n divide_v into_o four_o principal_a part_n with_o a_o large_a addition_n of_o many_o theological_a and_o necessary_a discourse_n some_o never_o extant_a before_o translate_v and_o partly_o gather_v by_o anthony_n marten_n one_o of_o the_o sewer_n of_o her_o majesty_n most_o honourable_a chamber_n meliora_fw-la spero_fw-la in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n be_v annex_v two_o table_n of_o all_o the_o notable_a matter_n therein_o contain_v 1._o cor._n 3_o 11._o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v than_o christ_n jesus_n which_o be_v already_o lay_v to_o the_o most_o excellent_a mighty_a and_o religious_a princess_n elizabeth_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n queen_n of_o england_n france_n and_o ireland_n defender_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n etc._n etc._n if_o almighty_a god_n most_o gracious_a sovereign_a lady_n have_v but_o as_o meanlie_a furnish_v i_o with_o understanding_n and_o utterance_n as_o he_o have_v plentifullie_o enrich_v your_o majesty_n with_o many_o most_o excellent_a gift_n and_o grace_n my_o pen_n at_o this_o time_n will_v run_v more_o agreeable_a to_o your_o highness_n ear_n and_o my_o word_n pierce_v more_o deep_a into_o your_o princely_a breast_n then_o may_v i_o though_o with_o some_o boldness_n yet_o with_o all_o humbleness_n approach_v your_o presence_n and_o present_v you_o with_o such_o matter_n as_o god_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n have_v offer_v i_o and_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o may_v be_v most_o like_v to_o your_o godly_a disposition_n not_o that_o i_o poor_a simple_a man_n can_v prefer_v aught_o as_o yet_o unknown_a to_o your_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o who_o god_n in_o his_o son_n christ_n have_v impar_v as_o great_a abundance_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n as_o flesh_n &_o blood_n in_o this_o life_n can_v well_o conceive_v but_o that_o i_o have_v of_o long_a time_n be_v carry_v with_o a_o extraordinary_a zeal_n and_o desire_n incomparable_a once_o in_o my_o life_n by_o some_o perpetual_a record_n of_o your_o royal_a name_n to_o give_v a_o outward_a testimony_n of_o my_o inward_a hart_n and_o a_o assure_a seal_n of_o my_o bind_a duty_n so_o long_o bear_v to_o your_o manifold_a virtue_n religious_a profession_n and_o high_a estate_n and_o for_o the_o better_a performance_n of_o this_o my_o determine_a purpose_n perceive_v myself_o though_o not_o unwilling_a yet_o unable_a to_o publish_v any_o work_n whole_o of_o my_o own_o devise_n worthy_a the_o regard_n of_o so_o great_a a_o prince_n and_o the_o read_n of_o so_o judicial_a a_o censure_n i_o resolve_v at_o last_o upon_o this_o book_n a_o work_n not_o so_o long_o as_o learned_a contain_v matter_n not_o so_o hard_a as_o true_a write_v by_o a_o author_n not_o so_o late_o as_o famous_a which_o i_o have_v faithful_o translate_v and_o partly_o gather_v and_o whole_o dedicate_v to_o your_o excellent_a majesty_n for_o as_o all_o scripture_n inspire_v from_o above_o be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v to_o reproove_v to_o correct_v and_o to_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o perfect_a unto_o all_o good_a work_n so_o in_o this_o work_n be_v draw_v a_o perfect_a form_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a religion_n &_o true_a service_n of_o god_n set_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n in_o it_o be_v reproove_v the_o huge_a heap_n of_o heresy_n and_o error_n spring_v up_o in_o the_o church_n since_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o particular_a discovery_n of_o the_o roman_a antichristian_a kingdom_n in_o it_o be_v comprise_v a_o due_a correction_n of_o sundry_a default_n in_o life_n and_o defect_n in_o government_n in_o it_o be_v deliver_v a_o perfect_a instruction_n for_o soundness_n of_o conscience_n and_o sincerity_n of_o conversation_n to_o all_o estate_n beside_o many_o special_a comfort_n to_o the_o trouble_a exhortation_n to_o the_o slow_a persuasion_n to_o the_o doubtful_a encouragement_n to_o the_o forward_a reprehension_n of_o the_o obstinate_a explication_n of_o hard_a scripture_n distinction_n of_o difficult_a saieng_n discovery_n of_o false_a argument_n and_o definition_n of_o diffuse_v question_n and_o as_o for_o the_o author_n in_o a_o word_n or_o two_o never_o be_v there_o yet_o find_v any_o adversary_n so_o envious_a as_o to_o deny_v his_o learning_n nor_o so_o subtle_a as_o to_o refel_v his_o argument_n nor_o so_o wise_a as_o to_o overreach_v his_o discretion_n nor_o so_o terrible_a as_o to_o drive_v he_o from_o his_o godly_a purpose_n no_o nor_o so_o malicious_a as_o to_o slander_v his_o life_n wherein_o he_o bestow_v his_o time_n and_o behave_v himself_o not_o only_o as_o a_o right_a evangelist_n but_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a so_o to_o say_v as_o a_o very_a apostle_n wherefore_o i_o most_o humble_o beseech_v your_o majesty_n that_o according_a to_o your_o accustom_a gracious_a favour_n it_o will_v please_v you_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o these_o fruit_n of_o he_o and_o protector_n of_o these_o labour_n of_o i_o sow_v and_o spring_v up_o ripen_v and_o gather_v begin_v and_o end_v within_o the_o wall_n of_o your_o highness_n court_n by_o your_o most_o faithful_a and_o loyal_a subject_n and_o servant_n but_o now_o in_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o matter_n i_o can_v but_o call_v to_o mind_n with_o joy_n and_o reverence_n that_o this_o our_o native_a country_n do_v first_o of_o all_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n faithful_o receive_v and_o public_o profess_v the_o religion_n of_o christ._n and_o it_o reioise_v i_o much_o more_o that_o after_o so_o long_a and_o so_o foul_a a_o fall_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n this_o of_o all_o other_o kingdom_n do_v first_o open_o endeavour_n to_o repair_v the_o ruin_n thereof_o a_o principal_a labourer_n in_o which_o work_n be_v d._n peter_n martyr_n who_o long_o sustain_v upon_o his_o own_o and_o almost_o only_o shoulder_n the_o great_a weight_n of_o this_o burden_n but_o most_o of_o all_o do_v i_o praise_v the_o lord_n even_o from_o my_o hart_n that_o after_o satan_n our_o ancient_a enemy_n have_v give_v a_o sharp_a assault_n upon_o god_n saint_n who_o begin_v to_o lay_v both_o their_o head_n &_o their_o hand_n to_o the_o new_a build_n of_o this_o temple_n the_o lord_n by_o your_o majesty_n though_o weak_a in_o respect_n of_o your_o sex_n yet_o strong_a by_o his_o power_n who_o choose_v the_o weak_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o strong_a that_o his_o power_n may_v appear_v in_o our_o infirmity_n repel_v his_o violence_n defeat_v his_o practice_n withstand_v his_o force_n overthrow_v his_o complice_n and_o proceed_v to_o the_o reedification_n of_o his_o church_n o_o that_o bless_a day_n wherein_o your_o majesty_n be_v place_v in_o your_o royal_a seat_n to_o restore_v the_o decay_a church_n so_o long_o captivate_v under_o cruel_a pharaoh_n and_o idolatrous_a nabuchadnezar_a wherein_o the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v save_v from_o the_o vile_a hand_n of_o antichristian_a tormentor_n wherein_o the_o desperate_a estate_n of_o poor_a silly_a afflict_a banish_a soul_n be_v recover_v and_o restore_v by_o a_o mighty_a hand_n and_o stretched-out_a arm_n from_o babylon_n to_o jerusalem_n from_o dan_n &_o bethel_n to_o the_o holy_a hill_n of_o zion_n from_o superstition_n to_o religion_n from_o idolatry_n to_o true_a worship_n from_o the_o heathenish_a mass_n to_o a_o christian_n communion_n from_o papistical_a rite_n to_o apostolical_a ceremony_n from_o bead_n to_o prayer_n from_o legend_n to_o sermon_n from_o bondage_n to_o liberty_n and_o even_o as_o it_o be_v from_o hell_n to_o heaven_n o_o that_o all_o christian_a english_a heart_n will_v celebrate_v that_o happy_a day_n with_o all_o joyful_a solemnity_n with_o all_o praise_n to_o god_n and_o prayer_n for_o you_o who_o reduce_v we_o in_o triumph_n yourself_o as_o principal_a captive_a lead_v the_o danse_n before_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v your_o majesty_n that_o reviue_v those_o good_a and_o godly_a decree_n which_o your_o most_o renown_a father_n and_o gracious_a brother_n have_v make_v for_o the_o repair_n of_o the_o lord_n tabernacle_n you_o send_v laborer_n unto_o the_o build_n you_o prescribe_v they_o perfect_a rule_n whereby_o to_o square_v every_o stone_n and_o piece_n of_o timber_n according_a to_o the_o pattern_n that_o the_o lord_n show_v moses_n in_o the_o mount_n you_o command_v they_o to_o raise_v their_o build_n upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n corner_n stone_n but_o o_o lamentable_a case_n to_o be_v sorrow_v of_o all_o such_o as_o seek_v salvation_n in_o christ_n alone_o and_o sigh_v with_o unspeakable_a groan_n to_o see_v the_o perfect_a finish_n and_o furnish_n of_o the_o holy_a temple_n the_o enemy_n have_v sow_v tare_n among_o
insert_v into_o the_o common_a place_n you_o shall_v find_v the_o disputation_n which_o he_o make_v at_o oxford_n with_o certain_a learned_a adversary_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o also_o a_o notable_a sermon_n of_o reedification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o some_o learned_a epistle_n neither_o in_o the_o latin_a book_n nor_o before_o extant_a in_o print_n but_o bring_v to_o light_v by_o my_o own_o industry_n and_o diligent_a search_n and_o lest_o any_o shall_v mistrust_v that_o i_o be_v not_o exercise_v in_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v so_o great_a a_o charge_n and_o faithful_o to_o translate_v so_o notable_a a_o work_n wherein_o be_v comprehend_v so_o manifold_a learning_n so_o incomparable_a knowledge_n and_o so_o divine_a understanding_n especial_o i_o live_v in_o the_o court_n as_o it_o be_v in_o continual_a peregrination_n and_o as_o a_o rechabit_v among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n i_o think_v it_o good_a for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o you_o my_o dear_a and_o well-beloved_a brethren_n in_o the_o lord_n to_o let_v you_o understand_v that_o although_o the_o time_n of_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o book_n be_v hereby_o prolong_v yet_o the_o faithful_a translation_n of_o the_o same_o be_v nothing_o hinder_v for_o by_o this_o mean_v i_o have_v fit_a opportunity_n to_o confer_v and_o examine_v the_o same_o with_o sundry_a person_n of_o great_a learning_n and_o judgement_n neither_o do_v i_o presume_v to_o bring_v it_o into_o light_n before_o i_o have_v find_v out_o the_o perfect_a sense_n of_o every_o thing_n and_o be_v full_o resolve_v in_o every_o word_n clause_n and_o sentence_n which_o be_v hard_a or_o doubtful_a and_o herewithal_o add_v that_o what_o want_n of_o skill_n soever_o may_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o i_o that_o have_v my_o care_n and_o diligence_n full_o supply_v wherefore_o all_o godly_a reader_n be_v by_o this_o mean_v persuade_v it_o shall_v be_v very_o profitable_a for_o they_o to_o bestow_v some_o time_n in_o the_o study_n of_o this_o book_n whereby_o perhaps_o the_o better_a learn_v themselves_o may_v more_o ready_o &_o with_o great_a light_n discern_v the_o hardness_n and_o doubtfulness_n which_o otherwhile_o appear_v in_o the_o latin_a book_n especial_o where_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v cite_v whereby_o also_o the_o less_o skilful_a and_o learned_a sort_n by_o applieng_v their_o mind_n to_o the_o read_n and_o remember_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o shall_v find_v herein_o shall_v be_v full_o satisfy_v in_o the_o great_a matter_n and_o be_v able_a to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a adversary_n in_o the_o chief_a controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n will_v i_o exhort_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n not_o to_o let_v pass_v so_o good_a a_o occasion_n who_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o exhort_v that_o they_o have_v take_v upon_o they_o so_o weighty_a a_o charge_n will_v not_o be_v negligent_a in_o their_o excellent_a vocation_n but_o will_v whole_o dedicate_v themselves_o day_n and_o night_n to_o all_o manner_n of_o godly_a reading_n necessary_a for_o their_o function_n for_o the_o better_a performance_n whereof_o if_o they_o do_v not_o know_v how_o to_o order_v their_o study_n and_o to_o benefit_v the_o church_n i_o have_v at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o preface_n set_v down_o a_o brief_a way_n and_o example_n for_o they_o to_o follow_v with_o the_o right_a use_n of_o common_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n wherewith_o if_o every_o one_o because_o of_o my_o brevity_n shall_v not_o think_v himself_o satisfy_v i_o refer_v they_o which_o understand_v the_o latin_a to_o hyperius_n a_o excellent_a writer_n to_o this_o purpose_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ratione_fw-la studij_fw-la theologici_fw-la where_o they_o shall_v be_v full_o instruct_v and_o when_o they_o be_v by_o this_o manner_n of_o mean_n make_v fit_a herald_n to_o proclaim_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o zion_n i_o will_v desire_v they_o and_o all_o other_o which_o seek_v the_o truth_n and_o will_v glad_o have_v the_o church_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v restore_v to_o the_o right_a form_n that_o god_n have_v prescribe_v in_o his_o holy_a word_n that_o they_o will_v set_v to_o their_o heart_n and_o hand_n to_o the_o build_n up_o of_o the_o same_o and_o endeavour_n by_o all_o mean_v possible_a to_o reduce_v the_o wander_a flock_n unto_o their_o own_o sheepfold_a and_o first_o of_o all_o you_o my_o good_a lord_n who_o i_o honour_v reverence_n and_o obey_v in_o my_o heart_n with_o all_o duty_n and_o service_n you_o to_o who_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n our_o dear_a sovereign_n have_v commit_v the_o sword_n of_o government_n you_o which_o be_v the_o nurse_n and_o pillar_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o english_a church_n you_o which_o be_v unto_o we_o as_o moses_n josua_n and_o samuel_n to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n continue_v you_o the_o great_a care_n and_o zeal_n that_o you_o have_v always_o bear_v to_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o provide_v that_o both_o by_o the_o faithful_a execution_n of_o her_o highness_n law_n and_o by_o the_o virtuous_a example_n of_o your_o own_o life_n the_o church_n of_o england_n may_v be_v commend_v and_o well_o speak_v of_o among_o all_o nation_n but_o principal_o i_o beseech_v you_o put_v to_o your_o help_a hand_n that_o the_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o all_o other_o that_o have_v any_o commission_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a be_v so_o choose_v as_o their_o godliness_n of_o life_n be_v of_o all_o man_n allow_v their_o soundness_n of_o doctrine_n cleerelie_o approve_v their_o boldness_n in_o profess_v through_o well_o try_v their_o gift_n of_o edifieng_v of_o all_o man_n perceive_v and_o which_o seek_v not_o for_o the_o desire_n of_o honour_n but_o receive_v for_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n the_o live_n honour_n and_o authority_n give_v unto_o they_o which_o be_v perform_v you_o shall_v be_v rid_v of_o infinite_a care_n and_o business_n otherwise_o your_o labour_n will_v be_v no_o whit_n lessen_v nor_o your_o heavy_a burden_n lighten_v but_o the_o appeal_n unto_o you_o will_v be_v daily_o increase_v and_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o church_n remain_v unpacify_v and_o this_o will_v be_v one_o special_a furtherance_n to_o the_o build_n up_o of_o the_o lord_n temple_n furthermore_o you_o that_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o chief_a prelate_n of_o the_o congregation_n my_o honourable_a lord_n and_o reverend_a father_n in_o christ_n which_o have_v commit_v unto_o you_o the_o care_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n and_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o same_o i_o beseech_v you_o for_o the_o discharge_n of_o your_o own_o office_n and_o conscience_n for_o the_o more_o speedy_a reedification_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o for_o the_o desire_v you_o have_v of_o the_o chosen_n felicity_n you_o will_v have_v a_o watchful_a eye_n unto_o your_o charge_n and_o that_o you_o will_v neither_o for_o favour_n nor_o for_o affection_n nor_o for_o private_a commodity_n no_o nor_o at_o the_o special_a suit_n of_o any_o mortal_a man_n admit_v any_o other_o minister_n than_o such_o as_o be_v learned_a grave_a and_o of_o good_a report_n among_o all_o man_n and_o unto_o who_o god_n have_v give_v gift_n to_o edify_v in_o the_o congregation_n that_o you_o will_v likewise_o provide_v by_o your_o government_n that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o spiritual_a edification_n and_o to_o a_o decent_a order_n in_o the_o church_n that_o you_o suffer_v no_o notorious_a fault_n to_o escape_v unpunished_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o occasion_n give_v to_o the_o adversary_n to_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o gospel_n for_o your_o sake_n that_o you_o will_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a reconcile_v the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o make_v that_o we_o may_v speak_v and_o think_v and_o believe_v all_o one_o thing_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o you_o will_v live_v in_o a_o continual_a peregrination_n in_o your_o diocese_n and_o not_o only_o visit_v all_o your_o particular_a church_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a by_o yourselves_o if_o not_o by_o your_o faithful_a and_o well_o choose_v officer_n but_o eftsoon_o also_o search_v and_o inquire_v whether_o your_o decree_n be_v execute_v and_o all_o disorder_n amend_v remember_v if_o any_o part_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n fall_n to_o decay_n by_o your_o default_n it_o shall_v be_v require_v at_o your_o hand_n but_o if_o it_o be_v keep_v in_o good_a plight_n by_o your_o diligence_n and_o good_a oversight_n you_o shall_v reap_v a_o incomparable_a reward_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n what_o remain_v now_o when_o you_o and_o other_o excellent_a man_n have_v by_o your_o writing_n and_o by_o your_o teach_n and_o preach_v both_o confirm_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o confute_v all_o superstitious_a doctrine_n but_o that_o all_o the_o adversary_n will_v be_v
place_n of_o the_o four_o part_n albeit_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o only_a bond_n that_o we_o have_v with_o christ_n and_o the_o most_o assure_a pledge_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o a_o undoubted_a preserver_n of_o all_o thing_n yet_o use_v he_o thereunto_o diverse_a and_o those_o external_a instrument_n for_o into_o the_o church_n he_o gather_v the_o elect_a and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o also_o by_o the_o bond_n and_o help_n of_o discipline_n he_o beget_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o he_o feed_v and_o preserve_v we_o unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o herewithal_o he_o raise_v up_o and_o use_v magistrate_n as_o well_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o man_n society_n and_o public_a honesty_n as_o also_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o piety_n and_o service_n of_o god_n so_o than_o this_o last_o part_n comprehend_v a_o explication_n of_o these_o place_n the_o chapter_n and_o common_a place_n of_o the_o four_o part_n chapter_n i_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n pag._n 1._o of_o sundry_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o of_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n pag._n 9_o of_o the_o dignity_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 15._o of_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n pag._n 16._o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o ministry_n 21._o of_o the_o mighty_a simpleness_n of_o the_o ministry_n pag._n 25._o chapter_n two_o of_o receive_v or_o refuse_v of_o reward_n gift_n and_o office_n especial_o by_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 28._o of_o the_o immunity_n of_o ecclesiastical_a man_n pag._n 32._o chapter_n iii_o whether_o there_o may_v be_v two_o head_n of_o the_o church_n one_o visible_a and_o a_o other_o invisible_a pag._n 35._o chapter_n four_o of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n pag._n 41._o a_o exposition_n of_o the_o place_n to_o obey_v be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n expound_v pag._n 44._o of_o tradition_n pag._n 45._o of_o discern_v of_o spirit_n ibidem_fw-la of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o counsel_n father_n and_o canon_n pag._n 46._o chapter_n five_o of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n pag._n 56._o of_o excommunication_n pag._n 57_o of_o order_n and_o comeliness_n in_o the_o church_n pag._n 65._o of_o temple_n and_o their_o ornament_n ibid._n chapter_n vi_o of_o schism_n and_o whether_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v schismatics_n pag._n 68_o what_o be_v become_v of_o they_o which_o in_o time_n past_o die_v in_o the_o pope_n religion_n 91._o chapter_n vii_o of_o sacrament_n in_o general_a pag._n 96._o of_o circumcision_n pag._n 107._o chapter_n viii_o of_o baptism_n baptise_v of_o infant_n and_o holiness_n of_o they_o pag._n 120._o chapter_n ix_o of_o the_o dedication_n of_o temple_n the_o baptise_v of_o bell_n of_o oil_n salt_n spittle_n wax_n and_o other_o papistical_a corruption_n about_o baptism_n pag._n 123._o of_o papistical_a holy_a water_n pag._n 138._o chapter_n x_o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n with_o a_o preface_n before_o the_o same_o pag._n 147._o a_o epitome_n of_o the_o disputation_n of_o the_o eucharist_n against_o steeven_n gardiner_n 198._o chapter_n xi_o of_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n pag._n 204._o chapter_n xii_o of_o the_o mass_n pag._n 215._o of_o sacrifice_n pag._n 220._o another_o common_a place_n of_o sacrifice_n 223._o of_o altar_n pag._n 225_o chapter_n xiii_o of_o a_o magistrate_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o civil_a &_o ecclesiastical_a power_n 226._o of_o tenthes_o pag._n 235._o chapter_n xiiii_o of_o the_o office_n of_o magistrate_n especial_o in_o exercise_v of_o judgement_n pag._n 245._o that_o the_o charge_n of_o religion_n belong_v to_o prince_n pag._n 246._o of_o the_o clemency_n of_o prince_n pag._n 248._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o magistrate_n to_o let_v the_o guilty_a go_v unpunished_a ibidem_fw-la whether_o the_o excuse_n of_o david_n in_o not_o punish_v of_o joab_n may_v be_v allow_v 256._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o release_v just_a punishment_n which_o be_v enjoin_v by_o law_n pag._n 260._o of_o execution_n and_o hangman_n pag._n 264._o of_o sanctuary_n pag._n 265._o chapter_n xv_o of_o exile_n or_o banishment_n pag._n 270._o chapter_n xvi_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n man_n to_o go_v to_o law_n pag._n 275._o chapter_n xvii_o of_o war_n or_o battle_n pag._n 280._o whether_o unto_o a_o just_a war_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v always_o require_v pag._n 284._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o godly_a to_o have_v peace_n with_o the_o ungodlie_a pag._n 294._o of_o fence_n and_o of_o spial_n pag._n 296._o of_o treason_n pag._n 297._o chapter_n xviii_o whether_o captive_n ought_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n or_o save_v pag._n 300._o of_o thing_n which_o be_v take_v by_o the_o right_n of_o war_n pag._n 303._o chapter_n xix_o of_o a_o several_a combat_n hand_n to_o hand_n 308._o chapter_n xx_o of_o nobility_n pag._n 311._o of_o bondage_n pag._n 313._o of_o debtor_n pag._n 315._o of_o occupieng_v of_o merchandise_n 317._o chapter_n xxi_o of_o trouble_n and_o sedition_n pag._n 319._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o subject_n to_o rise_v against_o their_o prince_n pag._n 324._o whether_o jehoiadah_n do_v right_a in_o put_v athalia_fw-la from_o the_o kingdom_n pag._n 325._o of_o endure_v of_o tyranny_n by_o godly_a man_n pag._n 328._o the_o content_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v add_v to_o this_o book_n of_o common_a place_n be_v set_v down_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o part_n certain_a fault_n escape_v there_o be_v no_o garden_n so_o well_o trim_v but_o have_v some_o weed_n no_o silver_n so_o well_o try_v but_o have_v some_o dross_n no_o wine_n so_o well_o fine_v but_o have_v some_o lose_fw-mi no_o honey_n so_o well_o clarify_v but_o have_v some_o dregs_n final_o no_o humane_a action_n but_o have_v some_o defect_n marvel_v not_o then_o good_a reader_n that_o in_o so_o huge_a a_o volume_n consist_v of_o so_o many_o leaf_n line_n and_o letter_n oftentimes_o vary_v both_o in_o form_n and_o matter_n a_o fault_n or_o two_o do_v escape_n be_v the_o corrector_n care_v never_o so_o great_a his_o diligence_n never_o so_o earnest_a his_o labour_n never_o so_o continual_a his_o eye_n never_o so_o quick_a his_o judgement_n never_o so_o sound_a his_o memory_n never_o so_o firm_a breeflie_o all_o his_o sense_n never_o so_o active_a and_o livelie_a such_o fault_n therefore_o as_o be_v pass_v be_v but_o few_o in_o number_n if_o it_o please_v you_o in_o read_v favourablie_o to_o amend_v according_a as_o they_o be_v here_o correct_v yourselves_o shall_v be_v profit_v and_o i_o satisfy_v fault_n correction_n part._n page_n colum._n line_n they_o men._n 1_o 143_o 2_o 19_o anger_n pride_n 2_o 529_o 2_o 49_o father_n father_n 2_o 600_o 1_o 25_o renew_v remove_v 4_o 59_o 1_o 58_o whoredom_n idolatry_n 4_o 245_o 1_o 11_o lord_n my_o my_o lord_n in_o the_o addition_n 113_o 2_o 10_o these_o be_v think_v necessary_a to_o be_v note_v other_o if_o any_o be_v i_o refer_v unto_o your_o own_o self_n that_o shall_v take_v pain_n to_o peruse_v the_o whole_a book_n advisedlie_o the_o common_a place_n of_o the_o famous_a and_o renown_a divine_a peter_n martyr_n vermilius_n a_o florentine_a select_v into_o four_o part_n out_o of_o his_o book_n and_o commentary_n honi_fw-fr soit_fw-fr mal_fw-fr y_fw-fr pense_fw-fr e_o r_o the_o first_o part_n wherein_o be_v principal_o entreat_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n of_o the_o end_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n among_o the_o christian_n the_o first_o chapter_n 25._o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o rom._n chap._n 8_o verse_n 25._o augustine_n in_o his_o 19_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o four_o chapter_n very_o well_o declare_v how_o christian_a hope_n be_v carry_v unto_o those_o good_a thing_n thing_n hope_n be_v carry_v to_o invisible_a thing_n which_o can_v be_v see_v for_o if_o thou_o ask_v say_v he_o a_o faithful_a man_n what_o he_o make_v to_o be_v the_o end_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a thing_n he_o will_v answer_v life_n and_o death_n everlasting_a put_v the_o end_n that_o a_o faithful_a man_n put_v which_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v see_v nor_o comprehend_v by_o man_n reason_n and_o therefore_o the_o wise_a man_n among_o the_o ethnike_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n will_v not_o settle_v their_o hope_n upon_o those_o thing_n for_o which_o cause_n some_o hold_v that_o the_o end_n of_o good_a thing_n be_v the_o good_n of_o the_o mind_n some_o the_o good_n of_o the_o body_n and_o some_o either_o virtue_n pleasure_n or_o both_o join_v together_o but_o god_n laugh_v they_o to_o scorn_v and_o see_v how_o vain_a their_o cogitation_n be_v for_o they_o will_v rather_o account_v those_o thing_n for_o the_o chief_a good_a which_o be_v temper_v with_o many_o misery_n and_o calamity_n than_o to_o receive_v those_o sincere_a perfect_a and_o most_o firm_a
easy_o be_v understand_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o speak_v concern_v the_o cause_n 6_o but_o heavenly_a inspiration_n be_v not_o communicate_v to_o all_o the_o prophet_n alike_o prophet_n degree_n of_o prophet_n for_o some_o see_v more_o and_o some_o less_o in_o the_o 12._o of_o the_o book_n of_o number_n god_n say_v 6._o num._n 12_o 6._o that_o he_o do_v insinuate_v himself_o to_o other_o prophet_n after_o diverse_a fashion_n but_o that_o he_o present_v himself_o unto_o moses_n mouth_n to_o mouth_n and_o face_n to_o face_n 10_o deut._n 34_o 10_o and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o deuteronomie_n it_o be_v write_v 11_o a_o comparison_n between_o moses_n and_o john_n baptist_n matt._n 11_o 11_o that_o after_o moses_n there_o be_v never_o the_o like_a prophet_n which_o yet_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o time_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n for_o otherwise_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n himself_o john_n baptist_n be_v great_a than_o moses_n for_o say_v he_o among_o the_o child_n of_o woman_n there_o arise_v not_o a_o great_a than_o john_n baptist_n for_o other_o prophet_n foretell_v that_o christ_n in_o time_n will_v come_v but_o he_o with_o his_o finger_n show_v he_o to_o be_v present_a and_o conversant_a among_o man_n we_o may_v also_o although_o somewhat_o rude_o thus_o distinguish_v the_o degree_n of_o prophecy_n if_o that_o we_o call_v one_o a_o oracle_n another_o a_o dream_n and_o a_o other_o a_o vision_n a_o oracle_n be_v vision_n what_o be_v a_o oracle_n a_o dream_n &_o a_o vision_n when_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n himself_o it_o be_v tell_v what_o we_o shall_v do_v so_o be_v abraham_n warn_v by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o kill_v his_o son_n as_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o dream_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o example_n place_n of_o these_o thing_n read_v more_o in_o the_o next_o place_n they_o be_v plentiful_a in_o every_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o vision_n may_v be_v in_o three_o sort_n either_o when_o true_a thing_n be_v discern_v by_o a_o infuse_a light_n and_o by_o the_o mere_a understanding_n or_o else_o when_o beside_o that_o light_n image_n also_o be_v describe_v and_o that_o either_o in_o the_o mind_n 13._o zach._n 1_o 18._o and_o 4_o 2._o jerem._n 1_o 13._o as_o when_o zacharias_n see_v the_o horn_n and_o the_o candlestick_n and_o jeremie_n the_o pot_n or_o else_o in_o the_o eye_n and_o outward_a sense_n as_o be_v that_o hand_n speak_v of_o by_o daniel_n which_o appear_v on_o the_o wall_n and_o as_o that_o 5._o daniel_n 5_o 5._o when_o angel_n be_v see_v to_o talk_v with_o man_n in_o bodily_a shape_n of_o man_n time_n a_o difference_n in_o pprophecy_n according_a to_o time_n and_o in_o prophecy_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o time_n for_o some_o be_v before_o the_o law_n as_o be_v those_o of_o abraham_n noah_n enoch_n and_o adam_n some_o in_o the_o law_n as_o of_o moses_n and_o other_o some_o in_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o prophecy_n of_o many_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o this_o gift_n god_n deny_v not_o even_o to_o woman_n for_o we_o read_v of_o marie_n prophet_n woman_n prophet_n deborah_n and_o olda_n that_o be_v prophetess_n beside_o other_o woman_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n and_o other_o godly_a woman_n do_v prophesy_v and_o paul_n say_v that_o a_o woman_n pray_v or_o prophesieng_v 5._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 5._o shall_v cover_v her_o head_n but_o here_o 34_o how_o woman_n may_v prophesy_v they_o be_v forbid_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n 1._o cor._n 14_o 34_o by_o the_o way_n arise_v no_o small_a doubt_n for_o if_o at_o that_o time_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o woman_n to_o pray_v and_o prophesy_v open_o why_o do_v paul_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o to_o timothy_n admonish_v that_o a_o woman_n shall_v not_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n these_o two_o saieng_n although_o they_o may_v seem_v somewhat_o repugnant_a yet_o may_v they_o diverse_a way_n be_v reconcile_v some_o think_v that_o paul_n mean_v that_o a_o woman_n pray_v and_o prophesi_v when_o she_o be_v present_a and_o hear_v public_a prayer_n and_o prophesieng_n in_o the_o church_n direct_v by_o some_o godly_a and_o learned_a man_n other_o suppose_v that_o two_o error_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n even_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o same_o church_n begin_v the_o one_o that_o woman_n shall_v prophesy_v open_o and_o the_o other_o that_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o bareheaded_a and_o they_o think_v that_o paul_n confute_v the_o first_o error_n in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 5._o and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o 14._o and_o in_o the_o 2._o to_o timothy_n 11._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 11._o and_o that_o so_o paul_n altogether_o forbid_v that_o either_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o the_o congregation_n other_o some_o understand_v those_o word_n of_o paul_n as_o touch_v the_o ordinary_a ministry_n which_o by_o no_o mean_n must_v be_v permit_v to_o a_o woman_n but_o that_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a mean_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o woman_n sometime_o to_o prophesy_v as_o it_o be_v unto_o marie_n deborah_n olda_n and_o other_o of_o who_o we_o speak_v before_o the_o which_o if_o it_o do_v happen_v at_o any_o time_n they_o say_v that_o paul_n warn_v that_o a_o woman_n shall_v have_v her_o head_n cover_v other_o think_v that_o woman_n be_v quite_o forbid_v by_o paul_n to_o prophesy_v open_o but_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o do_v it_o privatlie_o so_o they_o cover_v their_o head_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v it_o import_v not_o much_o our_o purpose_n be_v only_o to_o teach_v that_o god_n do_v sometime_o impart_v this_o gift_n unto_o woman_n own_o prophet_n must_v not_o diminish_v the_o word_n nor_o add_v to_o of_o their_o own_o 7_o but_o above_o all_o thing_n prophet_n must_v beware_v that_o they_o corrupt_v not_o nor_o that_o they_o add_v not_o or_o diminish_v any_o thing_n for_o some_o otherwhile_o have_v receive_v the_o illumination_n of_o god_n do_v add_v over_o and_o beside_o of_o their_o own_o in_o the_o act_n certain_a holy_a man_n lighten_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n say_v 10._o acts._n 21_o 4._o and_o 10._o that_o many_o gréevous_a affliction_n be_v prepare_v for_o paul_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o this_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o speak_v true_o but_o they_o add_v other_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o for_o they_o give_v counsel_n unto_o paul_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n which_o thing_n they_o have_v not_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n good_a prophet_n ought_v not_o so_o to_o behave_v themselves_o for_o if_o they_o will_v mingle_v their_o own_o wisdom_n with_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n they_o may_v easy_o both_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o and_o also_o cause_v other_o to_o be_v deceive_v beside_o this_o 23._o prophet_n must_v not_o be_v corrupt_v for_o favour_n or_o reward_n num._n 22_o 23._o the_o prophet_n must_v take_v heed_n that_o they_o suffer_v not_o themselves_o to_o be_v corrupt_v either_o by_o money_n or_o favour_n as_o we_o read_v that_o balaam_n do_v for_o they_o which_o so_o do_v say_v jerome_n be_v not_o prophet_n but_o diviner_n as_o when_o logic_n be_v corrupt_a with_o error_n and_o fallaxis_n it_o be_v no_o long_a logic_n but_o sophistry_n for_o they_o which_o may_v be_v hire_v to_o speak_v in_o favour_n for_o reward_n sake_n be_v rather_o the_o divinors_n of_o idol_n than_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n and_o if_o they_o bear_v any_o office_n in_o the_o church_n they_o will_v soon_o infect_v their_o auditory_a with_o error_n and_o so_o both_o shall_v be_v cast_v headlong_o into_o the_o ditch_n further_o they_o must_v endeavour_v themselves_o by_o their_o life_n and_o manner_n to_o win_v credit_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n apparel_n by_o their_o life_n they_o must_v win_v credit_n to_o the_o word_n matth._n 3_o 4._o 2._o king_n 1_o 8._o a_o fond_a imitation_n of_o elias_n &_o john_n baptist_n in_o apparel_n this_o be_v think_v by_o some_o to_o consist_v in_o apparel_n and_o so_o they_o will_v imitate_v elias_n and_o john_n baptist_n and_o be_v apparel_v in_o camel_n hear_v and_o we_o be_v girdle_n of_o leather_n but_o this_o do_v the_o prophet_n by_o the_o instinct_n and_o warning_n of_o god_n to_o draw_v the_o people_n unto_o god_n by_o woonder_v at_o they_o contrariwise_o there_o be_v some_o which_o will_v abound_v in_o pleasure_n and_o excess_n and_o this_o we_o read_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o prisca_n and_o maximilla_n for_o they_o use_v paint_v colour_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o niceness_n prisca_n prisca_n wherefore_o a_o certain_a mean_a way_n must_v be_v use_v for_o offence_n may_v be_v commit_v on_o
the_o scripture_n have_v with_o the_o faithful_a for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o it_o may_v easy_o persuade_v the_o turk_n &_o infidel_n to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o jew_n to_o embrace_v the_o new_a testament_n and_o how_o true_a this_o be_v the_o thing_n itself_o testify_v 11_o furthermore_o these_o man_n shall_v be_v demand_v what_o church_n it_o be_v to_o who_o they_o appoint_v so_o great_a a_o judgement_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o scripture_n if_o they_o will_v answer_v that_o they_o attribute_v the_o same_o unto_o bishop_n these_o be_v very_o oftentimes_o but_o shadow_n or_o vizard_n neither_o do_v they_o understand_v what_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v contain_v and_o common_o their_o life_n be_v such_o as_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o they_o and_o see_v they_o be_v perceive_v to_o be_v such_o sensual_a man_n who_o will_v allow_v they_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a judge_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n father_n of_o the_o father_n but_o if_o our_o adversary_n have_v rather_o fly_v from_o they_o to_o the_o godly_a father_n of_o every_o age_n to_o learn_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o true_a judgement_n have_v many_o time_n be_v find_v among_o they_o and_o yet_o not_o always_o for_o they_o disagree_v many_o time_n among_o themselves_o they_o change_v they_o make_v retractation_n and_o diverse_a time_n some_o one_o contend_v and_o dispute_v against_o another_o i_o know_v they_o will_v say_v at_o the_o last_o counsel_n of_o the_o counsel_n that_o we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o general_a counsel_n as_o though_o they_o never_o err_v the_o general_a council_n of_o ariminum_n 10._o look_v part_n 4_o place_z 4_o art_n 10._o make_v altogether_o for_o the_o arrian_n the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n favour_v the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n so_o err_v as_o it_o entitle_v leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n but_o the_o holy_a man_n which_o be_v not_o present_v there_o hear_v of_o it_o do_v utterlie_o renounce_v such_o preeminence_n and_o in_o a_o council_n which_o cyprian_n hold_v a_o great_a error_n be_v commit_v when_o it_o be_v there_o decree_v that_o heretic_n baptize_v out_o of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n if_o they_o return_v unto_o it_o shall_v be_v baptize_v again_o also_o the_o synod_n of_o constance_n do_v wicked_o condescend_v that_o the_o half_a communion_n shall_v be_v minister_v to_o the_o lie_v people_n and_o many_o other_o error_n commit_v by_o general_a counsel_n may_v be_v allege_v for_o since_o they_o be_v but_o man_n which_o determine_v matter_n propound_v in_o general_a counsel_n they_o intermingle_v much_o carnal_a and_o humane_a sense_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o subscribe_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o unless_o it_o shall_v appear_v that_o the_o same_o do_v very_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o peter_n err_v 14._o galat._n 2_o 14._o unless_o that_o paul_n have_v open_o resist_v he_o wherefore_o err_v if_o peter_n err_v much_o more_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n may_v err_v if_o so_o great_a a_o apostle_n be_v not_o free_a from_o fall_v into_o error_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o other_o miserable_a and_o frail_a man_n who_o we_o see_v very_o often_o to_o be_v turn_v to_o &_o fro_o into_o many_o mind_n and_o affection_n let_v all_o thing_n therefore_o without_o any_o further_a delay_n be_v reduce_v and_o bring_v home_o to_o a_o just_a examination_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o judge_v uncerteine_a matter_n by_o certain_a and_o doubtful_a by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n for_o even_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sure_a and_o continue_v for_o ever_o so_o man_n ordinance_n be_v ever_o doubtful_a waver_a and_o inconstant_a these_o thing_n must_v not_o be_v so_o construe_v as_o though_o we_o will_v that_o godly_a brethren_n shall_v have_v no_o audience_n in_o godly_a assembly_n or_o as_o though_o we_o seek_v altogether_o to_o take_v away_o the_o authority_n from_o father_n and_o counsel_n we_o speak_v not_o these_o thing_n to_o any_o such_o purpose_n we_o covet_v to_o attribute_v to_o every_o one_o his_o just_a commendation_n so_o that_o there_o be_v not_o attribute_v unto_o man_n that_o which_o be_v meet_v for_o god_n only_o and_o let_v that_o say_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o be_v always_o sound_v in_o our_o ear_n that_o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v show_v we_o of_o any_o other_o gospel_n 8._o galat._n 1_o 8._o than_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o thus_o much_o shall_v suffice_v on_o this_o behalf_n to_o declare_v by_o what_o note_n &_o mark_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v perceive_v scripture_n how_o one_o may_v obtain_v the_o mean_n to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n 12_o now_o let_v we_o reason_n by_o what_o mean_v every_o man_n may_v obtain_v to_o himself_o that_o power_n of_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o before_o as_o touch_v the_o first_o interpreter_n which_o we_o say_v to_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o mean_n to_o have_v access_n unto_o he_o be_v by_o prayer_n and_o therefore_o david_n pray_v on_o this_o wise_a 18._o psalm_n 119_o 12._o and_o 18._o open_v thou_o my_o eye_n o_o lord_n that_o i_o may_v see_v the_o wonder_a thing_n of_o thy_o law_n and_o again_o teach_v i_o thy_o iustification_n give_v i_o understanding_n &_o i_o shall_v diligent_o search_v thy_o commandment_n and_o well_o near_o innumerable_a of_o these_o saieng_n there_o be_v in_o the_o 119._o psalm_n further_o paul_n prate_v in_o his_o epistle_n that_o wisdom_n 8._o phil._n 1_o 8._o spiritual_a understanding_n and_o the_o eye_n of_o discretion_n to_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n may_v be_v give_v to_o those_o holy_a man_n to_o who_o he_o write_v but_o as_o touch_v the_o other_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v discern_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o mean_v we_o must_v use_v no_o small_a industry_n scripture_n diligence_n must_v be_v use_v in_o compare_v scripture_n with_o scripture_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o confer_v place_n with_o place_n and_o by_o those_o which_o be_v most_o plain_a to_o judge_v of_o they_o which_o be_v most_o obscure_a and_o hereof_o it_o come_v that_o paul_n warn_v his_o scholar_n timothy_n 13._o 1._o tim._n 13._o that_o he_o shall_v be_v diligent_a in_o read_v and_o he_o himself_o when_o he_o lie_v bind_v at_o rome_n 13._o 2._o tim._n 4_o 13._o desire_v that_o troas_n may_v be_v send_v unto_o he_o with_o his_o book_n &_o parchment_n which_o he_o have_v leave_v behind_o by_o these_o thing_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o they_o which_o in_o the_o interpret_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v fall_v into_o error_n may_v impute_v it_o to_o themselves_o for_o that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v earnest_a enough_o in_o prayer_n nor_o yet_o use_v sufficient_a study_n about_o they_o neither_o ought_v any_o to_o be_v discourage_v from_o this_o excellent_a exercise_n similitude_n no_o man_n must_v be_v discourage_v with_o the_o homely_a stile_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o similitude_n because_o of_o the_o plain_a &_o homely_a phrase_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o even_o as_o within_o a_o simple_a shell_n be_v find_v a_o precious_a stone_n and_o out_o of_o sorry_a chaff_n be_v shake_v out_o most_o profitable_a corn_n so_o out_o of_o the_o plain_a and_o unpolished_a speech_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v bring_v to_o light_v the_o most_o sincere_a and_o manifest_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o above_o all_o thing_n take_v heed_n that_o thou_o approach_v not_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o thy_o mind_n be_v harden_v with_o a_o prejudicate_a opinion_n lay_v aside_o all_o affectation_n let_v thy_o come_n be_v whole_o to_o learn_v and_o not_o as_o be_v the_o use_n of_o heretic_n violent_o to_o draw_v they_o to_o thy_o opinion_n a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n 13_o wherefore_o the_o sure_a relief_n that_o be_v bring_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n and_o which_o be_v ever_o ready_a at_o hand_n scripture_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o master_n cook_n set_v before_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o rom._n consolation_n by_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o we_o must_v have_v always_o ready_a about_o we_o as_o our_o herb_n of_o comfort_n for_o if_o ignorance_n and_o blindness_n be_v our_o disease_n there_o light_n be_v by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v shake_v off_o if_o we_o be_v disquiet_v with_o many_o trouble_n and_o vexation_n of_o the_o mind_n or_o else_o if_o our_o conscience_n be_v overcharge_v with_o the_o heavy_a burden_n of_o our_o sin_n
also_o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v do_v these_o thing_n you_o shall_v do_v they_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o when_o as_o nevertheless_o they_o have_v appoint_v to_o eat_v and_o drink_v it_o alone_o and_o doubtless_o many_o other_o thing_n speak_v they_o secret_o and_o open_o in_o the_o mass_n as_o though_o many_o do_v communicate_v or_o shall_v communicate_v when_o as_o the_o sacrificer_n mean_v to_o do_v the_o same_o alone_a by_o himself_o indeed_o a_o lie_n be_v shameful_a always_o but_o then_o most_o shameful_a of_o all_o when_o it_o be_v commit_v in_o holy_a thing_n and_o before_o the_o lord_n 26_o but_o what_o shall_v we_o speak_v of_o their_o application_n they_o protest_v that_o they_o may_v at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n apply_v to_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a those_o sacrifice_n which_o they_o make_v 26._o abac._n 2_o 4._o eze._n 18_o 26._o but_o the_o scripture_n testify_v that_o every_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o his_o own_o faith_n and_o that_o all_o person_n in_o their_o own_o righteousness_n or_o unrighteousness_n shall_v either_o die_v or_o live_v but_o they_o say_v otherwise_o namely_o that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o help_v with_o their_o mass_n both_o quick_a and_o dead_a if_o they_o will_v attribute_v this_o unto_o prayer_n prayer_n we_o may_v help_v other_o by_o our_o prayer_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o will_v teach_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o by_o their_o prayer_n to_o help_v the_o necessity_n of_o other_o they_o may_v have_v be_v bear_v with_o but_o when_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o work_n itself_o namely_o of_o the_o mass_n have_v such_o virtue_n and_o strength_n in_o it_o as_o it_o may_v be_v a_o help_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o man_n that_o may_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a be_v do_v add_v also_o that_o mass_n be_v many_o time_n celebrate_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o some_o saint_n which_o thing_n undoubted_o be_v most_o strange_a from_o the_o truth_n for_o christ_n institute_v his_o supper_n to_o the_o end_n it_o shall_v be_v a_o remembrance_n of_o his_o own_o death_n and_o not_o a_o commemoration_n of_o other_o saint_n i_o speak_v not_o how_o it_o common_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o find_v certain_a of_o those_o saint_n who_o there_o they_o worship_v write_v the_o life_n of_o many_o of_o the_o saint_n be_v false_o write_v the_o life_n of_o they_o be_v obscure_a and_o oftentimes_o full_a of_o fable_n and_o feign_n of_o poet_n also_o therein_o be_v place_v certain_a yea_o very_o many_o strange_a rite_n ridiculous_a sign_n and_o garment_n not_o use_v the_o signification_n of_o which_o thing_n be_v utterlie_o unknowen_a not_o only_o to_o the_o stander_n by_o but_o even_o the_o sacrificer_n themselves_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v demand_v what_o the_o matter_n mean_v can_v not_o tell_v what_o answer_n to_o make_v wherefore_o either_o they_o answer_v nothing_o at_o all_o or_o else_o if_o they_o will_v fain_o say_v somewhat_o they_o allege_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o diverslie_o disagree_v one_o from_o another_o whereby_o thou_o may_v easy_o gather_v that_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o their_o word_n so_o as_o faith_n have_v no_o place_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v in_o their_o mass_n see_v it_o have_v place_n there_o only_o where_o god_n word_n offer_v itself_o to_o us._n 27_o and_o that_o they_o can_v clear_v themselves_o worship_v in_o the_o mass_n image_n be_v worship_v but_o that_o they_o offend_v in_o the_o crime_n of_o idolatry_n the_o image_n testify_v whereunto_o they_o turn_v themselves_o do_v celebrate_v their_o most_o unpure_a service_n for_o in_o their_o mass_n they_o be_v not_o satisfy_v by_o look_v upon_o image_n but_o they_o cense_v they_o &_o kneel_v before_o they_o and_o final_o do_v unto_o they_o all_o manner_n of_o honour_n which_o shall_v be_v show_v unto_o god_n alone_o and_o because_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v before_o they_o dare_v affirm_v that_o the_o mass_n have_v i_o know_v not_o what_o affinity_n with_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v from_o the_o purpose_n and_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v do_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o token_n to_o show_v that_o the_o old_a ethnik_n may_v with_o much_o better_a probability_n excuse_v and_o plead_v for_o their_o sacrifice_n than_o these_o man_n may_v defend_v their_o mass_n for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o nation_n do_v less_o differ_v from_o the_o manner_n of_o sacrifice_v which_o the_o father_n have_v before_o the_o law_n and_o which_o god_n allow_v in_o his_o law_n than_o these_o do_v differ_v in_o their_o mass_n from_o that_o supper_n which_o christ_n appoint_v and_o the_o evangelist_n and_o paul_n the_o apostle_n teach_v there_o on_o both_o side_n be_v invocation_n of_o god_n a_o temple_n a_o altar_n sacrifice_n priest_n kill_v shed_v of_o blood_n salt_n wine_n oil_n meal_n a_o holy_a banquet_n religious_a garment_n wash_n fumigation_n continual_a fire_n singing_z oracle_n and_o such_o like_a which_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o rehearse_v let_v the_o popish_a sacrificer_n show_v we_o if_o they_o can_v in_o their_o mass_n as_o many_o thing_n that_o can_v agree_v with_o those_o which_o christ_n do_v in_o his_o holy_a supper_n but_o if_o so_o be_v they_o can_v let_v they_o then_o think_v that_o their_o mass_n do_v no_o more_o agree_v with_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n than_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o idolater_n accord_v with_o the_o legal_a sacrifice_n let_v they_o cease_v therefore_o from_o dandle_v that_o little_a daughter_n of_o they_o and_o say_v no_o more_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n i_o will_v speak_v little_a of_o the_o yéerelie_o obit_n and_o funeral_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v so_o often_o frequent_v whereof_o god_n give_v no_o commandment_n by_o it_o they_o establish_v purgatory_n whereof_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v make_v no_o mention_n furthermore_o this_o be_v most_o of_o all_o from_o piety_n that_o in_o their_o mass_n they_o pour_v out_o their_o prayer_n unto_o saint_n already_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n final_o all_o the_o thing_n wherewith_o they_o there_o busy_v themselves_o they_o make_v a_o market_n of_o yea_o they_o sell_v they_o they_o bargain_n and_o set_v they_o out_o to_o most_o shameful_a gain_n wherefore_o we_o have_v need_n to_o take_v very_o great_a heed_n lest_o while_o we_o do_v desire_n to_o worship_n god_n and_o have_v he_o merciful_a unto_o we_o we_o by_o hear_v of_o mass_n provoke_v he_o not_o excéedinglie_o unto_o wrath_n 28_o the_o superstitious_a sort_n proceed_v and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o naaman_n the_o syrian_a will_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v permit_v they_o to_o be_v present_a at_o most_o corrupt_a mass_n 18._o 2._o kin._n 6_o 18._o naaman_n pray_v elizaeus_n the_o prophet_n that_o if_o he_o bow_v his_o knee_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o idol_n when_o the_o king_n who_o lean_v his_o hand_n on_o his_o shoulder_n shall_v so_o do_v he_o will_v earnest_o crave_v of_o god_n mercy_n &_o forgiveness_n for_o he_o to_o who_o elizaeus_n only_o answer_v go_v in_o peace_n these_o fellow_n ought_v to_o consider_v with_o themselves_o whether_o they_o only_a and_o alone_o have_v read_v and_o see_v the_o discourse_n of_o this_o history_n i_o think_v not_o 8._o look_v par_fw-fr 3_o pl._n 11._o art_n 8._o for_o the_o holy_a martyr_n in_o the_o old_a church_n be_v studious_a day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o as_o these_o example_n be_v not_o hide_v from_o they_o and_o what_o cause_n be_v there_o then_o that_o they_o will_v not_o follow_v such_o a_o example_n and_o that_o with_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o life_n those_o ancient_a champion_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n see_v no_o doubt_n that_o which_o our_o adversary_n make_v no_o account_n of_o among_o themselves_o namely_o that_o the_o same_o naaman_n which_o be_v object_v against_o we_o be_v new_o convert_v unto_o the_o true_a god_n and_o be_v yet_o a_o novice_n who_o also_o be_v not_o yet_o provide_v to_o renounce_v both_o his_o substance_n and_o himself_o also_o but_o after_o a_o sort_n desire_v to_o retain_v his_o old_a place_n and_o dignity_n about_o the_o king_n the_o which_o if_o he_o shall_v obtain_v offensive_a naaman_n know_v that_o fact_n of_o he_o to_o be_v unblamable_a and_o offensive_a he_o see_v that_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v fall_v into_o that_o sin_n which_o he_o declare_v unto_o the_o holy_a prophet_n but_o when_o he_o have_v very_o well_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o true_a godliness_n he_o require_v prayer_n and_o intercession_n of_o the_o true_a god_n whereby_o he_o fall_v through_o weakness_n may_v have_v his_o fault_n forgive_v he_o otherwise_o there_o be_v none_o which_o need_v to_o ask_v pardon_n of_o
outward_a service_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o ceremony_n beside_o a_o inward_a worship_v wherefore_o it_o be_v right_o say_v 13._o deut._n 6_o 13._o fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o moreover_o christ_n do_v fight_v with_o this_o place_n against_o the_o devil_n say_v 10_o matth._n 4_o 10_o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o thou_o shall_v serve_v whereupon_o augustine_n devise_v a_o difference_n between_o religious_a worshipping_n call_v that_o which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o difference_n between_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a to_o do_v unto_o creature_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o 49._o epistle_n ad_fw-la deo_fw-la gratias_fw-la and_o against_o faustus_n the_o 20._o book_n and_o 21._o chapter_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o service_n which_o be_v only_o do_v unto_o the_o godhead_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o same_o can_v in_o one_o word_n be_v express_v of_o the_o latin_n also_o in_o the_o 20._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o first_o chapter_n he_o write_v very_o much_o of_o this_o matter_n sure_o for_o my_o part_n i_o have_v not_o read_v of_o any_o such_o distinction_n in_o the_o father_n before_o augustine_n time_n and_o certeinlie_o laurentius_n valla_n upon_o matthew_n the_o 4._o chapter_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n as_o concern_v the_o word_n because_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v as_o well_o to_o serve_v god_n as_o man_n and_o he_o allege_v a_o place_n out_o of_o xenophon_n where_o a_o husband_n say_v that_o he_o be_v ready_a with_o his_o soul_n that_o be_v his_o life_n to_o redeem_v that_o his_o wife_n shall_v not_o serve_v any_o man_n in_o which_o place_n he_o use_v the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o the_o wife_n say_v that_o she_o will_v redeem_v with_o her_o life_n that_o her_o husband_n may_v not_o serve_v where_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v write_v and_o suidas_n say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o serve_v for_o reward_n and_o undoubted_o according_a to_o this_o sense_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v interpret_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o where_o it_o be_v command_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o manner_n of_o servile_a work_n do_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o the_o greek_n signify_v a_o handmaid_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o manseruant_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o reward_n whereupon_o in_o time_n past_a latrones_fw-la be_v call_v mercenary_a soldier_n who_o some_o i_o know_v not_o how_o well_o have_v think_v so_o to_o be_v call_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v laterones_n as_o they_o that_o shall_v guard_v the_o person_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o luke_n it_o be_v write_v you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n 13._o luk._n 16_o 13._o where_o for_o serve_v the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v write_v as_o common_a unto_o both_o the_o service_n paul_n also_o call_v himself_o in_o many_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d christi_fw-la 1._o rom._n 1_o 1._o phil._n 1_o 1._o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o act_n he_o say_v that_o he_o continue_v among_o the_o ephesian_n 19_o acts._n 20_o 19_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d serve_v god._n and_o unto_o the_o colossian_n he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v 24._o col._n 3_o 24._o serve_v god_n but_o augustine_n himself_o seem_v not_o constant_o to_o have_v retain_v that_o difference_n for_o in_o the_o 94._o question_n upon_o exodus_fw-la he_o handle_v these_o word_n in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n if_o thou_o serve_v other_o god_n they_o will_v make_v thou_o fall_v to_o sin_n in_o this_o place_n say_v he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 33._o verse_n 33._o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v due_a unto_o god_n himself_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v our_o god_n 13_o but_o pass_v over_o the_o word_n god_n one_o manner_n of_o honour_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n and_o another_o unto_o god_n let_v we_o rather_o deal_v with_o the_o matter_n itself_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o honour_n which_o we_o attribute_v unto_o god_n be_v not_o that_o which_o we_o give_v unto_o man_n for_o that_o be_v the_o high_a honour_n which_o be_v give_v to_o one_o only_a god_n and_o it_o chéeflie_o consist_v in_o these_o thing_n first_o that_o we_o repose_v in_o he_o all_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o we_o account_v he_o for_o our_o chief_a happiness_n by_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o without_o add_v of_o any_o condition_n but_o even_o simple_o and_o absolute_o but_o unto_o prince_n we_o must_v submit_v ourselves_o and_o all_o that_o be_v we_o yet_o so_o as_o they_o command_v we_o not_o to_o do_v thing_n repugnant_a unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o unto_o god_n we_o be_v subject_a without_o any_o manner_n of_o condition_n or_o exception_n furthermore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o simple_o and_o absolute_o and_o that_o we_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v as_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n in_o give_v he_o thanks_o for_o all_o the_o benefit_n which_o daily_o do_v happen_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o must_v declare_v his_o honour_n by_o outward_a call_n upon_o he_o also_o some_o honour_n be_v due_a unto_o the_o excellent_a creature_n such_o as_o be_v prince_n prophet_n and_o godly_a man_n wherefore_o augustine_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 22._o book_n and_o 10._o chapter_n write_v that_o those_o be_v to_o be_v honour_v in_o the_o right_n of_o charity_n and_o society_n for_o we_o hold_v they_o for_o our_o fellow_n and_o brethren_n and_o therefore_o we_o love_v they_o we_o wish_v well_o unto_o they_o and_o we_o joy_n with_o they_o in_o their_o good_a hap_n moreover_o in_o his_o book_n of_o true_a religion_n 25._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o we_o must_v honour_v excellent_a man_n in_o respect_n of_o imitation_n by_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o their_o good_a life_n when_o as_o yet_o in_o respect_n of_o religion_n they_o must_v not_o be_v worship_v and_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o honour_n paul_n write_v say_v in_o give_v honour_n go_v one_o before_o another_o 10_o rom._n 12._o 10_o again_o as_o brethren_n they_o be_v to_o be_v holpen_v with_o mutual_a good_a turn_n further_o in_o the_o church_n the_o saint_n be_v only_o commend_v and_o the_o noble_a gift_n which_o god_n bestow_v upon_o they_o be_v celebrate_v after_o such_o a_o manner_n 1._o luke_n 16_o 1._o as_o christ_n allow_v of_o the_o faithful_a and_o diligent_a servant_n which_o right_o and_o prudentlie_o behave_v himself_o in_o order_v of_o the_o money_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v but_o and_o if_o so_o be_v they_o will_v use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o kind_n of_o worship_v we_o will_v that_o they_o may_v retain_v it_o so_o that_o they_o know_v the_o same_o distinction_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o have_v invent_v also_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o most_o excellent_a creature_n namely_o unto_o marie_n and_o to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n a_o difference_n of_o honour_n we_o disallow_v not_o but_o those_o thing_n which_o apperteine_a only_a to_o the_o high_a god_n we_o can_v not_o suffer_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o creature_n which_o thing_n out_o of_o doubt_n they_o do_v for_o they_o prostrate_v themselves_o before_o image_n they_o light_a wax_n candle_n to_o they_o and_o at_o they_o they_o invocate_v those_o dead_a man_n which_o be_v represent_v by_o they_o augustine_n in_o many_o place_n take_v away_o from_o all_o creature_n church_n priesthood_n sacrifice_n and_o altar_n but_o that_o prayer_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christian_n no_o man_n doubt_v yet_o the_o papist_n have_v communicate_v all_o these_o thing_n not_o only_o unto_o man_n depart_v this_o life_n but_o also_o unto_o image_n and_o picture_n and_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o do_n they_o use_v many_o sophistication_n when_o as_o god_n notwithstanding_o plain_o speak_v and_o forbid_v that_o image_n shall_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v make_v unto_o religious_a worship_v and_o that_o which_o he_o have_v absolute_o speak_v and_o command_v must_v not_o be_v cunning_o shift_v off_o by_o man_n craftiness_n 14_o but_o it_o be_v good_a to_o
and_o sanctify_v we_o and_o so_o enrich_v we_o with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o and_o with_o other_o heavenly_a gift_n as_o now_o we_o be_v destitute_a neither_o of_o strength_n neither_o of_o force_n neither_o of_o light_n neither_o of_o any_o faculty_n to_o let_v we_o whereby_o we_o shall_v the_o less_o either_o will_n or_o work_v aright_o and_o thus_o we_o shall_v retain_v a_o cheerful_a and_o quiet_a life_n even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o persecution_n which_o often_o the_o world_n and_o satan_n do_v stir_v up_o so_o that_o we_o be_v most_o full_o persuade_v by_o that_o holy_a spirit_n that_o we_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n and_o that_o not_o of_o our_o own_o merit_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o live_v and_o reign_v for_o ever_o amen_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n 35_o this_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v so_o apt_o knit_v unto_o the_o other_o that_o go_v before_o similitude_n the_o spirit_n be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o church_n two_o similitude_n as_o to_o any_o man_n that_o be_v of_o sound_a judgement_n the_o former_a may_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o root_n or_o stem_v of_o the_o latter_a out_o of_o which_o this_o latter_a article_n arise_v and_o bud_v forth_o as_o a_o most_o fit_a branch_n and_o that_o be_v show_v unto_o we_o after_o this_o sort_n in_o whatsoever_o body_n life_n be_v place_v the_o power_n and_o strength_n thereof_o be_v to_o guide_v and_o also_o by_o a_o most_o sure_a bond_n to_o unite_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n by_o how_o great_a a_o space_n soever_o they_o be_v dissever_v one_o from_o the_o other_o even_o so_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o godly_a which_o common_o if_o the_o beléever_n be_v consider_v of_o in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v earthly_a man_n be_v call_v the_o church_n how_o much_o soever_o it_o be_v compact_v of_o sundry_a people_n and_o have_v her_o part_n settle_v a_o great_a space_n one_o from_o another_o in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o as_o much_o as_o the_o uttermost_a quarter_n of_o the_o world_n be_v distant_a by_o the_o space_n of_o region_n from_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v join_v knit_v and_o couch_v together_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n it_o be_v by_o paul_n compare_v to_o a_o body_n and_o that_o oftentimes_o in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n and_o corinthian_n 12_o ephe._n 4_o 12_o and_z 5_o 23._o 1._o co._n 12_o 12_o but_o by_o what_o bond_n the_o christian_n who_o so_o great_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o whether_o respect_n be_v to_o their_o condition_n country_n or_o language_n be_v so_o strict_o knit_v together_o it_o be_v sufficient_o understand_v by_o the_o order_n which_o join_v this_o latter_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n unto_o the_o former_a for_o there_o our_o faith_n confess_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o here_o it_o treat_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o with_o a_o sincere_a faith_n embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v by_o he_o gather_v together_o in_o one_o signify_v what_o the_o name_n church_n signify_v and_o this_o congregation_n by_o a_o greek_a name_n be_v call_v ecclesia_fw-la which_o signify_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o a_o multitude_n call_v together_o for_o it_o be_v compact_v of_o they_o which_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v unto_o the_o christian_n faith_n from_o the_o which_o they_o be_v exclude_v which_o by_o a_o humane_a motion_n or_o persuasion_n or_o double_a heart_n or_o by_o any_o other_o sinister_a mean_n without_o any_o instinct_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v join_v themselves_o unto_o it_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n even_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v artificiallie_o join_v unto_o a_o humane_a body_n some_o piece_n of_o a_o bone_n of_o a_o sinew_n of_o a_o gristle_n or_o else_o a_o piece_n of_o flesh_n these_o be_v not_o therefore_o account_v part_n of_o that_o body_n see_v they_o be_v not_o move_v by_o the_o life_n thereof_o but_o they_o altogether_o depend_v of_o this_o cunning_a art_n even_o so_o indeed_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v here_o find_v upon_o the_o earth_n to_o wit_n the_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o which_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o one_o not_o by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n or_o by_o any_o cunning_a craft_n of_o the_o world_n but_o by_o the_o only_a spirit_n of_o christ_n not_o doubtless_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v contain_v together_o in_o one_o place_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v retain_v one_o true_a understanding_n of_o faith_n body_n the_o church_n be_v a_o mystical_a body_n 36_o by_o these_o thing_n therefore_o you_o understand_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o mystical_a body_n the_o which_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hereby_o also_o it_o be_v manifest_a enough_o who_o they_o be_v that_o apperteine_a unto_o the_o same_o and_o who_o live_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o further_o it_o be_v not_o obscure_v how_o apt_o the_o name_n of_o church_n agree_v unto_o it_o first_o it_o be_v evident_o prove_v that_o this_o marvelous_a body_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o those_o word_n which_o paul_n teach_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n we_o say_v he_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n 4._o ephe._n 4_o 4._o again_o also_o it_o be_v more_o plain_o show_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 13._o 1._o co._n 12_o 13._o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptise_a into_o one_o body_n and_o have_v droonke_v of_o one_o spirit_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o whosoever_o be_v destitute_a of_o that_o spirit_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o this_o body_n for_o he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n how_o can_v he_o assure_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o other_o life_n than_o the_o divine_a spirit_n itself_o undoubted_o it_o suffice_v not_o it_o suffice_v not_o i_o say_v to_o put_v on_o certain_a colourable_a show_n whereby_o we_o shall_v be_v take_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n for_o member_n of_o that_o body_n peter_n be_v call_v of_o christ_n bless_v not_o because_o he_o confess_v he_o with_o outward_a voice_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o because_o neither_o flesh_n nor_o blood_n nor_o any_o humane_a reason_n have_v reveal_v unto_o he_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n but_o only_o the_o heavenly_a father_n paul_n also_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n in_o the_o place_n above_o recite_v write_v that_o no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o lord_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o which_o place_n it_o be_v manifest_a what_o confession_n at_o the_o least_o be_v require_v in_o the_o church_n namely_o not_o that_o which_o proceed_v of_o man_n sense_n but_o that_o which_o be_v stir_v up_o and_o bring_v forth_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o otherwise_o the_o divelles_n themselves_n and_o also_o the_o mahumetanes_n in_o their_o alcoran_n do_v ascribe_v a_o certain_a honour_n unto_o christ_n while_o they_o confess_v his_o praise_n 37_o but_o here_o may_v appear_v some_o difficulty_n invisible_a whether_o and_o how_o far_o forth_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a what_o be_v the_o church_n invisible_a that_o it_o can_v be_v perceive_v in_o the_o world_n with_o corporal_a eye_n and_o do_v not_o the_o very_a sense_n itself_o tell_v that_o the_o company_n of_o man_n be_v there_o gather_v together_o for_o celebrate_v and_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n how_o then_o be_v that_o beléeve_v which_o be_v see_v be_v faith_n carry_v unto_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o manifest_a and_o be_v subject_a even_o to_o the_o sense_n themselves_o hereunto_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o multitude_n of_o man_n which_o outward_o profess_v christ_n be_v indeed_o see_v of_o we_o but_o not_o suff●icently_o know_v of_o we_o because_o we_o apprehend_v it_o with_o our_o outward_a sense_n as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v but_o we_o believe_v certeinlie_o that_o this_o company_n of_o man_n do_v so_o come_v together_o as_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v no_o humane_a work_n a_o philosopher_n or_o some_o other_o heathen_a man_n will_v object_v that_o such_o assembly_n be_v sect_n of_o man_n which_o may_v spring_v up_o of_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a opinion_n and_o be_v bring_v forth_o into_o light_n according_a as_o place_n and_o time_n require_v undoubted_o we_o live_v not_o by_o the_o industry_n of_o man_n but_o this_o work_n must_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o we_o have_v before_o confess_v neither_o must_v we_o pass_v over_o the_o cause_n catholic_a why_o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_a why_o the_o church_n be_v call_v
by_o faith_n be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o it_o may_v be_v sound_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n for_o they_o which_o be_v true_a member_n of_o this_o body_n under_o the_o head_n christ_n and_o this_o treatise_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n we_o will_v for_o the_o easy_a understanding_n divide_v into_o three_o point_n to_o be_v consider_v consider_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o which_o the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o by_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n but_o here_o must_v we_o see_v by_o what_o way_n and_o mean_v the_o lord_n be_v wont_v to_o give_v this_o grace_n and_o spirit_n the_o which_o we_o can_v otherwise_o define_v than_o by_o faith_n for_o the_o benefit_n which_o god_n offer_v unto_o we_o be_v meet_a to_o be_v receive_v of_o he_o that_o will_v enjoy_v they_o and_o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o receive_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o we_o by_o he_o whereunto_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n necessary_o require_v faith_n two_o thing_n necessary_o require_v in_o faith_n one_o be_v that_o that_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o which_o be_v good_a the_o other_o that_o we_o give_v our_o consent_n but_o to_o receive_v &_o consent_n we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o shall_v inwardlie_o persuade_v the_o mind_n for_o otherwise_o a_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o natural_a corruption_n will_v turn_v away_o himself_o as_o to_o who_o these_o promise_n of_o god_n these_o mercy_n offer_v and_o this_o remission_n of_o sin_n may_v natural_o seem_v not_o likely_a to_o be_v true_a and_o to_o be_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n and_o he_o will_v be_v far_o from_o the_o through_o consideration_n of_o they_o see_v as_o the_o philosopher_n themselves_o also_o say_v he_o will_v no_o less_o be_v blind_v unto_o divine_a thing_n than_o the_o mole_n be_v at_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n whereof_o there_o be_v a_o testimony_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o natural_a man_n say_v he_o understand_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o he_o that_o we_o may_v have_v need_n of_o that_o inward_a move_n lest_o we_o shall_v refuse_v the_o benefit_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o us._n and_o indeed_o in_o this_o move_n there_o be_v two_o excellent_a gift_n the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o gift_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n offer_v unto_o us._n the_o second_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v offer_v shall_v be_v please_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o by_o give_v our_o assent_n we_o receive_v and_o embrace_v they_o which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v grant_v unto_o we_o none_o otherwise_o to_o be_v use_v but_o as_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n how_o excellent_a and_o great_a soever_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v by_o the_o which_o he_o free_o forgive_v our_o sin_n 44._o act_n 10_o 44._o wherefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n while_o peter_n yet_o speak_v the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v down_o upon_o they_o which_o hear_v he_o 17._o rom._n 10_o 17._o and_o by_o paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v say_v that_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o as_o the_o church_n preach_v continual_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o her_o minister_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n offer_v in_o her_o sermon_n reconciliation_n by_o christ_n it_o give_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o that_o by_o the_o outward_a ministry_n it_o pronounce_v the_o same_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o which_o through_o attentive_a ear_n as_o through_o a_o conduit_n both_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v slow_a in_o even_o unto_o our_o hart_n wherefore_o it_o be_v most_o firm_o conclude_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o very_a same_o mean_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v be_v the_o original_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o thing_n see_v it_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o church_n only_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o sin_n be_v forgive_v no_o where_o else_o word_n sacrament_n be_v visible_a word_n 45_o a_o other_o consideration_n we_o will_v add_v which_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o be_v visible_a word_n of_o this_o absolution_n for_o even_o as_o the_o word_n sound_v and_o be_v hear_v in_o the_o voice_n so_o in_o a_o visible_a and_o evident_a sign_n a_o sacrament_n do_v speak_v and_o admonish_v we_o unto_o the_o which_o we_o give_v credit_n obtain_v in_o very_a deed_n that_o which_o it_o do_v promise_n and_o signify_v neither_o do_v we_o otherwise_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o signification_n hereof_o than_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o have_v above_o declare_v but_o think_v you_o not_o that_o sin_n be_v forgive_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o work_n that_o be_v wrought_v through_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n see_v this_o we_o obtain_v by_o faith_n while_o we_o believe_v that_o which_o it_o visible_o teach_v we_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o sacrament_n may_v be_v of_o the_o same_o value_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sacrament_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v offer_v by_o the_o word_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o sacrament_n for_o even_o as_o this_o word_n signify_v and_o give_v in_o very_a deed_n unto_o the_o beléever_n whatsoever_o it_o do_v promise_n so_o baptism_n be_v by_o faith_n receive_v both_o signify_v and_o give_v to_o the_o beléever_n remission_n of_o sin_n the_o which_o it_o promise_v by_o a_o visible_a speak_n but_o indeed_o it_o may_v be_v object_v unto_o i_o if_o so_o be_v that_o sin_n as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v be_v forgive_v unto_o they_o which_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o by_o preach_v it_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o how_o can_v they_o then_o again_o be_v forgive_v by_o baptism_n i_o answer_v that_o as_o touch_v god_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o absolution_n be_v all_o one_o and_o as_o concern_v our_o sin_n the_o remission_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o the_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v as_o often_o confirm_v and_o renew_v in_o we_o as_o we_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o word_n whereby_o the_o same_o be_v signify_v unto_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o by_o visible_a sign_n it_o be_v all_o one_o so_o that_o how_o often_o soever_o we_o either_o hear_v the_o word_n or_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o faith_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v assure_v unto_o we_o whereby_o no_o small_a faith_n be_v inwardlie_o pour_v into_o us._n sacrament_n a_o benefit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o ought_v to_o seem_v no_o marvel_n unto_o any_o man_n wherefore_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n see_v that_o by_o they_o his_o pleasure_n be_v that_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v have_v recourse_n into_o the_o beléever_n no_o less_o than_o by_o the_o outward_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n even_o as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o daily_a experience_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o neither_o of_o these_o can_v profit_v any_o man_n without_o faith_n wherefore_o we_o have_v hitherto_o declare_v two_o mean_n by_o which_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o two_o way_n whereby_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v set_v forth_o unto_o they_o that_o believe_v but_o and_o if_o thou_o demand_v which_o of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o name_n signify_v this_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v baptism_n in_o the_o which_o we_o be_v wash_v with_o visible_a water_n be_v a_o sign_n that_o we_o by_o christ_n obtain_v spiritual_a cleanse_n and_o that_o be_v it_o which_o paul_n teach_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n that_o god_n have_v purge_v his_o church_n with_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n of_o life_n 26._o ephe._n 5_o 26._o 46_o but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v excommunication_n of_o excommunication_n what_o be_v the_o three_o mean_v of_o this_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o church_n by_o the_o singular_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n have_v right_a and_o authority_n as_o it_o have_v be_v already_o say_v to_o cut_v off_o from_o she_o by_o excommunication_n they_o that_o be_v obstinate_a the_o order_n whereof_o christ_n have_v describe_v and_o teach_v unto_o she_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n 17._o mat._n 18_o 17._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o brotherlie_a correction_n whereby_o man_n be_v admonish_v that_o unless_o they_o do_v repent_v it_o shall_v proceed_v even_o to_o the_o uttermost_a punishment_n of_o separation_n the_o which_o so_o long_o may_v stand_v in_o
will_v not_o but_o here_o also_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o antecedent_n will_v of_o the_o sign_n together_o whether_o christ_n be_v let_v that_o he_o can_v not_o gather_v the_o elect_v together_o whereby_o god_n by_o his_o prophet_n preacher_n apostle_n and_o scripture_n many_o time_n invite_v the_o jew_n to_o fly_v unto_o he_o by_o repentance_n which_o yet_o they_o refuse_v to_o do_v but_o yet_o god_n by_o his_o effectual_a will_n which_o they_o call_v consequent_a perpetuallie_o draw_v to_o he_o those_o that_o be_v he_o neither_o be_v there_o ever_o any_o age_n wherein_o he_o gather_v not_o together_o as_o many_o of_o the_o hebrews_n as_o he_o have_v predestinate_v therefore_o augustine_n say_v those_o which_o i_o will_v i_o have_v gather_v together_o although_o thou_o will_v not_o they_o think_v also_o that_o this_o make_v on_o their_o side_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n inexcusable_a rom._n 1_o 20._o how_o the_o gentile_n be_v say_v to_o be_v inexcusable_a concern_v the_o gentile_n namely_o that_o they_o be_v inexcusable_a which_o they_o say_v can_v not_o have_v be_v say_v unless_o unto_o every_o man_n be_v give_v so_o much_o grace_n and_o help_v as_o may_v suffice_v unto_o salvation_n but_o this_o be_v to_o be_v know_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n intrete_v only_o of_o knowledge_n namely_o that_o the_o gentile_n can_v not_o excuse_v their_o sin_n for_o that_o they_o have_v not_o a_o law_n give_v unto_o they_o of_o god_n as_o have_v the_o jew_n neither_o for_o that_o god_n have_v not_o in_o such_o sort_n open_v himself_o unto_o they_o as_o he_o manifest_v himself_o unto_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n you_o know_v god_n say_v he_o by_o his_o creature_n and_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n you_o want_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o right_n and_o of_o wrong_n therefore_o you_o be_v inexcusable_a wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o this_o sentence_n extend_v further_a than_o for_o the_o which_o paul_n speak_v it_o and_o if_o also_o thou_o weigh_v the_o matter_n better_o thou_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o ethnik_n and_o ungodlie_a man_n against_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v think_v not_o that_o they_o want_v strength_n to_o perform_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v upright_o forsomuch_o as_o they_o ascribe_v all_o thing_n unto_o frée-will_a so_o as_o the_o apostle_n very_o well_o conclude_v against_o they_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v do_v you_o think_v that_o you_o have_v strength_n enough_o so_o that_o you_o judge_v that_o you_o have_v no_o need_n of_o christ_n but_o forsomuch_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o you_o want_v not_o knowledge_n &_o have_v notwithstanding_o live_v wicked_o i_o do_v therefore_o infer_v that_o you_o be_v inexcusable_a furthermore_o infirmity_n and_o want_n of_o ablenesse_n excuse_v not_o see_v that_o we_o have_v it_o not_o in_o ourselves_o by_o creation_n and_o by_o our_o first_o institution_n but_o by_o the_o fall_n and_o sin_n which_o be_v bring_v in_o into_o our_o whole_a kind_n by_o the_o first_o man_n the_o ethnik_v also_o be_v inexcusable_a for_o that_o they_o perform_v not_o that_o in_o civil_a justice_n which_o lie_v in_o they_o to_o do_v wherefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v infer_v of_o this_o place_n which_o can_v prove_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o adversary_n they_o think_v that_o this_o also_o make_v with_o they_o 29._o rom._n 3_o 29._o which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o selfsame_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n be_v god_n the_o god_n of_o jew_n only_o and_o not_o of_o the_o gentile_n also_o yes_o of_o the_o gentile_n also_o they_o labour_v of_o this_o place_n to_o infer_v that_o god_n give_v unto_o all_o man_n sufficient_a aid_n for_o that_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o man_n but_o they_o shall_v consider_v that_o paul_n there_o reprove_v the_o jew_n for_o that_o they_o think_v that_o the_o benevolence_n &_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v so_o bind_v unto_o they_o that_o the_o gentile_n be_v utterlie_o exclude_v so_o than_o he_o declare_v that_o god_n have_v not_o only_o elect_v some_o of_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o have_v his_o elect_a among_o the_o gentile_n neither_o follow_v in_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n that_o unto_o all_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v give_v grace_n which_o may_v suffice_v unto_o salvation_n see_v that_o neither_o all_o the_o jew_n be_v partaker_n of_o such_o grace_n and_o we_o speak_v this_o man_n god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o man_n not_o as_o though_o we_o deny_v god_n to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o man_n for_o we_o know_v that_o even_o the_o wicked_a also_o will_v they_o or_o will_v they_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o neither_o can_v they_o avoid_v his_o providence_n who_o although_o he_o bring_v not_o to_o eternal_a salvation_n yet_o at_o the_o least_o way_n he_o punish_v they_o for_o their_o evil_a desert_n be_v who_o god_n god_n be_v peculiarlie_o say_v to_o be_v but_o he_o be_v peculiarlie_o say_v to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o they_o unto_o who_o he_o have_v give_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o god_n and_o have_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o worship_v he_o 47_o but_o that_o place_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o more_o difficulty_n 10._o 1._o tim._n 4_o 10._o which_o be_v write_v unto_o timothy_n where_o god_n be_v call_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o faithful_a man_n how_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n in_o which_o word_n this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v saviour_n be_v to_o be_v take_v not_o as_o though_o god_n give_v unto_o all_o man_n eternal_a salvation_n but_o as_o it_o signify_v that_o he_o preserve_v and_o defend_v all_o man_n from_o many_o evil_n which_o otherwise_o the_o devil_n practise_v against_o they_o for_o so_o great_a be_v his_o rage_n against_o mankind_n that_o if_o he_o be_v not_o restrain_v of_o god_n he_o will_v destroy_v all_o thing_n he_o will_v suffer_v no_o commonwealth_n nor_o church_n but_o will_v bring_v to_o naught_o both_o good_n and_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o perteine_a to_o man_n life_n so_o therefore_o god_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n in_o that_o he_o drive_v away_o so_o great_a evil_n from_o man_n but_o as_o touch_v eternal_a salvation_n that_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o elect_a only_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v add_v 21._o rom._n 10_o 21._o and_o especial_o of_o the_o faithful_a for_o see_v they_o be_v predestinate_v they_o above_o all_o other_o attain_v unto_o this_o benefit_n they_o wrest_v that_o also_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n esaie_n 1._o esaie_n 65_o 1._o which_o also_o paul_n have_v a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n all_o day_n long_o have_v i_o stretch_v out_o my_o hand_n unto_o a_o people_n that_o believe_v not_o but_o speak_v against_o i_o out_o of_o which_o place_n they_o can_v gather_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o which_o have_v oftentimes_o be_v say_v namely_o that_o all_o man_n universallie_o be_v invite_v of_o god_n that_o the_o prophet_n be_v send_v indifferent_o unto_o all_o man_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v set_v forth_o to_o all_o man_n but_o this_o make_v nothing_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o efficacy_n whereof_o we_o speak_v we_o grant_v also_o that_o he_o stand_v at_o the_o door_n and_o knock_v 20._o apoc._n 3_o 20._o &_o will_v enter_v in_o if_o any_o man_n will_v let_v he_o in_o but_o this_o they_o shall_v add_v that_o there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o can_v of_o himself_o open_a but_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o be_v first_o give_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o méree_a goodness_n of_o he_o that_o knock_v and_o to_o commend_v also_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n they_o bring_v a_o sentence_n of_o esaie_n though_o a_o mother_n can_v forget_v her_o child_n 15._o esai_n 49_o 15._o yet_o will_v not_o i_o forget_v thou_o which_o sentence_n doubtless_o very_o little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o pertain_v to_o this_o matter_n whereof_o be_v now_o entreat_v who_o ever_o deny_v but_o that_o god_n be_v constant_a of_o faith_n &_o stand_v to_o his_o promise_n &_o covenant_n this_o do_v god_n in_o that_o place_n promise_v of_o himself_o namely_o that_o he_o will_v not_o forget_v his_o promise_n and_o we_o also_o everiewhere_o hitherto_o have_v teach_v that_o the_o predestination_n of_o god_n be_v most_o certain_a wherefore_o whether_o this_o place_n of_o esaie_n be_v understand_v of_o predestination_n or_o of_o the_o covenant_n and_o promise_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o thereof_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o man_n pighius_fw-la also_o can_v abide_v that_o which_o both_o augustine_n and_o we_o say_v namely_o that_o the_o reprobate_n do_v serve_v the_o purpose_n of_o god_n god_n whether_o the_o reprobate_a do_v serve_v the_o purpose_n of_o god_n to_o
make_v a_o liar_n wherefore_o if_o he_o have_v call_v we_o by_o a_o just_a &_o effectual_a call_n no_o doubt_n but_o he_o will_v perform_v the_o work_n that_o he_o have_v begin_v that_o on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n whether_o the_o same_o be_v the_o time_n of_o our_o death_n or_o the_o last_o time_n of_o inquisition_n when_o as_o sentence_n shall_v be_v give_v upon_o all_o mortal_a man_n we_o shall_v be_v reserve_v unblameable_a by_o he_o although_o we_o have_v oftentimes_o fall_v in_o this_o life_n which_o be_v our_o own_o infirmity_n touch_v this_o faith_n of_o god_n it_o be_v write_v unto_o the_o roman_n 3._o rom._n 3_o 3._o what_o if_o some_o of_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v shall_v their_o unbelief_n make_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n of_o none_o effect_v god_n forbid_v paul_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n reason_v 1._o cor._n 1_o 8._o paul_n manner_n of_o reason_v seem_v to_o reason_n on_o this_o wise_a now_o have_v you_o obtain_v grace_n by_o christ_n and_o by_o he_o you_o have_v obtain_v many_o gift_n wherefore_o you_o shall_v have_v that_o which_o remain_v that_o you_o may_v be_v unblameable_a in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o write_v in_o any_o other_o sense_n by_o the_o same_o apostle_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 29._o rom._n 11_o 29._o the_o call_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n wherefore_o let_v we_o also_o use_v this_o kind_n of_o argument_n if_o as_o it_o happen_v at_o any_o time_n our_o mind_n do_v quail_v objection_n a_o most_o comfortable_a argument_n in_o the_o dejection_n of_o our_o mind_n a_o objection_n we_o be_v call_v to_o salvation_n we_o have_v give_v credit_n to_o he_o that_o call_v we_o have_v obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o have_v get_v no_o mean_a gift_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o god_n will_v not_o cast_v away_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n thou_o demand_v touch_v thy_o call_n how_o i_o be_o able_a to_o determine_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o effectual_a call_n or_o no_o &_o of_o the_o faith_n wherewith_o thou_o be_v endue_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o temporal_a faith_n 16._o a_o answer_n thereunto_o rom._n 8_o 16._o i_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o token_n of_o the_o elect_a paul_n teach_v the_o church_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n secondlie_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o effect_n and_o as_o the_o schoolman_n say_v à_fw-la posteriore_fw-la that_o be_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v after_o good_a work_n do_v make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n certain_a for_o peter_n in_o his_o latter_a epistle_n and_o first_o chapter_n after_o he_o have_v speak_v large_o of_o work_n he_o add_v 10._o verse_n 10._o wherefore_o brethren_n endeavour_n yourselves_o rather_o to_o make_v your_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a but_o if_o thou_o shall_v again_o demand_v see_v the_o spirit_n of_o our_o neighbour_n be_v not_o well_o know_v unto_o we_o can_v there_o be_v any_o other_o way_n for_o we_o to_o judge_v of_o he_o than_o by_o work_n assure_o christ_n leave_v no_o other_o mean_n whereby_o we_o shall_v judge_v of_o our_o neighbour_n 16._o matt_n 7_o 16._o for_o he_o say_v by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o neighbour_n how_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o charity_n ought_v to_o persuade_v every_o man_n that_o when_o thou_o shall_v see_v thy_o brother_n to_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o church_n to_o lead_v a_o unblamed_a life_n and_o to_o maintain_v the_o right_a profess_a faith_n of_o such_o a_o man_n hope_v thou_o well_o and_o paul_n be_v in_o good_a hope_n of_o the_o corinthian_n 8._o 1._o cor._n 1_o 8._o partly_o of_o charity_n whereby_o he_o embrace_v they_o and_o partly_o for_o their_o work_n sake_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o which_o appéer_v to_o be_v many_o in_o their_o church_n partly_o he_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o he_o be_v warn_v that_o in_o that_o place_n there_o be_v much_o people_n which_o pertein_v unto_o god_n 10._o acts._n 18_o 10._o of_o grace_n concret_o in_o rom._n 1_o verse_n 21._o look_v before_o place_n 1._o art_n 38._o abstract_n be_v know_v by_o their_o concret_o 7_o this_o place_n put_v we_o in_o mind_n to_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o grace_n noun_n which_o as_o the_o logician_n say_v be_v put_v abstractlie_o as_o substantive_n be_v usual_o declare_v by_o their_o concret_o or_o adiective_n the_o signification_n of_o which_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o the_o sense_n wherefore_o let_v we_o first_o see_v what_o be_v signify_v among_o the_o latin_n by_o this_o word_n gratiosus_fw-la that_o be_v gracious_a he_o be_v say_v among_o all_o man_n to_o be_v gracious_a who_o all_o man_n favour_n and_o unto_o who_o good_a will_n be_v common_o bear_v even_o so_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v gracious_a which_o have_v find_v grace_n with_o god_n for_o so_o the_o scripture_n use_v to_o speak_v of_o they_o who_o god_n do_v favour_n and_o unto_o who_o he_o extend_v his_o love_n man_n we_o be_v one_o way_n gracious_a before_o god_n and_o a_o other_o way_n before_o man_n howbeit_o as_o concern_v this_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o god_n and_o man_n for_o man_n favour_v none_o but_o he_o in_o who_o they_o find_v thing_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v allure_v &_o draw_v to_o love_n wherefore_o it_o behoove_v that_o he_o which_o will_v be_v love_v of_o man_n have_v in_o himself_o the_o cause_n of_o love_n and_o good_a will_n but_o contrariwise_o god_n find_v nothing_o in_o man_n worthy_a to_o be_v belove_v whereby_o he_o may_v be_v induce_v to_o love_v they_o for_o he_o himself_o first_o love_v we_o and_o through_o that_o love_n he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v that_o may_v please_v he_o way_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v take_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n wherefore_o the_o name_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v understand_v two_o way_n first_o &_o chéeflie_o doubtless_o it_o signify_v the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n towards_o man_n and_o the_o frank_a and_o free_a favour_n that_o he_o bear_v unto_o the_o elect_a secondlie_o forsomuch_o as_o god_n do_v endue_v his_o elect_a with_o excellent_a gift_n grace_n do_v sometime_o signify_v even_o those_o gift_n which_o be_v free_o bestow_v upon_o we_o by_o god_n this_o two_o manner_n of_o signification_n of_o grace_n be_v well_o know_v do_v plain_o show_v with_o how_o great_a a_o diversity_n our_o adversary_n and_o we_o affirm_v one_o and_o the_o same_o sentence_n for_o both_o of_o we_o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o grace_n but_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o grace_n understand_v those_o gift_n which_o be_v bestow_v upon_o they_o that_o be_v justify_v namely_o the_o habit_n or_o ground_a disposition_n which_o be_v pour_v into_o they_o moreover_o good_a work_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n as_o god_n work_v in_o the_o elect_a but_o we_o forsomuch_o as_o we_o see_v that_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n these_o gift_n through_o our_o corruption_n be_v unperfect_a deny_v that_o we_o can_v be_v justify_v by_o they_o or_o that_o god_n judgement_n can_v by_o any_o mean_n be_v satisfy_v by_o they_o wherefore_o we_o understand_v that_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n christ_n what_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n and_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o only_a mere_a and_o sincere_a good_a will_n of_o god_n which_o he_o bear_v unto_o we_o of_o his_o own_o only_o mercy_n we_o say_v also_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n which_o his_o father_n bear_v he_o for_o see_v he_o be_v most_o gracious_a before_o he_o he_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o father_n also_o love_v we_o in_o he_o as_o his_o member_n and_o brethren_n by_o faith_n 8_o but_o the_o schoolman_n feign_v to_o themselves_o that_o grace_n be_v a_o habit_n pour_v into_o the_o soul_n whereby_o the_o soul_n may_v the_o easy_o be_v stir_v up_o &_o be_v the_o ready_a to_o do_v good_a work_n aristotle_n a_o devise_n of_o the_o schoolman_n learn_v out_o of_o the_o ethic_n of_o aristotle_n which_o devise_n of_o they_o they_o be_v not_o able_a any_o way_n to_o confirm_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v take_v it_o from_o the_o philosopher_n who_o teach_v in_o their_o ethic_n that_o faculty_n and_o power_n be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o habit_n of_o the_o mind_n whereby_o they_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v that_o which_o before_o they_o can_v not_o or_o
by_o faith_n take_v nothing_o away_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n do_v not_o take_v away_o any_o whit_n from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n wherefore_o very_o many_o be_v far_o deceive_v about_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o when_o we_o affirm_v that_o by_o faith_n we_o do_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n they_o straightway_o conclude_v that_o therefore_o we_o have_v not_o these_o thing_n indeed_o as_o though_o that_o by_o faith_n we_o apprehend_v a_o false_a flesh_n of_o christ_n or_o a_o feign_a blood_n of_o he_o neither_o yet_o be_v that_o true_a which_o be_v take_v as_o grant_v that_o we_o in_o any_o wise_a have_v sin_n because_o it_o be_v not_o impute_v unto_o we_o for_o see_v they_o which_o be_v justify_v do_v strive_v against_o sin_n and_o suffer_v not_o the_o same_o to_o have_v dominion_n over_o they_o therefore_o after_o a_o sort_n they_o be_v judge_v to_o have_v no_o sin_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o charity_n that_o it_o do_v justify_v that_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v object_v which_o we_o read_v in_o john_n god_n be_v charity_n 8._o 1._o john_n 4_o 8._o and_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o charity_n dwell_v in_o god_n and_o god_n in_o he_o howbeit_o this_o place_n be_v not_o very_o proper_a for_o charity_n for_o elsewhere_o it_o be_v write_v also_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n 54._o john_n 6_o 54._o dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o and_o again_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o 5._o john_n 15_o 5._o this_o man_n bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n and_o of_o they_o also_o which_o keep_v his_o commandment_n he_o say_v that_o he_o and_o the_o father_n will_v come_v and_o dwell_v with_o they_o 23_o john_n 14_o 23_o wherefore_o thou_o see_v that_o this_o abide_n which_o they_o object_n against_o we_o do_v happen_v unto_o we_o through_o many_o instrument_n or_o mean_n and_o yet_o be_v there_o not_o any_o man_n that_o will_v affirm_v we_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o all_o these_o thing_n us._n not_o all_o these_o thing_n by_o which_o god_n and_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o do_v justify_v us._n wherefore_o we_o need_v not_o labour_v to_o know_v by_o what_o mean_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o father_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o they_o but_o we_o must_v rather_o consider_v what_o be_v that_o by_o the_o which_o he_o first_o and_o principal_o dwell_v in_o us._n and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o such_o a_o conjunction_n spring_v not_o of_o any_o other_o cause_n than_o of_o election_n 28._o rom._n 8_o 28._o predestination_n and_o call_v according_a to_o his_o determinate_a purpose_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v contrive_v together_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n god_n by_o faith_n we_o first_o answer_v unto_o the_o call_n of_o god_n but_o that_o we_o first_o of_o all_o by_o faith_n answer_v unto_o the_o call_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v experience_n teach_v we_o otherwise_o when_o any_o thing_n be_v promise_v unto_o we_o by_o some_o man_n we_o than_o first_o of_o all_o cleave_v unto_o he_o when_o we_o give_v credit_n unto_o his_o saieng_n wherefore_o paul_n in_o another_o place_n write_v 17._o ephe._n 3_o 17._o that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n what_o be_v the_o union_n of_o the_o godly_a with_o christ_n beginning_n in_o rom._n 8_o at_o the_o beginning_n 35_o now_o must_v we_o see_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n first_o come_v in_o place_n that_o which_o be_v common_a unto_o all_o mortal_a man_n for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v join_v with_o all_o man_n for_o see_v they_o have_v fellowship_n with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o testify_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n christ_n heb._n 2_o 14._o what_o manner_n of_o conjunction_n we_o have_v with_o christ_n he_o also_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o this_o conjunction_n be_v general_a and_o weak_a and_o only_o as_o i_o may_v term_v it_o according_a to_o the_o matter_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n far_o differ_v from_o that_o nature_n which_o christ_n take_v upon_o he_o for_o the_o humane_a nature_n in_o christ_n be_v both_o immortal_a and_o exempt_v from_o sin_n and_o adorn_v with_o all_o pureness_n but_o our_o nature_n be_v unpure_a corruptible_a and_o miserable_o pollute_v with_o sin_n but_o if_o the_o same_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v so_o repair_v as_o it_o differ_v not_o much_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n yea_o so_o great_a be_v that_o affinity_n as_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n say_v 30._o ephe._n 5_o 30._o that_o we_o be_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n which_o form_n of_o speak_v seem_v to_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o true_o thus_o do_v brethren_n and_o kinsfolk_n there_o speak_v one_o of_o a_o other_o he_o be_v my_o bone_n phrase_n our_o bone_n and_o our_o flesh_n be_v the_o hebrew_n phrase_n and_o my_o flesh_n for_o they_o be_v come_v of_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o seed_n of_o the_o father_n and_o womb_n of_o the_o mother_n seem_v to_o acknowledge_v unto_o themselves_o one_o matter_n common_a to_o they_o all_o whereunto_o this_o further_v also_o that_o child_n draw_v of_o their_o parent_n not_o only_o a_o carnal_a and_o corpulent_a substance_n but_o also_o wit_n affection_n and_o disposition_n the_o very_a which_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v in_o we_o when_o we_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n for_o beside_o our_o nature_n which_o we_o have_v common_a with_o he_o we_o have_v as_o paul_n do_v advertise_v we_o in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 2_o 16._o phil._n 2_o 5._o his_o mind_n and_o according_a as_o paul_n require_v the_o philippian_n the_o selfsame_a sense_n let_v the_o selfsame_o sense_n say_v he_o be_v in_o you_o which_o be_v also_o in_o christ_n jesu_n this_o knit_n of_o we_o together_o with_o christ_n paul_n express_v by_o the_o similitude_n of_o engraff_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n wherein_o be_v very_o well_o perceive_v those_o two_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v now_o rehearse_v for_o the_o young_a slip_n that_o be_v graff_v and_o the_o stock_n whereinto_o it_o be_v graff_v be_v make_v one_o thing_n neither_o only_a be_v the_o matter_n which_o be_v diverse_a join_v together_o but_o they_o be_v also_o nourish_v together_o with_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o ivice_n spirit_n and_o life_n the_o self-same_a thing_n the_o apostle_n testify_v to_o be_v do_v in_o we_o when_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v graff_v into_o christ_n 15._o rom._n 6_o 15._o the_o same_o also_o do_v our_o saviour_n teach_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o john_n when_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o vine_n 5._o john_n 15_o 5._o and_o we_o the_o branch_n for_o the_o branch_n have_v the_o selfsame_o life_n common_a with_o the_o vine_n tree_n for_o they_o all_o spring_n out_o by_o one_o spirit_n and_o bring_v forth_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o fruit_n paul_n also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 23._o eph._n 5._o 23._o compare_v with_o matrimony_n that_o conjunction_n which_o we_o have_v with_o christ_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o great_a sign_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n for_o even_o as_o in_o matrimony_n matrimony_n our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n be_v compare_v with_o matrimony_n not_o only_o the_o body_n be_v make_v common_a between_o man_n and_o wife_n but_o also_o their_o affection_n &_o will_n be_v join_v together_o so_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v by_o a_o sure_a and_o firm_a ground_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n pronounce_v they_o free_a from_o sin_n which_o do_v abide_v in_o christ_n and_o be_v in_o he_o after_o such_o a_o sort_n as_o i_o have_v now_o declare_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v live_v his_o life_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n that_o he_o be_v and_o bring_v forth_o such_o fruit_n of_o work_n as_o differ_v not_o from_o his_o fruit_n and_o they_o which_o be_v such_o can_v fear_v condemnation_n or_o judgement_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v salvation_n itself_o as_o his_o own_o name_n declare_v wherefore_o they_o which_o be_v in_o he_o stand_v in_o no_o peril_n to_o be_v condemn_v hereunto_o we_o add_v that_o they_o also_o be_v in_o christ_n christ_n who_o be_v in_o christ_n which_o in_o all_o their_o affair_n depend_v upon_o he_o and_o who_o be_v move_v by_o his_o spirit_n whatsoever_o they_o take_v in_o hand_n or_o do_v for_o to_o depend_v upon_o he_o be_v nothing_o else_o than_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o go_v about_o
to_o have_v a_o regard_n unto_o he_o and_o only_o to_o seek_v his_o glory_n and_o they_o that_o be_v lead_v by_o his_o spirit_n follow_v not_o the_o affection_n and_o provocation_n of_o lust_n hereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o what_o sort_n faithful_a and_o godly_a man_n be_v in_o christ_n cause_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o christ_n by_o all_o kind_n of_o cause_n and_o that_o by_o all_o the_o kind_n of_o cause_n for_o christ_n and_o we_o have_v all_o one_o matter_n also_o we_o have_v the_o selfsame_o first_o entrance_n of_o form_n for_o we_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o selfsame_a note_n property_n and_o condition_n which_o he_o have_v the_o efficient_a cause_n whereby_o we_o be_v move_v to_o work_v be_v the_o same_o spirit_n whereby_o he_o be_v move_v last_o the_o end_n be_v all_o one_o namely_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n may_v be_v advance_v 36_o furthermore_n 12._o in_o 1._o cor._n 12_o 12._o every_o assembly_n and_o congregation_n of_o man_n which_o tend_v to_o a_o definite_a and_o certain_a end_n and_o be_v govern_v by_o prescript_n law_n may_v be_v call_v a_o body_n body_n what_o society_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o body_n wherefore_o a_o city_n a_o commonweal_n &_o a_o kingdom_n be_v call_v certain_a body_n because_o they_o have_v a_o certain_a end_n to_o wit_n that_o man_n may_v both_o be_v in_o good_a state_n as_o touch_v the_o body_n and_o may_v live_v according_a to_o virtue_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n unto_o a_o declaration_n what_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n have_v respect_n unto_o which_o be_v the_o church_n have_v not_o only_o respect_v unto_o this_o but_o unto_o eternal_a life_n also_o and_o it_o have_v all_o these_o thing_n in_o common_a namely_o god_n christ_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o word_n of_o god_n grace_n the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n which_o pertain_v to_o mutual_a help_a one_o of_o a_o other_o and_o this_o body_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o ordinance_n and_o saieng_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o it_o live_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n body_n of_o this_o body_n we_o have_v a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n two_o manner_n of_o conjunction_n of_o the_o member_n of_o this_o body_n and_o of_o this_o thing_n we_o have_v a_o excellent_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n wherein_o we_o confess_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n but_o in_o the_o member_n of_o this_o body_n there_o be_v observe_v two_o sort_n of_o conjunction_n one_o be_v that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o retain_v among_o themselves_o and_o the_o other_o that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v with_o christ_n touch_v this_o thing_n we_o be_v very_o well_o instruct_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 16._o verse_n 16._o where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o by_o the_o head_n christ_n be_v minister_v life_n and_o spirit_n by_o the_o joint_n and_o knit_v together_o of_o the_o member_n into_o the_o whole_a body_n that_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o part_n there_o may_v be_v a_o increase_n in_o the_o body_n the_o same_o be_v also_o show_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o colossian_n church_n verse_n 19_o the_o wicked_a be_v not_o very_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o church_n by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v that_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o very_o of_o the_o church_n see_v the_o spirit_n be_v not_o instill_v into_o they_o by_o christ_n the_o head_n indeed_o they_o may_v be_v conversant_a in_o the_o church_n but_o they_o can_v be_v of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a imagination_n bring_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o there_o can_v be_v wither_v and_o dead_a member_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o may_v be_v reviue_v again_o 15._o a_o dead_a part_n of_o a_o body_n be_v no_o more_o call_v a_o member_n of_o the_o body_n 1._o cor._n 6_o 15._o a_o member_n that_o be_v dead_a be_v a_o member_n no_o more_o neither_o yet_o ought_v to_o be_v call_v a_o member_n unless_o thou_o will_v have_v it_o all_o one_o that_o to_o be_v a_o man_n which_o be_v but_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o man_n and_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n shall_v i_o take_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v of_o it_o the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n be_v repugnant_a one_o with_o another_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v the_o member_n of_o each_o of_o they_o us._n a_o most_o near_a conjunction_n between_o christ_n &_o us._n wherefore_o this_o similitude_n declare_v what_o manner_n of_o conjunction_n ought_v to_o be_v among_o we_o and_o with_o christ_n and_o certeinelie_o even_o as_o we_o have_v say_v we_o be_v so_o join_v with_o christ_n as_o we_o be_v call_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n because_o through_o his_o incarnation_n we_o be_v make_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o kind_n that_o he_o be_v of_o and_o afterward_o his_o grace_n and_o spirit_n come_v to_o we_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o spiritual_a condition_n and_o property_n cyrill_n cyrill_n as_o it_o have_v be_v above_o declare_v wherefore_o cyrill_n write_v unto_o reginas_fw-la of_o the_o right_a faith_n say_v that_o our_o flesh_n be_v together_o in_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o those_o that_o otherwise_o will_v judge_v he_o hold_v they_o accurse_v 37_o and_o for_o the_o prove_v of_o so_o great_a a_o conjunction_n between_o we_o &_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o corporal_a and_o substantial_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o many_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o we_o shall_v have_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o profit_n or_o commodity_n by_o the_o same_o than_o if_o we_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o touch_v his_o body_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n for_o we_o see_v that_o christian_n may_v be_v member_n one_o of_o another_o and_o that_o most_o néerelie_o knit_v together_o although_o some_o of_o they_o live_v in_o england_n some_o in_o france_n and_o some_o in_o spain_n but_o if_o so_o be_v this_o be_v grant_v as_o touch_v the_o member_n themselves_o why_o shall_v it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o grant_v the_o same_o touch_v the_o head_n that_o by_o this_o spiritual_a conjunction_n it_o may_v both_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o also_o be_v join_v spiritual_o with_o we_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n the_o very_a which_o thing_n we_o see_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o matrimony_n wherein_o the_o holy_a scripture_n declare_v 6._o matt._n 19_o 6._o that_o man_n and_o wife_n be_v one_o flesh_n which_o thing_n our_o adversary_n be_v constrain_v to_o grant_v no_o less_o to_o be_v true_a when_o man_n and_o wife_n be_v sometime_o in_o sundry_a place_n distant_a one_o from_o another_o than_o when_o they_o dwell_v in_o one_o house_n together_o if_o so_o be_v than_o it_o be_v so_o in_o they_o presence_n to_o this_o conjunction_n between_o christ_n and_o we_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n why_o shall_v we_o deny_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v join_v unto_o we_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o we_o may_v be_v one_o with_o he_o although_o by_o substantial_a and_o corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n he_o be_v absent_a from_o we_o they_o be_v ever_o fly_v unto_o that_o sentence_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o though_o it_o may_v not_o otherwise_o be_v understand_v but_o that_o there_o must_v be_v affirm_v a_o natural_a presence_n when_o nevertheless_o we_o will_v confess_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n into_o the_o which_o we_o neither_o be_v transubstantiate_v neither_o be_v it_o require_v that_o any_o of_o we_o in_o corporal_a presence_n shall_v be_v join_v with_o other_o as_o concern_v place_n but_o of_o these_o thing_n we_o will_v speak_v very_o large_o elsewhere_o touch_v the_o adoption_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o eight_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n verse_n 15._o 38_o this_o place_n seem_v to_o require_v that_o we_o speak_v somewhat_o also_o of_o the_o adoption_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o lawyer_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o institution_n define_v adoption_n to_o be_v a_o lawful_a act_n which_o do_v imitate_v nature_n adoption_n a_o definition_n of_o adoption_n how_o arrogation_n differ_v from_o adoption_n find_v out_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o they_o which_o have_v no_o child_n further_o they_o make_v a_o distinction_n between_o adoption_n and_o arrogation_n for_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v arrogation_n when_o he_o that_o be_v his_o own_o man_n and_o at_o liberty_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o stead_n of_o a_o son_n but_o adoption_n be_v when_o he_o that_o
also_o against_o the_o puritan_n say_v it_o be_v better_a for_o they_o which_o can_v keep_v themselves_o chaste_a to_o marry_v wife_n and_o to_o sin_n but_o once_o only_o rather_o than_o daily_a to_o wound_v their_o mind_n with_o corrupt_a action_n but_o i_o will_v not_o herein_o allow_v the_o opinion_n of_o this_o father_n because_o he_o affirm_v that_o those_o do_v sin_n which_o have_v make_v a_o vow_n of_o chastity_n do_v contract_n matrimony_n for_o so_o long_o as_o they_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n they_o entangle_v not_o themselves_o with_o sin_n neither_o do_v i_o any_o more_o allow_v of_o that_o his_o reason_n wherein_o he_o say_v that_o one_o sin_n may_v be_v commit_v for_o avoid_v of_o another_o sin_n which_o be_v great_a than_o that_o but_o my_o purpose_n only_o be_v to_o show_v by_o his_o word_n that_o matrimony_n be_v very_o necessary_a unto_o such_o as_o can_v keep_v themselves_o chaste_a 8_o wherefore_o i_o return_v to_o that_o which_o be_v object_v unto_o we_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o seven_o chapter_n minister_n in_o 1._o cor_fw-la 7._o verse_n 5._o whether_o matrimony_n through_o these_o word_n of_o paul_n be_v take_v away_o from_o minister_n see_v that_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v continual_o to_o be_v occupy_v in_o prayer_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o lead_v a_o sole_a life_n otherwise_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o execute_v the_o ministry_n we_o answer_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n as_o touch_v their_o live_n and_o other_o function_n which_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v in_o the_o same_o state_n that_o the_o common_a people_n be_v wherefore_o if_o they_o be_v in_o matrimony_n let_v they_o in_o the_o more_o solemn_a fast_n and_o prayer_n abstain_v as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v give_v counsel_n and_o in_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v common_a and_o usual_a they_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o use_v matrimony_n otherwise_o thou_o may_v infer_v that_o they_o shall_v evermore_o fast_o because_o paul_n grant_v abstinence_n for_o a_o time_n from_o the_o duty_n of_o matrimony_n not_o only_o for_o prayer_n sake_n but_o that_o they_o may_v also_o give_v themselves_o unto_o fast_v i_o grant_v indeed_o that_o ambrose_n discuss_v the_o sentence_n of_o ambrose_n be_v discuss_v upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n unto_o timothy_n the_o four_o chapter_n affirm_v this_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o sole_a life_n of_o minister_n that_o they_o ought_v always_o to_o be_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o minister_v baptism_n unto_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v in_o extremity_n of_o their_o life_n or_o else_o to_o distribute_v the_o holy_a mystery_n which_o he_o say_v be_v accustom_v to_o be_v do_v once_o in_o a_o week_n unless_o that_o otherwhile_o by_o reason_n of_o stranger_n it_o be_v use_v more_o often_o and_o small_a be_v the_o number_n of_o minister_n in_o those_o day_n in_o that_o great_a city_n of_o milan_n there_o be_v but_o one_o bishop_n seven_o deacon_n a_o very_a few_o elder_n or_o priest_n namely_o two_o in_o every_o particular_a church_n he_o say_v that_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a law_n may_v have_v wife_n because_o they_o be_v not_o constrain_v to_o minister_v continual_o they_o be_v distribute_v into_o many_o company_n namely_o into_o 24._o and_o into_o many_o turn_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o chronicle_n 8._o 1._o chron._n 23_o 24_o and_o 25._o luk._n 1_o 8._o the_o which_o thing_n luke_n also_o testify_v when_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o zacharie_n the_o father_n of_o john_n baptist_n 9_o in_o these_o word_n of_o ambrose_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v well_o examine_v first_o how_o strong_a the_o difference_n be_v which_o he_o bring_v between_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o also_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o new_a law_n afterward_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o work_n of_o matrimony_n as_o he_o affirm_v &_o say_v have_v pollute_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n touch_v the_o first_o i_o know_v there_o be_v those_o company_n and_o turn_n of_o priest_n which_o he_o reherse_v but_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v i_o know_v 38._o before_o druid_n time_n and_o at_o the_o first_o there_o be_v no_o distinction_n of_o priest_n by_o company_n and_o turn_n exo._n 29_o 38._o that_o they_o be_v institute_v by_o david_n solomon_n josias_n and_o such_o other_o but_o how_o be_v it_o before_o david_n and_o from_o the_o beginning_n certeinelie_o we_o read_v in_o exodus_fw-la that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n every_o day_n morning_n and_o evening_n to_o offer_v incense_n and_o to_o minister_v in_o the_o temple_n which_o if_o afterward_o it_o be_v otherwise_o order_v marriage_n the_o remissness_n thereof_o afterward_o be_v not_o only_o for_o the_o work_n of_o marriage_n that_o do_v not_o more_o respect_v the_o work_n of_o marriage_n than_o some_o certain_a rest_n otherwhile_o to_o be_v grant_v unto_o the_o priest_n furthermore_o augustine_n see_v that_o this_o appointment_n of_o company_n and_o turn_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o prove_v this_o matter_n for_o in_o his_o question_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la the_o 82._o question_n he_o dispute_v singular_o of_o this_o how_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v able_a every_o day_n both_o morning_n and_o evening_n to_o offer_v a_o sweet_a savour_n if_o the_o question_n be_v say_v he_o of_o sickness_n and_o impediment_n of_o health_n a_o man_n may_v say_v that_o he_o may_v have_v be_v preserve_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n from_o be_v sick_a but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o procreation_n of_o child_n for_o see_v he_o be_v make_v unpure_a by_o mean_n of_o the_o act_n of_o generation_n he_o may_v not_o have_v access_n unto_o the_o ministry_n and_o that_o he_o abstein_v from_o the_o company_n of_o his_o wife_n that_o be_v a_o hard_a say_n forsomuch_o as_o the_o high_a priest_n both_o marry_v wife_n and_o also_o beget_v child_n child_n how_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o old_a time_n may_v indevor_n to_o have_v child_n either_o say_v he_o the_o incense_n offer_v be_v sometime_o intermit_v which_o thing_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n seem_v not_o to_o bear_v see_v this_o kind_n of_o ceremony_n be_v command_v to_o be_v do_v continual_o and_o every_o day_n or_o else_o he_o say_v it_o may_v be_v attribute_v to_o a_o certain_a peculiar_a holiness_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v defile_v by_o the_o work_n of_o matrimony_n as_o if_o so_o be_v that_o he_o chéeflie_o above_o other_o man_n enjoy_v that_o prerogative_n augustine_n augustine_n howbeit_o augustine_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o retractation_n seem_v to_o have_v find_v out_o another_o solution_n to_o himself_o and_o say_v the_o law_n command_v that_o after_o the_o act_n of_o generation_n the_o man_n shall_v be_v unpure_a until_o the_o evening_n then_o have_v wash_v his_o garment_n he_o shall_v become_v clean_o at_o the_o evening_n when_o as_o all_o the_o whole_a day_n he_o have_v be_v unpure_a wherefore_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o morning_n after_o he_o have_v minister_v may_v endeavour_v to_o have_v child_n and_o then_o be_v he_o unclean_a until_o the_o evening_n at_o which_o time_n his_o garment_n be_v wash_v and_o purification_n be_v use_v he_o be_v become_v pure_a and_o in_o the_o evening_n may_v minister_v thou_o see_v here_o that_o augustine_n fly_v not_o unto_o that_o distribution_n of_o the_o priest_n into_o turn_n and_o course_n because_o such_o kind_n of_o order_n be_v n●t_v always_o distinguish_v yet_o he_o agree_v with_o ambrose_n that_o the_o work_n of_o matrimony_n do_v defile_v the_o husband_n but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ambrose_n as_o he_o himself_o write_v there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o minister_n and_o they_o be_v to_o minister_v every_o day_n in_o these_o day_n when_o as_o the_o multitude_n be_v so_o great_a and_o that_o there_o be_v find_v a_o infinite_a number_n which_o scarce_o three_o or_o four_o time_n in_o the_o year_n execute_v their_o holy_a function_n and_o do_v in_o a_o manner_n never_o baptise_v or_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n what_o hindrance_n have_v they_o by_o this_o rule_n of_o ambrose_n but_o that_o they_o may_v marry_v wife_n when_o they_o burn_v and_o haunt_v the_o company_n of_o harlot_n epiphanius_n epiphanius_n epiphanius_n against_o the_o valesian_n heretic_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o canon_n and_o tradition_n touch_v the_o sole_a life_n of_o minister_n but_o he_o himself_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o observe_v in_o his_o time_n when_o as_o in_o the_o ministry_n there_o be_v many_o which_o beget_v child_n in_o matrimony_n who_o neither_o he_o condemn_v nor_o yet_o judge_v
man_n be_v not_o bear_v of_o faithful_a parent_n all_o man_n be_v not_o admit_v either_o unto_o baptism_n or_o unto_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o some_o be_v catch_v quick_o 11._o wisd_v 4_o 11._o least_o corruption_n shall_v change_v their_o heart_n and_o other_o be_v leave_v to_o themselves_o who_o in_o process_n of_o time_n become_v evil_a and_o so_o perish_v and_o among_o those_o which_o do_v hear_v all_o one_o preach_v all_o be_v not_o draw_v by_o god_n whereupon_o christ_n say_v no_o man_n come_v unto_o i_o 44._o john_n 6_o 44._o unless_o my_o father_n shall_v draw_v he_o by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v plain_o that_o there_o be_v some_o which_o be_v not_o draw_v augustine_n augustine_n wherefore_o augustine_n say_v if_o thou_o will_v not_o err_v i_o will_v not_o have_v thou_o to_o judge_v why_o god_n draw_v one_o man_n and_o yet_o draw_v not_o another_o and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o free_a will_n take_v away_o for_o whether_o a_o man_n be_v draw_v or_o not_o draw_v there_o be_v no_o violence_n do_v only_a compulsion_n be_v a_o enemy_n thereunto_o as_o we_o have_v teach_v before_o beside_o this_o sole_a life_n be_v call_v a_o grace_n or_o a_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o of_o grace_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 7._o 1._o cor._n 7._o 7._o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n distribute_v they_o as_o he_o will_n but_o and_o if_o that_o those_o grace_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n there_o speak_v 11._o 1._o co._n 12_o 11._o as_o prophesy_v wisdom_n knowledge_n tongue_n &c_n &c_n be_v more_o profitable_a unto_o the_o church_n and_o tend_v more_o to_o edifieng_v than_o do_v sole_a life_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o give_v unto_o all_o man_n why_o will_v we_o have_v sole_a life_n to_o be_v grant_v unto_o all_o man_n alike_o objection_n a_o objection_n 14_o perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v say_v that_o all_o man_n also_o may_v have_v those_o gift_n so_o that_o they_o will_v believe_v 20._o matt._n 17_o 20._o for_o christ_n say_v if_o we_o have_v faith_n as_o the_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n the_o very_a hill_n shall_v be_v obedient_a to_o our_o voice_n and_o unto_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v write_v 3._o rom._n 12_o 3._o that_o these_o gift_n be_v give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o faith_n moreover_o solution_n a_o solution_n two_o thing_n we_o may_v say_v namely_o that_o this_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o same_o wherewith_o we_o be_v justify_v which_o be_v common_a unto_o all_o beléever_n but_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o miracle_n not_o grant_v unto_o all_o man_n yet_o also_o if_o these_o sentence_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o faith_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v nevertheless_o the_o argument_n shall_v be_v feeble_a because_o all_o christian_n which_o believe_v in_o christ_n have_v faith_n howbeit_o not_o of_o themselves_o but_o rather_o of_o god_n and_o those_o grace_n do_v not_o accompany_v every_o degree_n of_o faith_n and_o according_a as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v give_v the_o same_o unto_o man_n even_o so_o do_v he_o distribute_v sundry_a degree_n of_o faith_n neither_o be_v it_o ourselves_o which_o appoint_v the_o measure_n unto_o our_o faith_n but_o god_n as_o he_o will_v do_v temper_v the_o same_o but_o the_o first_o answer_n be_v weak_a for_o we_o see_v that_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v stranger_n unto_o christ_n and_o destitute_a of_o a_o iustifieng_v faith_n have_v sometime_o such_o grace_n same_o as_o god_n predestinate_v to_o the_o end_n so_o he_o give_v mean_n to_o the_o same_o as_o they_o show_v forth_o miracle_n final_o as_o god_n have_v predestinate_v every_o one_o of_o his_o elect_a to_o the_o end_n of_o eternal_a life_n so_o have_v he_o also_o predestinate_v the_o mean_n which_o may_v bring_v they_o unto_o the_o same_o and_o that_o to_o every_o one_o as_o be_v convenient_a galen_n a_o similitude_n galen_n we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n all_o member_n as_o galen_n de_fw-fr usu_fw-la partium_fw-la witness_v have_v not_o all_o one_o sort_n of_o power_n and_o instrument_n and_o that_o we_o be_v member_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o scripture_n do_v most_o manifest_o teach_v wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o say_v that_o all_o man_n have_v attein_v to_o ability_n and_o gift_n alike_o paul_n do_v testify_v the_o same_o who_o speak_v of_o sole_a life_n bring_v in_o the_o word_n gift_n when_o he_o say_v 7._o verse_n 7._o every_o man_n have_v his_o gift_n and_o he_o add_v thereunto_o proper_a so_o that_o one_o have_v it_o after_o this_o manner_n and_o another_o after_o that_o and_o christ_n in_o the_o 19_o of_o matthew_n 11_o matt._n 19_o 11_o all_o man_n can_v receive_v this_o say_n save_v they_o to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o receive_v this_o let_v he_o receive_v it_o 15_o neither_o do_v can_v in_o that_o place_n signify_v to_o will_n as_o some_o do_v imagine_v will_n can_v in_o these_o place_n signify_v not_o to_o will_n if_o we_o shall_v diligent_o weigh_v the_o text_n of_o the_o history_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n no_o man_n can_v be_v chaste_a unless_o thou_o give_v it_o unto_o he_o whereby_o that_o scripture_n teach_v that_o there_o be_v some_o unto_o who_o it_o be_v not_o give_v and_o this_o be_v a_o marvelous_a furtherance_n to_o our_o commodity_n that_o we_o be_v rather_o govern_v by_o the_o will_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n than_o by_o our_o own_o neither_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n make_v a_o little_a to_o the_o extol_n of_o the_o majesty_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n towards_o his_o people_n augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n in_o his_o 19_o chapter_n de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi viduitatis_fw-la write_v it_o be_v in_o we_o to_o will_n but_o our_o will_n be_v stir_v that_o it_o may_v arise_v it_o be_v cure_v that_o it_o may_v be_v whole_a it_o be_v enlarge_v that_o it_o may_v be_v capable_a it_o be_v fill_v full_a that_o it_o may_v have_v and_o in_o that_o place_n he_o make_v special_a mention_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o continency_n but_o who_o will_v say_v that_o the_o will_n of_o all_o man_n be_v cure_v enlarge_v and_o full_a see_v we_o still_o see_v so_o many_o that_o be_v feeble_a and_o fall_v down_o the_o same_o augustine_n in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o maximus_n 7._o the_o same_o augustine_n 1._o cor._n 4_o 7._o for_o who_o separate_v thou_o thou_o will_v answer_v my_o good_a will_n my_o faith_n my_o righteousness_n and_o will_v thou_o not_o immediate_o hear_v that_o which_o follow_v what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v if_o thou_o have_v receive_v ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la why_o do_v thou_o glory_n as_o though_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v but_o these_o man_n when_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o sole_a life_n be_v offer_v unto_o all_o man_n and_o that_o all_o man_n if_o they_o will_v may_v accept_v the_o same_o do_v of_o necessity_n fall_v into_o those_o answer_n which_o augustine_n in_o that_o place_n condemn_v for_o if_o i_o demand_v of_o he_o that_o be_v in_o sole_a life_n who_o have_v separate_v thou_o from_o he_o which_o be_v in_o matrimony_n if_o we_o follow_v they_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v what_o else_o to_o answer_v but_o my_o will_n my_o choice_n say_v therefore_o to_o he_o as_o follow_v what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v why_o do_v thou_o glory_n as_o though_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v augustine_n the_o same_o augustine_n augustine_n de_fw-fr sancta_fw-la virginitate_fw-la the_o four_o chapter_n i_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v as_o i_o myself_o be_o 7._o 1._o cor_fw-la 7_o 7._o but_o every_o man_n have_v his_o proper_a gift_n of_o god_n one_o after_o this_o manner_n and_o another_o after_o that_o who_o then_o give_v these_o thing_n who_o distribute_v as_o he_o himself_o will_v to_o every_o one_o his_o proper_a gift_n forsooth_o that_o do_v god_n with_o who_o there_o be_v no_o iniquity_n and_o it_o be_v either_o unpossible_a or_o else_o most_o hard_o for_o man_n hereby_o to_o know_v by_o what_o equity_n he_o make_v some_o man_n after_o one_o manner_n and_o some_o after_o another_o manner_n but_o that_o by_o equity_n he_o do_v it_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o any_o man_n to_o doubt_v what_o have_v thou_o therefore_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v or_o by_o what_o péevishnesse_n do_v thou_o love_v he_o less_o of_o who_o thou_o have_v receive_v more_o here_o we_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o make_v some_o after_o this_o manner_n and_o some_o after_o that_o further_o that_o he_o which_o live_v sole_a have_v receive_v the_o more_o which_o two_o thing_n if_o thou_o confer_v one_o with_o another_o thou_o shall_v easy_o perceive_v what_o be_v to_o be_v
life_n and_o matrimony_n may_v after_o a_o sort_n be_v call_v counsel_n in_o this_o sense_n i_o mean_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o state_n be_v not_o convenient_a for_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n so_o then_o according_a as_o we_o shall_v perceive_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o of_o these_o to_o be_v fit_a for_o any_o man_n that_o we_o must_v counsel_v he_o unto_o wherefore_o paul_n say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o precept_n whereby_o he_o shall_v comprise_v and_o constrain_v all_o man_n but_o i_o give_v counsel_n say_v he_o namely_o that_o every_o man_n take_v hold_v of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v profitable_a for_o himself_o further_o if_o thou_o shall_v particular_o have_v respect_n unto_o man_n which_o burn_v in_o lust_n and_o be_v not_o continent_n these_o have_v commandment_n to_o marry_v and_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o liberty_n &_o choice_n to_o live_v a_o sole_a life_n so_o as_o it_o can_v proper_o be_v call_v counsel_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o as_o though_o the_o matter_n be_v put_v in_o their_o power_n and_o choice_n and_o again_o they_o which_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o sole_a life_n and_o be_v in_o the_o same_o state_n and_o vocation_n and_o do_v well_o perceive_v themselves_o to_o do_v better_o without_o matrimony_n and_o see_v that_o their_o sole_a life_n may_v stand_v they_o in_o great_a stead_n to_o advance_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v sin_v by_o refuse_v of_o that_o state_n for_o they_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o paul_n but_o we_o in_o no_o wise_n admit_v this_o doctrine_n of_o counsel_n by_o which_o these_o man_n reckon_v many_o of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n among_o counsel_n such_o as_o be_v the_o forbid_v to_o revenge_v injury_n 19_o rom._n 12_o 19_o the_o turn_n of_o our_o cheek_n unto_o he_o that_o strike_v we_o 39_o matth._n 5_o 39_o the_o let_v go_v of_o our_o cloak_n and_o coat_n to_o he_o that_o will_v take_v it_o and_o such_o other_o like_o thing_n for_o these_o be_v commandment_n of_o god_n whereof_o the_o lord_n have_v pronounce_v that_o he_o who_o shall_v break_v the_o least_o of_o they_o shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o he_o say_v 20_o ibidem_fw-la 20_o unless_o your_o righteousness_n shall_v more_o abound_v than_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n you_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o it_o will_v not_o abound_v unless_o we_o so_o understand_v the_o law_n as_o christ_n have_v interpret_v it_o as_o touch_v the_o widow_n which_o offer_v with_o other_o widow_n luke_n 21_o 1._o to_o the_o four_o concern_v the_o oblation_n of_o the_o widow_n we_o answer_v that_o she_o may_v not_o have_v be_v constrain_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n to_o have_v pour_v out_o all_o her_o substance_n in_o that_o offering_n but_o god_n who_o have_v give_v her_o strength_n before_o hand_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o make_v so_o great_a a_o offering_n and_o know_v right_o well_o how_o much_o she_o be_v able_a to_o give_v will_v have_v accuse_v she_o by_o his_o own_o judgement_n unless_o she_o have_v offer_v according_a to_o the_o strength_n wherewith_o her_o mind_n be_v prepare_v five_o to_o the_o five_o as_o touch_v satisfaction_n we_o pass_v not_o much_o what_o they_o say_v see_v we_o understand_v that_o those_o be_v altogether_o vain_a and_o superfluous_a yea_o and_o contumelious_a against_o christ_n for_o they_o seem_v therefore_o to_o be_v use_v as_o though_o that_o christ_n have_v not_o abundant_o satisfy_v for_o us._n but_o if_o that_o by_o satisfy_v they_o understand_v a_o man_n to_o approve_v himself_o unto_o god_n according_a as_o i_o have_v above_o declare_v we_o well_o allow_v of_o the_o word_n but_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v their_o purpose_n for_o to_o satisfy_v god_n in_o that_o sort_n be_v to_o render_v unto_o he_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v owe_v unto_o he_o sixth_o to_o the_o sixth_o that_o which_o last_o they_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 35._o rom._n 1_o 35._o namely_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o have_v more_o than_o overcome_v it_o be_v so_o frivolous_a as_o i_o think_v it_o scarce_o worth_a the_o answer_n for_o there_o paul_n only_o show_v the_o large_a and_o plentiful_a victory_n which_o the_o lord_n give_v unto_o his_o people_n against_o temptation_n 15._o look_v part_n 2._o place_n 15._o 10_o but_o because_o there_o be_v certain_a place_n not_o to_o be_v overskip_v which_o seem_v to_o be_v against_o our_o assertion_n wherein_o we_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o work_n of_o godly_a man_n there_o be_v a_o great_a want_n 28._o the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o affirm_v that_o we_o in_o this_o life_n may_v be_v perfect_a deut._n 18._o 13_o gen._n 17_o 1._o matt._n 5_o 48._o 2._o co._n 13_o 11_o col._n 1_o 28._o see_v in_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v call_v unperfect_a work_n now_o will_v i_o allege_v those_o place_n and_o make_v answer_n unto_o they_o we_o read_v in_o deuteronomie_n and_o also_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n be_v thou_o perfect_a and_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v you_o perfect_a as_o your_o heavenly_a father_n be_v perfect_a unto_o the_o corinthian_n from_o henceforth_o brethren_n rejoice_v be_v you_o perfect_a unto_o the_o colossian_n exhort_v every_o man_n teach_v they_o all_o wisdom_n that_o we_o may_v make_v a_o perfect_a man_n in_o christ_n unto_o the_o philippian_n 10._o phil._n 2_o 10._o do_v all_o thing_n without_o any_o murmur_a that_o you_o may_v be_v blameless_a and_o pure_a child_n of_o god_n without_o spot_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n 3._o ephes_n 1_o 3._o blessed_n be_v god_n and_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o have_v bless_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o and_o in_o that_o epistle_n it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o church_n that_o christ_n cleanse_v the_o same_o 26._o ephe._n 5_o 26._o to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v make_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n have_v neither_o spot_n nor_o wrinkle_n that_o it_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n etc._n etc._n and_o peter_n exhort_v 15._o 1._o pet._n 1._o 15._o that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n in_o our_o conversation_n because_o it_o be_v write_v be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o be_o holy_a and_o david_n say_v i_o shall_v be_v unrebukeable_a before_o he_o 1._o psal_n 18_o 24._o and_o 119_o 1._o and_o again_o bless_v be_v they_o that_o be_v undefiled_a in_o the_o way_n which_o testimony_n seem_v to_o tend_v unto_o this_o namely_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v our_o perfection_n to_o be_v without_o hope_n of_o recovery_n in_o this_o life_n augustine_n in_o a_o little_a book_n of_o he_o augustine_n augustine_n entitle_v de_n iustitia_fw-la christi_fw-la against_o coelestinus_n that_o be_v in_o the_o seven_o tome_n object_v all_o these_o testimony_n against_o himself_o and_o answer_v by_o these_o point_n he_o will_v in_o these_o place_n that_o certain_a thing_n be_v so_o speak_v as_o they_o may_v be_v exhortation_n by_o the_o which_o we_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o walk_v perfect_o but_o in_o law_n and_o admonition_n it_o be_v not_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v perform_v so_o much_o as_o be_v persuade_v but_o there_o be_v show_v how_o far_o we_o ought_v to_o endeavour_v as_o now_o it_o have_v be_v say_v touch_v the_o precept_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o for_o the_o love_a of_o god_n with_o all_o the_o hart_n with_o all_o the_o mind_n and_o with_o all_o the_o strength_n an_o other_o chief_a point_n be_v that_o many_o of_o these_o thing_n do_v show_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o person_n we_o be_v now_o but_o such_o as_o we_o shall_v become_v in_o the_o end_n when_o this_o life_n have_v run_v his_o course_n for_o than_o we_o shall_v be_v perfect_a when_o we_o shall_v be_v through_o come_v to_o the_o place_n whither_o we_o tend_v the_o three_o point_n be_v that_o by_o unblameable_a and_o perfect_a person_n he_o understand_v they_o which_o be_v without_o damnable_a crime_n and_o such_o shall_v they_o be_v that_o be_v choose_v minister_n of_o the_o church_n after_o which_o sort_n it_o be_v write_v that_o many_o of_o the_o saint_n have_v be_v perfect_a life_n how_o some_o saint_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v perfect_a in_o this_o life_n not_o as_o though_o they_o commit_v not_o some_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o unpossible_a thing_n in_o this_o life_n but_o because_o they_o lead_v their_o life_n without_o do_v of_o the_o damnable_a and_o the_o grosser_n sin_n wherefore_o although_o they_o be_v innocent_a after_o this_o manner_n yet_o with_o other_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o pray_v forgive_v we_o lord_n our_o trespass_n 12._o matt._n 6_o 12._o last_o he_o
it_o shall_v be_v say_v elsewhere_o but_o admit_v we_o shall_v grant_v these_o scourge_n of_o god_n to_o be_v punishment_n yet_o do_v they_o nothing_o further_o our_o adversary_n for_o so_o much_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v temporal_a punishment_n the_o which_o god_n have_v not_o put_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v order_v by_o they_o see_v god_n have_v distribute_v they_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n and_o do_v oftentimes_o turn_v they_o away_o or_o mitigate_v they_o according_a as_o he_o be_v call_v upon_o by_o the_o saint_n and_o as_o he_o see_v they_o to_o be_v convert_v unto_o he_o earnest_o and_o with_o true_a repentance_n as_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v in_o ezechias_n and_o in_o the_o ninivit_n in_o which_o sense_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v which_o be_v write_v in_o daniel_n 24._o dan._n 4_o 24._o redeem_v thou_o thy_o sin_n with_o alm_n declare_v a_o place_n of_o daniel_n declare_v that_o be_v to_o say_v thy_o punishment_n which_o remain_v by_o the_o severity_n of_o god_n judgement_n or_o else_o understand_v the_o same_o on_o this_o wise_a even_o as_o thou_o have_v afflict_v the_o poor_a and_o have_v oppress_v they_o that_o be_v weak_a so_o on_o the_o other_o part_n revenger_n god_n puni●…eth_v not_o the_o godly_a as_o a_o revenger_n take_v thou_o pity_v upon_o they_o so_o that_o to_o redeem_v be_v to_o put_v that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o the_o place_n of_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a god_n punish_v not_o the_o faithful_a sort_n like_o a_o revenger_n &_o judge_n but_o he_o chastine_v they_o as_o a_o father_n neither_o do_v he_o always_o &_o of_o all_o man_n exact_a punishment_n after_o sin_n be_v forgive_v for_o he_o have_v forgive_v many_o sin_n to_o many_o without_o lay_v those_o punishment_n upon_o they_o for_o unto_o the_o thief_n he_o say_v 43_o luke_n 23_o 43_o this_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n and_o the_o publican_n which_o pray_v have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o a_o sinner_n 13_o luke_n 18_o 13_o go_v his_o way_n justify_v and_o peter_n when_o he_o have_v forswear_a christ_n only_o weep_v 62._o luke_n 23_o 62._o and_o be_v receive_v into_o grace_n whereupon_o as_o touch_v his_o repentance_n ambrose_n write_v ambrose_n ambrose_n i_o read_v of_o the_o tear_n of_o peter_n but_o i_o read_v not_o of_o his_o satisfaction_n also_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o the_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o 5._o matth._n 9_o 5._o neither_o do_v the_o lord_n require_v any_o other_o thing_n of_o he_o 20_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o object_n that_o the_o woman_n which_o be_v a_o sinner_n 48._o luke_n ●_o 37_o and_o 48._o do_v therefore_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n because_o she_o wash_v the_o lord_n foot_n with_o her_o tear_n and_o wipe_v they_o with_o the_o hair_n of_o her_o head_n and_o anoint_v he_o with_o precious_a ointment_n they_o cry_v out_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n howbeit_o these_o man_n ought_v to_o consider_v respect_n the_o woman_n be_v forgive_v her_o sin_n in_o two_o respect_n that_o our_o saviour_n show_v how_o sin_n be_v forgive_v to_o that_o woman_n in_o two_o respect_n first_o when_o he_o say_v unto_o she_o thy_o faith_n have_v make_v thou_o whole_a and_o this_o way_n be_v a_o right_a way_n as_o a_o effect_n proceed_v from_o the_o cause_n namely_o from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n which_o that_o woman_n comprehend_v by_o faith_n further_o unto_o the_o pharisie_n which_o can_v not_o perceive_v the_o faith_n that_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o woman_n mind_n he_o show_v that_o her_o sin_n be_v pardon_v and_o forgive_v she_o for_o another_o cause_n to_o wit_n that_o see_v he_o love_v most_o to_o who_o most_o be_v forgive_v and_o that_o the_o pharisie_n see_v that_o that_o woman_n love_v christ_n more_o than_o he_o do_v he_o may_v thereby_o know_v that_o she_o be_v no_o long_o a_o sinner_n but_o a_o true_a justify_v woman_n and_o he_o show_v by_o token_n of_o charity_n that_o she_o most_o love_a he_o the_o which_o token_n she_o do_v at_o his_o foot_n it_o the_o effect_n of_o charity_n do_v follow_v justification_n not_o go_v before_o it_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o these_o effect_n of_o love_n which_o these_o man_n call_v satisfaction_n be_v not_o do_v before_o justification_n but_o do_v rather_o follow_v after_o the_o same_o 21_o and_o whereas_o these_o man_n feign_v that_o soul_n do_v satisfy_v through_o pain_n and_o torment_n in_o purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n they_o be_v very_o repugnant_a unto_o the_o say_n of_o cyprian_a who_o in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n against_o demetrianus_n write_v when_o we_o shall_v pass_v from_o hence_o there_o shall_v neither_o be_v place_n for_o repentance_n neither_o yet_o effect_v of_o satisfaction_n the_o adversary_n be_v wont_v to_o pretend_v unto_o this_o their_o opinion_n a_o endeavour_n of_o pity_n because_o they_o will_v not_o esteem_v they_o to_o be_v damn_v which_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n when_o as_o nevertheless_o they_o shall_v be_v detain_v in_o some_o blemish_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a pity_n which_o do_v drive_v we_o to_o decree_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o be_v ignorant_a of_o whether_o they_o make_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o can_v be_v show_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n further_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o strength_n and_o with_o all_o our_o soul_n and_o we_o ought_v neither_o to_o appoint_v nor_o begin_v any_o thing_n which_o we_o know_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v by_o he_o or_o that_o shall_v make_v to_o his_o glory_n but_o purgatory_n make_v many_o to_o be_v negligent_a of_o live_v well_o well_o purgatory_n make_v many_o negligent_a of_o live_v well_o because_o they_o suppose_v that_o by_o their_o riches_n they_o may_v easy_o purchase_v man_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o when_o they_o be_v dead_a the_o very_a which_o inconvenience_n follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o origin_n wherein_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o punishment_n of_o damn_a soul_n shall_v at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o finish_v whereby_o appear_v that_o this_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n neither_o edify_v the_o church_n neither_o yet_o provoke_v man_n unto_o godly_a life_n purgatory_n many_o other_o inconvenience_n by_o the_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o prudentlie_o devise_v and_o further_o by_o this_o devise_n many_o poor_a folk_n be_v defraud_v of_o just_a alm_n and_o a_o intolerable_a market_n of_o pope_n pardon_n break_v forth_o also_o by_o this_o abuse_n be_v maintain_v the_o slothfulness_n of_o monk_n &_o popish_a priest_n who_o that_o they_o may_v be_v well_o maintain_v and_o that_o through_o their_o prayer_n they_o may_v release_v the_o pain_n of_o man_n soul_n in_o purgatory_n the_o right_a heir_n in_o undutiful_a testament_n be_v skip_v over_o so_o as_o all_o thing_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v give_v to_o the_o fat_a paunch_n of_o these_o man_n here_o be_v all_o thing_n uncerteine_a they_o which_o judge_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o forthwith_o admit_v into_o the_o heavenly_a rest_n how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o such_o person_n be_v torment_v by_o fire_n unto_o who_o also_o if_o thou_o shall_v grant_v that_o they_o be_v afflict_v with_o flame_n how_o will_v they_o prove_v that_o they_o can_v be_v holpen_v by_o our_o prayer_n and_o suit_n 22_o but_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v suffer_v the_o suspicion_n of_o man_n to_o take_v place_n perhaps_o some_o will_v be_v find_v which_o for_o purgatory_n will_v appoint_v as_o i_o may_v say_v a_o eruditorie_a or_o instruct_v place_n wherein_o the_o soul_n of_o infidel_n which_o in_o this_o life_n hard_o nothing_o of_o christ_n or_o the_o soul_n of_o rude_a person_n and_o of_o infant_n which_o be_v never_o teach_v may_v yet_o there_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a learn_v and_o obtain_v a_o occasion_n of_o beléeve_v for_o unto_o some_o it_o will_v seem_v a_o unméet_a thing_n that_o either_o ignorant_a man_n shall_v be_v damn_v eternal_o or_o else_o that_o those_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o adorn_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o many_o other_o such_o thing_n see_v there_o be_v a_o abundance_n of_o error_n may_v be_v feign_v now_o have_v we_o see_v that_o purgatory_n be_v no_o opinion_n necessary_a to_o be_v beléeve_v further_o if_o by_o suspect_n &_o opinion_n it_o be_v receive_v it_o have_v weak_a and_o slender_a reason_n to_o cleave_v unto_o and_o it_o rather_o hinder_v godliness_n than_o further_v the_o same_o wherefore_o they_o which_o be_v of_o a_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v
job._n 2_o 4._o stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n say_v he_o a_o little_a upon_o he_o and_o then_o thou_o shall_v see_v whether_o he_o will_v curse_v thou_o to_o thy_o face_n or_o no._n for_o by_o the_o natural_a sharpness_n of_o wit_n wherein_o he_o much_o excel_v he_o easy_o see_v that_o this_o of_o all_o temptation_n be_v the_o great_a when_o the_o life_n itself_o than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o sweet_a be_v put_v in_o danger_n the_o fruit_n which_o they_o that_o have_v valiant_o labour_v shall_v receive_v must_v always_o as_o paul_n warn_v we_o be_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n for_o so_o shall_v we_o see_v that_o when_o we_o suffer_v for_o christ_n his_o sake_n we_o shall_v bring_v singular_a commodity_n not_o unto_o he_o but_o unto_o ourselves_o that_o which_o the_o latin_a interpreter_n turn_v existimo_fw-la that_o be_v i_o think_v or_o count_n be_v in_o greek_a write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n can_v be_v refer_v unto_o a_o opinion_n that_o be_v doubtful_a and_o uncerteine_a for_o that_o word_n be_v chéeflie_o use_v of_o such_o as_o make_v reckon_n which_o bring_v their_o account_n into_o a_o sum_n and_o hold_v it_o definite_a and_o certain_a wherefore_o the_o meaning_n be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v this_o i_o hold_v for_o certain_a that_o those_o evil_n which_o we_o suffer_v be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o glory_n which_o we_o wait_v for_o indeed_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v not_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n so_o light_a but_o paul_n extenuate_v they_o only_o by_o way_n of_o comparison_n life_n affliction_n otherwise_o grievous_a be_v extenuate_v by_o comparison_n with_o eternal_a life_n wherefore_o this_o place_n contain_v a_o amplification_n of_o that_o felicity_n which_o god_n promise_v unto_o we_o which_o hereby_o be_v make_v the_o more_o notable_a in_o that_o it_o far_o excel_v all_o the_o travel_n of_o this_o life_n of_o which_o thing_n godly_a man_n be_v so_o thorough_o persuade_v as_o they_o rejoice_v even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o tribulation_n the_o very_a same_o comparison_n paul_n use_v in_o the_o latter_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 17._o verse_n 17._o the_o four_o chapter_n for_o he_o say_v that_o our_o light_a affliction_n which_o be_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n bring_v unto_o we_o a_o marvellous_a exceed_a weight_n of_o eternal_a glory_n by_o these_o word_n be_v show_v wherefore_o eternal_a life_n surmount_v all_o the_o travel_n of_o this_o life_n namely_o because_o of_o the_o weight_n continuance_n and_o greatness_n thereof_o for_o whatsoever_o thing_n we_o suffer_v here_o be_v call_v of_o paul_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v momentanie_n he_o add_v also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o which_o word_n the_o lightness_n of_o they_o be_v show_v but_o contrariwise_o unto_o the_o glory_n be_v attribute_v both_o eternity_n and_o also_o a_o wonder_a great_a weight_n which_o exceed_v all_o measure_n 8_o the_o apostle_n add_v 8._o rom._n 8._o which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v unto_o us._n he_o say_v that_o this_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v lest_o we_o shall_v think_v ourselves_o now_o to_o be_v utterlie_o destitute_a of_o the_o same_o for_o we_o already_o possess_v a_o great_a part_n thereof_o although_o as_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o perfect_a nor_o manifest_v to_o the_o world_n so_o paul_n speak_v unto_o the_o colossian_n 3._o col._n 3_o 3._o you_o be_v dead_a with_o christ_n and_o your_o life_n be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n but_o when_o christ_n your_o life_n shall_v appear_v than_o also_o shall_v you_o appear_v together_o with_o he_o in_o glory_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o paul_n in_o this_o one_o word_n glory_n comprehend_v the_o whole_a felicity_n which_o we_o wait_v for_o felicity_n glory_n here_o signify_v the_o whole_a felicity_n and_o therein_o he_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o man_n which_o be_v wont_v to_o esteem_v glory_n as_o the_o chief_a goodness_n whereof_o also_o the_o philosopher_n thus_o affirm_v that_o as_o the_o shadow_n follow_v the_o body_n so_o do_v glory_n follow_v true_a and_o perfect_a virtue_n wherefore_o glory_n comprehend_v two_o thing_n thing_n glory_n comprehend_v two_o thing_n which_o must_v be_v earnest_o desire_v first_o that_o a_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o virtue_n secondlie_o that_o he_o get_v a_o good_a name_n among_o the_o people_n but_o why_o the_o blessedness_n which_o we_o wait_v for_o life_n why_o the_o blessedness_n be_v not_o reveal_v in_o this_o life_n be_v not_o reveal_v in_o this_o life_n chrysostome_n think_v this_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n namely_o that_o it_o far_o pass_v the_o state_n of_o this_o life_n and_o paul_n tarry_v the_o long_a in_o the_o amplification_n thereof_o that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o stir_v up_o the_o roman_n to_o the_o suffering_n of_o affliction_n similitude_n similitude_n for_o a_o soldier_n be_v excéedinglie_o confirm_v to_o suffer_v peril_n if_o he_o hope_v that_o the_o victory_n will_v be_v gainful_a unto_o he_o world_n a_o difference_n between_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o servant_n of_o this_o world_n and_o a_o merchant_n be_v not_o discomfit_v with_o any_o labour_n of_o sail_v and_o travel_v if_o he_o hope_v thereby_o to_o win_v great_a gain_n further_o we_o ought_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o lot_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o this_o world_n differ_v far_o from_o the_o lot_n of_o holy_a man_n which_o serve_v christ_n for_o they_o with_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o labour_n go_v beyond_o those_o good_a thing_n which_o they_o labour_v to_o attain_v but_o we_o though_o we_o behave_v ourselves_o stout_o and_o valiant_o as_o paul_n say_v yet_o be_v not_o our_o work_n to_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o end_n which_o we_o set_v before_o us._n ethnik_n a_o example_n of_o the_o ethnik_n 9_o that_o we_o may_v easy_o understand_v this_o difference_n the_o example_n of_o the_o roman_n will_v soon_o teach_v us._n brutus_n for_o preservation_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o country_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o slay_v his_o own_o child_n in_o the_o do_v whereof_o he_o also_o have_v respect_n to_o attain_v the_o praise_n of_o a_o good_a citizen_n for_o thus_o the_o poet_n virgil_n write_v of_o he_o his_o country_n love_n he_o drive_v and_o greedy_a lust_n of_o endless_a fame_n these_o be_v the_o end_n that_o move_v the_o ethnik_n slender_a the_o end_n of_o the_o ethnik_n be_v small_a and_o slender_a which_o undoubted_o be_v very_o small_a and_o slender_a cause_n for_o the_o liberty_n which_o they_o have_v respect_n unto_o be_v no_o such_o as_o be_v we_o whereby_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o sin_n from_o satan_n from_o death_n and_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n force_n humane_a praise_n inconstant_a &_o of_o small_a force_n they_o seek_v humane_a praise_n a_o thing_n doubtless_o inconstant_a and_o of_o small_a force_n but_o our_o end_n be_v to_o approve_v ourselves_o unto_o god_n who_o judgement_n can_v be_v deceive_v torquatus_n also_o slay_v his_o own_o son_n because_o in_o fight_v against_o the_o enemy_n he_o have_v violate_v the_o law_n of_o war_n then_o we_o also_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o god_n ought_v not_o to_o doubt_v when_o need_n shall_v require_v to_o suffer_v all_o manner_n of_o most_o gréevous_a torment_n for_o the_o law_n of_o god_n must_v not_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o law_n of_o war_n camillus_n be_v banish_v out_o of_o his_o country_n afterward_o find_v it_o to_o be_v oppress_v by_o the_o gall_n valiant_o restore_v the_o same_o because_o he_o think_v he_o can_v not_o live_v with_o more_o glory_n in_o any_o other_o place_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o great_a a_o marvel_n in_o a_o christian_n man_n who_o be_v hurt_v by_o any_o in_o the_o church_n leave_v aside_o the_o desire_n of_o revenge_n will_v help_v his_o brother_n by_o who_o he_o be_v hurt_v and_o by_o his_o travel_n will_v adorn_v the_o church_n for_o out_o of_o it_o no_o man_n can_v live_v a_o holy_a life_n nor_o yet_o attain_v unto_o eternal_a felicity_n quintus_fw-la mutius_n scaevola_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n thrust_v into_o the_o fire_n his_o right_a hand_n which_o have_v miss_v the_o strike_n of_o porsenna_n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o then_o if_o a_o man_n to_o obtain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n will_v offer_v unto_o the_o fire_n not_o only_o one_o of_o his_o hand_n but_o also_o his_o whole_a body_n to_o be_v burn_v curtius_n be_v arm_v at_o all_o point_n and_o mount_v upon_o a_o horse_n throw_v himself_o willing_o into_o the_o gulf_n of_o the_o earth_n because_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o pestilence_n for_o so_o have_v the_o oracle_n give_v answer_n that_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o god_n will_v cease_v if_o that_o which_o the_o roman_n esteem_v best_o be_v throw_v into_o that_o gulf_n
mortify_v shall_v have_v be_v translate_v we_o be_v slay_v for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v horagnu_n although_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sometime_o signify_v to_o mortify_v for_o that_o word_n paul_n use_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n 13._o rom._n 8_o 13._o when_o he_o say_v and_o if_o you_o by_o the_o spirit_n mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v live_v but_o here_o as_o we_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o death_n 15_o but_o that_o which_o follow_v all_o the_o day_n long_o signify_v that_o death_n do_v continual_o hang_v over_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v never_o secure_a but_o that_o they_o think_v they_o shall_v be_v forthwith_o draw_v unto_o death_n chrysost_n chrysost_n albeit_o chrysostome_n amplifi_v this_o a_o other_o way_n it_o be_v of_o necessity_n say_v he_o that_o man_n die_v once_o at_o the_o least_o but_o see_v they_o be_v so_o prepare_v that_o they_o be_v willing_a every_o day_n to_o die_v if_o need_v require_v they_o have_v every_o day_n the_o fruit_n of_o martyrdom_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v every_o day_n die_v and_o the_o cause_n much_o relieve_v and_o comfort_v they_o for_o they_o be_v not_o slay_v as_o wicked_a man_n or_o malefactor_n but_o only_o for_o religion_n &_o godliness_n sake_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v for_o thy_o sake_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n some_o think_v that_o that_o psalm_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o first_o captivity_n for_o then_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o punish_v for_o god_n cause_n or_o for_o religion_n sake_n but_o because_o they_o be_v idolater_n and_o so_o wicked_a as_o god_n will_v no_o long_o suffer_v they_o for_o they_o have_v now_o altogether_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n be_v almost_o clean_o blot_v out_o the_o temple_n be_v shut_v up_o macedonian_n the_o jew_n for_o the_o law_n suffer_v many_o thing_n under_o antiochus_n and_o the_o macedonian_n the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n overflowen_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o pprophecy_n of_o the_o latter_a calamity_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o machabeis_n under_o antiochus_n and_o the_o macedonian_n for_o then_o the_o jew_n suffer_v most_o gréevous_a torment_n because_o they_o will_v defend_v the_o law_n of_o god_n therefore_o they_o say_v for_o thy_o sake_n be_v we_o slay_v and_o in_o a_o other_o verse_n it_o be_v add_v and_o yet_o for_o these_o thing_n have_v we_o not_o forget_v thou_o or_o do_v unfaithfullie_o against_o thy_o covenant_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o speak_v as_o though_o man_n do_v at_o any_o time_n suffer_v more_o gréevous_a thing_n than_o they_o have_v deserve_v for_o none_o of_o all_o the_o martyr_n live_v so_o pure_o and_o innocent_o but_o that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o some_o sin_n but_o those_o sin_n deserve_v not_o only_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n but_o also_o without_o the_o help_n of_o christ_n his_o death_n everlasting_a punishment_n but_o these_o pain_n and_o vexation_n god_n send_v not_o upon_o they_o as_o be_v angry_a but_o for_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o his_o truth_n and_o glory_n howbeit_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n according_a as_o he_o promise_v life_n matt._n 19_o 29._o god_n render_v a_o hundred_o fold_n unto_o they_o which_o have_v suffer_v for_o his_o name_n in_o this_o life_n he_o repai_v unto_o they_o not_o only_a life_n eternal_a but_o also_o in_o this_o life_n he_o render_v unto_o they_o a_o hundred_o fold_n for_o oftentimes_o he_o most_o abundantlie_o restore_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v lose_v for_o his_o sake_n sometime_o also_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o tribulation_n and_o even_o in_o the_o very_a cross_n and_o death_n he_o give_v unto_o they_o so_o much_o strength_n and_o consolation_n that_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o fold_n if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v lose_v and_o because_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v secret_a and_o hide_a god_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v testify_v not_o only_o by_o oracle_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o by_o the_o torment_n and_o slaughter_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o therefore_o christ_n unto_o the_o apostle_n 8._o act._n 1_o 8._o when_o he_o send_v they_o into_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o preach_v you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o in_o jewrie_n and_o in_o samaria_n and_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n by_o word_n to_o testify_v the_o truth_n but_o those_o testimony_n be_v most_o weighty_a which_o be_v seal_v with_o blood_n augustine_n not_o punishment_n nor_o death_n but_o the_o cause_n make_v martyr_n augustine_n and_o with_o death_n howbeit_o this_o must_v be_v know_v as_o augustine_n have_v admonish_v that_o pain_n punishment_n and_o death_n make_v not_o martyr_n but_o the_o cause_n for_o otherwise_o many_o suffer_v many_o gréevous_a thing_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o martyr_n for_o the_o same_o augustine_n to_o boniface_n de_fw-fr correctione_n donatistarum_fw-la and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n testify_v that_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v circumcellion_n a_o furious_a kind_n of_o man_n which_o if_o they_o can_v find_v none_o that_o will_v kill_v they_o will_v often_o time_n break_v their_o own_o neck_n hadlong_o and_o will_v slay_v themselves_o these_o man_n say_v he_o must_v not_o be_v count_v martyr_n three_o thing_n therefore_o seem_v fit_a to_o the_o state_n of_o martyrdom_n first_o require_v to_o martyrdom_n three_o thing_n be_v require_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v defend_v be_v true_a and_o agreeable_a unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o second_o be_v that_o there_o be_v adjoin_v integrity_n and_o innocence_n of_o life_n that_o man_n do_v not_o only_o edify_v the_o church_n by_o death_n but_o also_o by_o life_n and_o conversation_n the_o three_o be_v that_o they_o seek_v not_o to_o die_v for_o glory_n sake_n or_o for_o desire_n of_o name_n and_o fame_n paul_n say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 13._o 1._o cor._n 3_o 13._o if_o i_o shall_v deliver_v my_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v and_o have_v not_o charity_n it_o nothing_o profit_v i_o therefore_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o account_v the_o anabaptist_n martyr_n the_o anabaptist_n or_o libertine_n be_v no_o martyr_n libertine_n and_o other_o such_o pestiferous_a sect_n for_o martyr_n for_o see_v these_o man_n do_v obstinate_o defend_v their_o error_n unto_o the_o death_n they_o be_v not_o move_v with_o charity_n neither_o towards_o god_n nor_o yet_o towards_o man_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o they_o hate_v all_o good_a man_n they_o be_v rather_o the_o martyr_n of_o satan_n and_o of_o their_o own_o error_n than_o of_o christ_n two_o kind_n of_o testimony_n we_o have_v firm_a two_o testimony_n that_o further_a herein_o but_o yet_o be_v not_o firm_a which_o help_v very_o much_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n yet_o be_v not_o those_o altogether_o so_o firm_a that_o we_o ought_v straitwaie_o to_o assent_v unto_o they_o namely_o miracle_n &_o torment_n which_o be_v suffer_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o any_o opinion_n in_o either_o of_o they_o must_v be_v have_v great_a wariness_n that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n paul_n out_o of_o david_n compare_v the_o godly_a with_o sheep_n appoint_v unto_o the_o slaughter_n in_o this_o similitude_n be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v first_o that_o they_o be_v call_v sheep_n because_o they_o be_v simple_a as_o become_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v secondlie_o because_o in_o their_o punishment_n they_o make_v no_o resistance_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v that_o when_o he_o be_v lead_v like_o a_o sheep_n unto_o death_n 7._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 22._o esaie_n 53_o 7._o yet_o do_v he_o not_o open_v his_o mouth_n 16_o paul_n add_v but_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v conqueror_n the_o greek_a word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v we_o do_v notable_o overcome_v this_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o place_n pertain_v nothing_o unto_o the_o work_n of_o supererogation_n for_o paul_n mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o so_o much_o strength_n be_v give_v we_o by_o god_n as_o in_o this_o conflict_n we_o go_v far_o beyond_o our_o enemy_n this_o the_o devil_n do_v that_o by_o these_o adversity_n he_o may_v wrest_v from_o we_o our_o confidence_n and_o love_n towards_o god_n but_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v rather_o increase_v 4._o rom._n 5_o 4._o for_o tribulation_n work_v patience_n patience_n work_v experience_n experience_n hope_v and_o hope_n make_v not_o ashamed_a but_o by_o what_o strength_n this_o victory_n happen_v unto_o we_o paul_n straitwaie_o
be_v no_o injury_n do_v to_o thy_o neighbour_n augustine_n teach_v in_o his_o 180._o danger_n that_o a_o pastor_n must_v not_o fly_v by_o who_o absence_n the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v in_o danger_n epistle_n unto_o honoratus_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o fly_v which_o be_v so_o prefer_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o christ_n his_o flock_n can_v be_v commodiouslie_o retain_v and_o continue_v in_o their_o absence_n wherefore_o let_v not_o pastor_n fly_v away_o unless_o they_o have_v such_o as_o can_v supply_v for_o they_o the_o work_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v if_o the_o people_n which_o be_v under_o they_o do_v depart_v they_o may_v depart_v with_o they_o but_o this_o oftentimes_o can_v well_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a people_n do_v go_v away_o unless_o therefore_o that_o other_o fellow_n minister_n can_v be_v substitute_v in_o their_o place_n they_o must_v not_o depart_v and_o augustine_n think_v that_o paul_n go_v from_o damascus_n have_v in_o any_o wise_a those_o who_o in_o his_o absence_n he_o may_v leave_v in_o his_o stead_n with_o the_o brethren_n and_o this_o he_o hold_v to_o be_v true_a in_o case_n if_o there_o be_v make_v any_o invasion_n of_o the_o barbarous_a because_o they_o seek_v not_o a_o overthrow_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n of_o god_n but_o only_o a_o possession_n of_o that_o province_n and_o country_n and_o if_o thou_o object_n against_o the_o decree_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o fly_v where_o the_o fruit_n of_o martyrdom_n may_v be_v hope_v for_o how_o much_o rather_o shall_v this_o be_v permit_v in_o such_o a_o barren_a persecution_n we_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o fly_v in_o that_o persecution_n wherein_o the_o triumph_n of_o martyrdom_n be_v set_v before_o we_o unless_o thou_o live_v unbound_v and_o free_a so_o as_o thy_o presence_n be_v not_o bind_v unto_o thy_o brethren_n for_o the_o fly_v shall_v be_v even_o together_o with_o the_o people_n or_o if_o all_o fall_n now_o into_o a_o universal_a slaughter_n or_o else_o when_o thou_o have_v vicar_n that_o supply_n thy_o absence_n which_o be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o which_o thou_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o thou_o must_v have_v a_o respect_n that_o through_o thy_o flight_n or_o fearfulness_n thy_o brother_n perish_v not_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v neither_o must_v this_o be_v overpass_o that_o then_o especial_o when_o the_o people_n be_v press_v with_o these_o calamity_n there_o be_v meeting_n of_o man_n in_o great_a abundance_n at_o the_o temple_n who_o then_o desire_v the_o sacrament_n the_o penitent_n desire_v absolution_n wherefore_o they_o must_v be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o general_a invocation_n of_o god_n and_o solemn_a prayer_n do_v then_o chief_o take_v place_n but_o if_o that_o the_o minister_n do_v seek_v to_o save_v himself_o by_o fly_v away_o what_o discommodity_n shall_v the_o church_n run_v into_o how_o great_o shall_v the_o gospel_n be_v blaspheme_v for_o have_v of_o such_o feeble_a minister_n wherefore_o this_o kind_n of_o man_n must_v deal_v most_o constant_o at_o this_o time_n but_o when_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o only_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v seek_v for_o by_o the_o persecutor_n lest_o they_o shall_v thus_o miserable_o perish_v it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o devout_a people_n to_o keep_v they_o secret_a whereby_o they_o may_v escape_v that_o rage_n and_o fury_n but_o admit_v that_o in_o some_o church_n there_o be_v not_o only_o one_o but_o many_o minister_n if_o gréevous_a persecution_n and_o calamity_n be_v at_o hand_n at_o which_o time_n either_o one_o or_o two_o of_o those_o minister_n may_v commodiouslie_o serve_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o people_n whether_o ought_v they_o all_o be_v charge_v to_o tarry_v for_o if_o they_o die_v altogether_o at_o one_o time_n the_o church_n by_o that_o mean_n shall_v not_o easy_o have_v other_o by_o who_o it_o may_v be_v teach_v and_o instruct_v and_o so_o it_o seem_v meet_v that_o some_o shall_v depart_v and_o some_o other_o shall_v be_v retain_v but_o if_o their_o gift_n be_v alike_o how_o can_v it_o be_v determine_v which_o shall_v fly_v and_o which_o shall_v tarry_v still_o if_o say_v augustine_n it_o can_v otherwise_o be_v agree_v upon_o let_v they_o be_v send_v away_o or_o retain_v by_o lot_n but_o if_o that_o charity_n abound_v among_o they_o we_o shall_v not_o perceive_v they_o to_o strive_v which_o of_o they_o may_v have_v leave_n to_o depart_v but_o they_o will_v rather_o every_o one_o procure_v and_o endeavour_v that_o he_o may_v have_v licence_n to_o tarry_v and_o to_o give_v his_o life_n for_o the_o flock_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o there_o may_v be_v a_o danger_n lest_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v deceive_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o their_o minister_n by_o contemn_v the_o danger_n too_o much_o for_o when_o they_o see_v that_o their_o pastor_n be_v not_o flee_v they_o may_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o all_o be_v safe_a with_o they_o wherefore_o they_o must_v be_v so_o certify_v as_o they_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o minister_n do_v tarry_v for_o their_o sake_n only_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v accuse_v of_o forsake_v their_o flock_n 23_o in_o this_o matter_n tertullian_n be_v of_o a_o hard_a judgement_n fly_v tertullians_n judgement_n not_o allow_v in_o think_v it_o to_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o fly_v who_o will_v not_o have_v it_o lawful_a for_o a_o godly_a man_n to_o fly_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n who_o doubtful_a argument_n we_o must_v resolve_v first_o he_o say_v persecution_n be_v good_a therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o fly_v he_o proove_v the_o antecedent_n because_o that_o persecution_n come_v from_o god_n then_o because_o it_o make_v man_n to_o be_v humble_a try_v and_o capable_a of_o chastisement_n and_o discipline_n we_o say_v the_o conclusion_n be_v weak_a because_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v good_a in_o some_o respect_n and_o not_o absolute_o be_v sometime_o justly_o shun_v of_o which_o sort_n be_v death_n for_o the_o same_o be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v good_a because_o without_o it_o we_o can_v be_v join_v unto_o christ_n 4_o 2._o cor._n 5_o 4_o of_o the_o which_o nevertheless_o paul_n pronounce_v that_o we_o will_v not_o be_v unclothe_v but_o be_v clothe_v upon_o and_o among_o this_o kind_n of_o good_a thing_n we_o place_v persecution_n but_o whereas_o it_o be_v take_v that_o man_n be_v become_v the_o better_a thereby_o we_o say_v that_o be_v take_v as_o it_o be_v a_o true_a cause_n which_o be_v no_o lawful_a cause_n for_o persecution_n be_v rather_o a_o occasion_n than_o a_o cause_n that_o man_n return_v unto_o god_n for_o if_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o add_v thereunto_o man_n thereby_o will_v rather_o be_v lead_v unto_o blasphemy_n and_o they_o will_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o desperation_n for_o persecution_n do_v not_o make_v all_o man_n good_a and_o if_o that_o occasion_n which_o be_v provide_v for_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v shun_v i_o will_v affirm_v this_o thing_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v stirrer_n up_o unto_o repentance_n thou_o adde_v it_o be_v of_o god_n therefore_o not_o to_o be_v avoid_v again_o thou_o may_v see_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o argument_n in_o so_o much_o as_o war_n famine_n pestilence_n disease_n and_o such_o other_o discommodity_n come_v from_o god_n which_o nevertheless_o if_o we_o shun_v by_o the_o industry_n of_o our_o reason_n and_o sense_n who_o will_v accuse_v we_o therein_o as_o resister_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o shun_v persecution_n send_v by_o god_n do_v not_o escape_v so_o free_a as_o he_o feel_v no_o adversity_n thereby_o away_o what_o discommodity_n we_o suffer_v in_o fly_v away_o in_o fly_v away_o we_o have_v good_a experience_n of_o many_o discommodity_n namely_o of_o banishment_n of_o the_o lack_n of_o necessary_n in_o fly_v away_o we_o have_v the_o loss_n of_o our_o dear_a friend_n and_o country_n soil_n which_o thing_n a_o man_n do_v sometime_o take_v so_o gréevouslie_o as_o he_o judge_v they_o more_o happy_a which_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o persecution_n itself_o they_o have_v obtain_v the_o triumph_n of_o martyrdom_n as_o virgil_n very_o well_o describe_v o_o happy_a and_o happy_a thrice_o be_v they_o who_o die_v before_o their_o father_n face_n under_o the_o wall_n of_o troie_n touch_v helias_n 19_o 1._o kin._n 17_o 19_o how_o gerat_fw-la thing_n he_o suffer_v in_o the_o very_a fly_v away_o the_o history_n of_o the_o king_n teach_v and_o of_o athanasius_n there_o be_v many_o thing_n report_v by_o eusebius_n 24_o moreover_o he_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fond_a thing_n to_o shun_v persecution_n from_o which_o thou_o can_v not_o escape_v if_o god_n will_v have_v
kind_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o to_o confess_v the_o truth_n this_o i_o think_v be_v most_o fit_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o elder_n not_o in_o very_a deed_n of_o they_o which_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o doctrine_n but_o of_o those_o which_o be_v appoint_v as_o assistant_n unto_o the_o pastor_n they_o as_o be_v the_o discréete_a sort_n and_o endue_v with_o a_o great_a zeal_n and_o godliness_n be_v choose_v out_o from_o among_o the_o laity_n elder_n the_o office_n of_o the_o elder_n their_o office_n be_v chief_o to_o attend_v unto_o discipline_n and_o to_o take_v heed_n what_o every_o man_n do_v and_o in_o every_o house_n and_o family_n to_o see_v what_o need_n every_o one_o have_v as_o touch_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o soul_n or_o to_o the_o body_n for_o the_o church_n have_v her_o ancient_n or_o if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v her_o senate_n which_o according_a to_o the_o time_n provide_v for_o profitable_a thing_n paul_n describe_v this_o kind_n of_o ministry_n not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n but_o also_o in_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v the_o elder_n be_v worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n 17._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 17._o especial_o they_o which_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n in_o which_o word_n he_o seem_v to_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v some_o elder_n which_o teach_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o word_n of_o god_n elder_n two_o sort_n of_o elder_n and_o there_o be_v other_o which_o although_o they_o do_v not_o this_o yet_o as_o ancient_n and_o elder_n they_o do_v govern_v in_o the_o church_n this_o do_v not_o ambrose_n leave_v untouched_a when_o he_o do_v expound_v that_o place_n yea_o he_o complain_v that_o even_o then_o either_o through_o pride_n or_o through_o the_o slothfulness_n of_o the_o priest_n they_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n wear_v away_o for_o while_o they_o which_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n seek_v to_o draw_v all_o thing_n unto_o themselves_o they_o provide_v as_o diligent_o as_o they_o can_v that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o fellow_n officer_n join_v with_o they_o in_o that_o room_n 8_o rom._n 12._o 8_o wherefore_o paul_n will_v that_o they_o which_o have_v this_o charge_n shall_v do_v their_o endeavour_n and_o remove_v sloth_n and_o sluggishness_n further_o he_o add_v he_o that_o show_v mercy_n let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o cheerfulness_n man_n the_o office_n of_o widow_n and_o of_o old_a man_n and_o this_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o office_n of_o widow_n and_o of_o old_a man_n which_o be_v to_o that_o end_n maintain_v by_o the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v take_v care_n of_o stranger_n and_o of_o they_o that_o be_v sick_a for_o good_a cause_n he_o command_v these_o to_o have_v chéerefulnesse_n for_o man_n that_o be_v weak_a and_o afflict_a be_v much_o reléeve_v if_o they_o see_v their_o necessity_n be_v minister_v unto_o with_o chéerefulnesse_n for_o they_o which_o with_o a_o frown_a countenance_n and_o heavy_a cheer_n do_v these_o thing_n seem_v to_o add_v sorrow_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v sorrowful_a for_o thereby_o they_o misdoubt_v that_o they_o be_v chargeable_a and_o troublesome_a to_o their_o brethren_n by_o mean_n whereof_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o bring_v to_o that_o point_n as_o they_o count_v death_n much_o better_a than_o such_o a_o life_n thus_o much_o speak_v paul_n concern_v the_o public_a ministery_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o upon_o just_a cause_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n free_a gift_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n gift_n why_o these_o ministeres_n be_v call_v free_a gift_n although_o it_o seem_v that_o they_o may_v be_v get_v by_o humane_a art_n and_o industry_n yet_o shall_v we_o never_o bring_v to_o pass_v any_o thing_n in_o that_o kind_n by_o our_o own_o labour_n unless_o we_o be_v holpen_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v be_v make_v profitable_a and_o effectual_a for_o they_o which_o be_v occupy_v in_o these_o office_n may_v in_o deed_n without_o the_o help_n of_o god_n obtain_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n and_o well_o like_v of_o the_o people_n but_o they_o can_v further_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n &_o commodity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o touch_v this_o matter_n they_o oftentimes_o have_v god_n favourable_a and_o gracious_a unto_o they_o which_o nevertheless_o obey_v he_o not_o with_o a_o sincere_a wil._n but_o this_o be_v to_o be_v exceed_o lament_v that_o this_o governance_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o miserable_o decay_v that_o at_o this_o day_n not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n of_o these_o function_n be_v any_o where_o extant_a in_o the_o stead_n of_o these_o they_o have_v put_v taperbearer_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o acoluthe_n and_o subdeacons_n which_o serve_v for_o trifle_v and_o vain_a action_n about_o that_o superstitious_a altar_n of_o they_o 5._o in_o 1._o cor._n 16._o verse_n 5._o 12_o and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 16_o chapter_n we_o have_v a_o notable_a place_n as_o concern_v the_o visitation_n of_o church_n for_o paul_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n will_v return_v to_o the_o corinthian_n &_o first_o survey_v the_o church_n of_o macedonia_n &_o because_o he_o can_v not_o straight_o way_n travel_v to_o corinth_n he_o devise_v to_o send_v thither_o timothy_n church_n of_o the_o visitation_n of_o church_n and_o how_o necessary_a the_o visitation_n of_o church_n be_v the_o state_n of_o humane_a thing_n do_v declare_v by_o the_o which_o we_o easy_o perceive_v that_o thing_n do_v oftentimes_o decay_n and_o fall_n to_o ruin_v unless_o they_o be_v now_o and_o then_o revoke_v to_o their_o first_o order_n and_o institution_n wherefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o doubt_v that_o this_o be_v no_o humane_a but_o a_o apostolical_a invention_n be_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n the_o visitor_n of_o church_n shall_v be_v but_o it_o behoove_v that_o they_o which_o visit_n shall_v be_v man_n of_o great_a authority_n of_o honest_a and_o godly_a life_n and_o also_o well_o instruct_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o if_o so_o be_v they_o shall_v not_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n perceive_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v perverse_a which_o they_o will_v amend_v they_o shall_v bring_v nothing_o to_o pass_v peradventure_o thou_o will_v say_v see_v all_o church_n have_v their_o own_o pastor_n what_o need_n be_v there_o that_o other_o man_n shall_v come_v unto_o they_o to_o visit_v we_o answer_v that_o it_o oftentimes_o happen_v that_o the_o man_n of_o any_o church_n do_v not_o so_o great_o esteem_v their_o own_o pastor_n be_v otherwise_o good_a man_n because_o through_o continual_a conversation_n they_o grow_v in_o contempt_n but_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v before_o three_o or_o four_o which_o be_v of_o other_o church_n be_v man_n of_o great_a name_n and_o authority_n they_o may_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o easy_o correct_v and_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o pastor_n if_o they_o be_v good_a ordinance_n may_v be_v maintain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o these_o man_n if_o they_o be_v not_o good_a they_o may_v be_v amend_v now_o it_o be_v grow_v to_o a_o use_n that_o this_o office_n of_o visit_v be_v assign_v unto_o primate_fw-la and_o archbishop_n because_o those_o man_n which_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o more_o ample_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o which_o do_v excel_v other_o in_o learning_n &_o holiness_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v prefer_v to_o the_o high_a place_n to_o the_o chief_a sea_n and_o more_o notable_a city_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o most_o place_n at_o this_o day_n such_o high_a degree_n be_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o prince_n and_o by_o perverse_a election_n commend_v unto_o unméete_a man_n what_o profit_n can_v these_o man_n bring_v by_o their_o visitation_n very_o not_o a_o whit_n but_o oftentimes_o no_o small_a inconvenience_n of_o call_v and_o especial_o unto_o the_o ministry_n 13_o very_o ill_o do_v they_o gather_v success_n in_o 2._o sam._n 2_o v._n 8._o a_o calling_n must_v not_o be_v condemn_v by_o a_o hard_a success_n which_o thus_o say_v thing_n happen_v not_o to_o this_o or_o that_o man_n according_a to_o his_o mind_n therefore_o his_o calling_n be_v not_o of_o god_n for_o who_o suffer_v either_o more_o or_o more_o gréevous_a thing_n than_o do_v our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o yet_o be_v his_o calling_n most_o lawful_a wherefore_o a_o great_a comfort_n be_v here_o offer_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o lawful_a magistrate_n that_o although_o they_o see_v many_o trouble_v lay_v before_o they_o yet_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o despair_v for_o those_o thing_n procee_v of_o the_o devil_n he_o very_o hate_v all_o lawful_a call_n for_o he_o see_v that_o god_n will_v bless_v it_o and_o that_o his_o strength_n
for_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n set_v before_o they_o both_o the_o new_a and_o old_a testament_n that_o he_o may_v dainty_o and_o plentifullie_o feed_v they_o the_o goodman_n of_o the_o house_n have_v both_o new_a fruit_n and_o lay_v up_o also_o in_o store_n for_o many_o year_n circumstance_n minister_n must_v weigh_v the_o circumstance_n 30_o and_o it_o very_o much_o further_v the_o wise_a and_o faithful_a govern_n of_o the_o lord_n business_n if_o the_o minister_n have_v always_o circumstance_n before_o his_o eye_n let_v he_o first_o of_o all_o consider_v what_o himself_o be_v he_o be_v not_o a_o private_a man_n wherefore_o let_v he_o set_v apart_o his_o own_o proper_a affection_n the_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o public_a person_n whereby_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o in_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v do_v the_o business_n of_o god_n with_o singular_a gravity_n again_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n what_o he_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o deal_v in_o namely_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n which_o to_o have_v corrupt_v or_o false_o to_o have_v teach_v be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n and_o let_v he_o no_o less_o consider_v who_o they_o be_v which_o be_v commit_v unto_o he_o for_o they_o be_v no_o vulgar_a man_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n redeem_v by_o his_o blood_n it_o behove_v also_o that_o he_o have_v consideration_n of_o the_o time_n and_o that_o he_o observe_v the_o opportunity_n of_o time_n in_o which_o he_o judge_v that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o convenientlie_o attain_v his_o purpose_n and_o although_o he_o ought_v to_o deal_v as_o the_o apostle_n have_v command_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n 2._o 2._o tim._n 4._o 2._o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o must_v endeavour_v with_o great_a diligence_n that_o he_o overslip_v not_o occasion_n also_o he_o must_v thorough_o weigh_v and_o consider_v with_o himself_o for_o what_o cause_n he_o have_v enter_v into_o or_o do_v sustain_v the_o charge_n which_o he_o have_v and_o beware_v that_o he_o serve_v not_o in_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o gain_n but_o rather_o follow_v that_o which_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o latter_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 14._o 2._o cor._n 12._o 14._o we_o seek_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v you_o but_o you_o for_o child_n must_v not_o lay_v up_o treasure_n for_o their_o parent_n but_o the_o parent_n for_o their_o child_n therefore_o say_v he_o i_o will_v offer_v myself_o and_o will_v be_v offer_v for_o your_o soul_n over_o this_o respect_n must_v be_v have_v unto_o the_o manner_n and_o form_n wherein_o he_o shall_v do_v it_o which_o may_v not_o otherwise_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n than_o of_o this_o purpose_n that_o provision_n shall_v chief_o be_v make_v for_o all_o those_o that_o come_v unto_o his_o church_n 31_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v now_o speak_v as_o touch_v the_o word_n of_o god_n our_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v understand_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o the_o sacrament_n first_o concern_v himself_o let_v he_o repent_v for_o his_o sin_n without_o which_o this_o life_n be_v not_o lead_v and_o let_v he_o so_o refrain_v from_o those_o grosser_n sort_n of_o vice_n for_o the_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n command_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o once_o communicate_v in_o common_a bread_n 11_o 1._o cor._n 5._o 11_o much_o less_o in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o these_o vice_n lest_o he_o shall_v procure_v destruction_n to_o himself_o and_o offence_n to_o other_o and_o let_v he_o weigh_v with_o himself_o the_o nature_n and_o dignity_n of_o mystery_n lest_o he_o shall_v think_v that_o he_o give_v the_o bread_n wine_n or_o water_n as_o bare_a element_n of_o the_o world_n neither_o let_v he_o delay_v to_o search_v out_o and_o thorough_o to_o know_v they_o unto_o who_o he_o must_v distribute_v the_o sacrament_n that_o if_o so_o be_v he_o shall_v perceive_v they_o to_o be_v dog_n he_o may_v remove_v they_o from_o he_o but_o if_o they_o be_v godly_a and_o such_o as_o fear_v god_n let_v he_o invite_v they_o and_o persuade_v they_o thereunto_o as_o touch_v the_o time_n also_o let_v he_o take_v such_o order_n as_o he_o suffer_v not_o his_o flock_n to_o want_v their_o food_n of_o the_o communion_n during_o the_o whole_a year_n as_o though_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o communicate_v at_o easter_n only_o and_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n that_o he_o be_v not_o constrain_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n either_o of_o a_o custom_n or_o that_o he_o do_v it_o not_o only_o for_o avoid_v of_o accusation_n or_o for_o filthy_a luker_n sake_n and_o final_o let_v he_o retain_v and_o keep_v the_o form_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v teach_v he_o by_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 24._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 24._o which_o be_v not_o observe_v by_o they_o who_o whereas_o christ_n have_v institute_v that_o we_o shall_v take_v eat_v and_o drink_v they_o have_v be_v more_o diligent_a to_o hang_v up_o the_o bread_n consecrate_v by_o they_o to_o set_v it_o forth_o to_o be_v worship_v to_o prostitute_v the_o same_o to_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o superstition_n christ_n institute_v a_o common_a supper_n but_o they_o with_o their_o lifting_n up_o and_o bearing_n about_o make_v a_o show_n of_o the_o same_o 27._o math._n 26._o 27._o worthy_a to_o be_v laugh_v at_o christ_n say_v of_o the_o cup_n take_v and_o drink_v you_o all_o thereof_o but_o they_o drive_v the_o laity_n from_o the_o cup._n christ_n say_v 24._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 24._o this_o do_v but_o they_o beside_o have_v add_v many_o thing_n which_o do_v make_v to_o superstition_n so_o as_o they_o neither_o faithful_o nor_o yet_o wise_o administer_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n ministry_n how_o great_o in_o the_o popedom_n they_o err_v from_o the_o faithful_a ministry_n 32_o if_o at_o this_o day_n under_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n some_o godly_a man_n shall_v come_v unto_o a_o sacrifice_a priest_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o i_o pray_v thou_o say_v a_o mass_n for_o i_o but_o so_o as_o i_o may_v plain_o understand_v the_o confession_n of_o sin_n and_o absolution_n expound_v unto_o i_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n which_o thou_o have_v at_o the_o entrance_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o himme_a and_o gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la in_o such_o sort_n as_o i_o may_v together_o with_o thou_o both_o magnify_v god_n &_o give_v he_o thanks_n neither_o hide_v thou_o from_o i_o the_o meaning_n of_o thy_o prayer_n so_o that_o i_o may_v answer_v amen_o teach_v i_o the_o epistle_n and_o the_o gospel_n that_o thereby_o i_o may_v learn_v wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o admonition_n of_o thou_o let_v we_o pronounce_v together_o the_o créede_v of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o when_o thou_o come_v to_o the_o blessing_n or_o consecration_n of_o the_o mystery_n put_v i_o not_o back_o for_o because_o those_o word_n do_v also_o pertain_v unto_o i_o and_o even_o in_o the_o break_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n communicate_v thou_o with_o i_o that_o final_o we_o may_v give_v thanks_n together_o unto_o our_o god_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o have_v no_o want_n neither_o of_o wealth_n nor_o food_n all_o this_o as_o thou_o have_v free_o receive_v so_o bestow_v thou_o free_o upon_o i_o he_o that_o shall_v crave_v these_o and_o the_o like_a thing_n of_o a_o massing_n priest_n i_o beseech_v you_o after_o what_o sort_n shall_v he_o be_v entertain_v of_o he_o he_o shall_v be_v exclude_v with_o taunt_n of_o lutheranisme_n and_o shall_v be_v uncourteouslie_o rail_v upon_o with_o the_o reproach_n of_o heresy_n but_o let_v there_o come_v in_o like_a manner_n another_o man_n which_o will_v say_v go_v to_o i_o must_v hunt_v to_o day_n but_o because_o this_o be_v the_o lord_n day_n i_o will_v not_o be_v without_o the_o sacrament_n take_v this_o money_n to_o thou_o and_o now_o betimes_o in_o the_o morning_n say_v mass_n for_o i_o and_o dispatch_v thou_o forthwith_o and_o with_o all_o speed_n believe_v i_o there_o will_v be_v no_o delay_n make_v by_o the_o massing_n priest_n do_v thou_o think_v that_o this_o be_v to_o do_v the_o faithful_a part_n of_o a_o minister_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v now_o command_v i_o think_v not_o on_o the_o otherside_n hear_v what_o example_n of_o faithfulness_n the_o minister_n of_o our_o time_n have_v residence_n against_o 〈◊〉_d residence_n some_o one_o of_o they_o have_v three_o or_o four_o parish_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o take_v the_o charge_n of_o all_o yea_o rather_o he_o will_v not_o dwell_v at_o one_o of_o they_o but_o be_v absent_a the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o year_n as_o long_o as_o he_o can_v from_o they_o all_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n
if_o a_o man_n reprove_v he_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v appoint_v another_o there_o in_o his_o place_n but_o this_o so_o faithful_a a_o minister_n consider_v not_o that_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v by_o his_o come_n and_o death_n to_o redeem_v mankind_n do_v send_v none_o in_o his_o place_n nor_o substitute_v a_o other_o unto_o the_o cross_n in_o his_o stead_n he_o himself_o come_v he_o himself_o labour_v he_o himself_o die_v for_o us._n may_v we_o have_v god_n and_o can_v have_v his_o vicar_n to_z attend_v upon_o the_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o they_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o so_o that_o they_o live_v within_o any_o university_n or_o school_n whereby_o they_o may_v procure_v unto_o themselves_o good_a art_n and_o learning_n 15._o john_n 2d_o 15._o but_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v unto_o peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n except_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o yet_o meet_a and_o sufficient_o learn_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v the_o charge_n of_o a_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n perhaps_o they_o think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o they_o if_o they_o have_v the_o vocation_n title_n and_o possession_n but_o this_o be_v to_o play_v mask_v and_o counterfeit_a part_n for_o it_o behoove_v ●_o 1._o cor._n 4._o ●_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o the_o ruler_n of_o church_n shall_v both_o minister_v faithful_o and_o faithful_o dispense_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o sacrament_n 33_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n then_o require_v unto_o the_o lawful_a minister_n of_o a_o church_n church_n three_o thing_n require_v to_o a_o lawful_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o pastor_n shall_v be_v justly_o call_v secondlie_o that_o he_o shall_v feed_v in_o very_a deed_n last_o of_o all_o that_o he_o shall_v do_v it_o faithful_o and_o with_o great_a discretion_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o life_n which_o be_v require_v to_o be_v more_o than_o ordinary_a both_o because_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v common_a unto_o all_o christian_n and_o also_o that_o all_o man_n understand_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v i_o pass_v over_o also_o of_o how_o small_a faithfulness_n they_o be_v of_o which_o hide_v the_o gift_n that_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o they_o and_o will_v not_o communicate_v they_o with_o other_o for_o because_o these_o man_n be_v sufficient_o condemn_v in_o the_o parable_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o person_n of_o that_o servant_n which_o bury_v in_o the_o ground_n the_o talon_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o he_o 24_o mat._n 25._o 24_o neither_o do_v he_o less_o unfaithfullie_o deal_v who_o have_v make_v the_o grace_n which_o he_o have_v obtain_v of_o god_n so_o proper_a unto_o himself_o as_o he_o ascribe_v they_o not_o unto_o god_n and_o he_o that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o similitude_n chrysost_n a_o similitude_n be_v by_o chrysostome_n compare_v unto_o he_o that_o receive_v a_o purple_a robe_n of_o the_o king_n to_o be_v keep_v nevertheless_o be_v bold_a to_o wear_v the_o same_o as_o his_o own_o garment_n doubtless_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v be_v account_v guilty_a of_o treason_n so_o that_o if_o we_o will_v be_v faithful_a unto_o god_n we_o must_v ascribe_v all_o good_a thing_n unto_o he_o in_o the_o act_n 12._o acts._n 3._o 12._o peter_n say_v of_o the_o lame_a man_n which_o be_v already_o heal_v by_o he_o you_o marvel_v as_o though_o we_o of_o our_o own_o power_n have_v heal_v this_o man_n when_o as_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n will_v glorify_v his_o son_n jesus_n unto_o this_o faith_n also_o it_o belong_v that_o a_o good_a pastor_n even_o as_o christ_n do_v 11._o joh._n 10._o 11._o shall_v give_v his_o life_n for_o his_o sheep_n minister_n touch_v the_o fly_v away_o of_o minister_n which_o in_o peril_n must_v not_o be_v forsake_v unless_o perhaps_o the_o persecution_n shall_v be_v of_o a_o particular_a pastor_n for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o athanasius_n to_o fly_v because_o of_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o wicked_a prince_n for_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n there_o be_v very_o many_o which_o can_v minister_v in_o his_o place_n augustine_n unto_o honoratus_n in_o his_o 180._o augustine_n augustine_n epistle_n dispute_v at_o large_a of_o fly_v away_o and_o furthermore_o many_o thing_n hard_a enough_o have_v tertullian_n the_o which_o be_v not_o at_o this_o time_n in_o this_o place_n to_o be_v recite_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o pastor_n be_v so_o faithful_o to_o behave_v himself_o that_o through_o his_o default_n he_o may_v not_o suffer_v the_o least_o séelie_o sheep_n though_o it_o be_v a_o abject_a to_o perish_v in_o the_o church_n he_o rather_o ought_v to_o follow_v christ_n 11._o mat._n 18._o 11._o who_o say_v that_o he_o come_v to_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v and_o to_o save_v that_o which_o have_v perish_v injury_n christ_n be_v present_a with_o his_o minister_n &_o revenge_v their_o injury_n and_o in_o these_o excellent_a action_n christ_n forsake_v not_o good_a pastor_n he_o defend_v they_o &_o oftentimes_o revenge_v for_o their_o sake_n with_o great_a severity_n we_o know_v how_o displeasinglie_o he_o take_v it_o that_o samuel_n be_v reject_v 7._o 1._o sam._n 8._o 7._o he_o revenge_v that_o injury_n and_o in_o his_o fury_n give_v the_o people_n a_o king_n under_o who_o they_o live_v in_o small_a felicity_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v peruse_v the_o history_n shall_v find_v that_o they_o be_v sore_o afflict_v under_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o king_n 18._o 1._o sam._n 22._o 18._o and_o when_o as_o saul_n in_o the_o city_n of_o noba_n have_v slay_v many_o of_o the_o priest_n 4_o 1._o sa._n 31._o 4_o he_o also_o with_o his_o son_n jonathas_n upon_o mount_n gelboa_n lamentablie_o perish_v god_n revenge_v moses_n and_o aaron_n 16._o numb_a 16._o and_o execute_v unaccustomed_a punishment_n upon_o they_o that_o conspire_v against_o he_o so_o we_o see_v likewise_o that_o the_o jew_n which_o sieve_n christ_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o do_v ill_o entreat_v his_o apostle_n be_v throw_v headlong_o into_o destruction_n of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o ministry_n 34_o and_o first_o of_o all_o whereas_o the_o corinthian_n be_v by_o paul_n reprove_v because_o they_o make_v man_n their_o author_n 4._o in_o 1._o cor._n 3._o verse_n 4._o let_v the_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n learn_v not_o to_o make_v disciple_n or_o follower_n unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o christ_n unto_o who_o only_o the_o church_n do_v belong_v this_o do_v the_o ethnic_n philosopher_n seek_v namely_o to_o distinguish_v the_o scholar_n which_o they_o have_v by_o their_o own_o name_n so_o that_o some_o be_v call_v platonian_o socrates_n the_o arrogancy_n of_o philosopher_n the_o modesty_n of_o socrates_n other_o pythagorian_o other_o epicurean_o but_o socrates_n seem_v more_o modest_a than_o the_o rest_n because_o he_o make_v not_o himself_o author_n of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o he_o teach_v as_o he_o that_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v like_o a_o midwife_n which_o shall_v bring_v help_n unto_o parent_n so_o he_o think_v good_a to_o be_v present_a at_o his_o question_n among_o young_a man_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v bring_v to_o light_v the_o science_n which_o they_o have_v in_o their_o mind_n much_o rather_o do_v this_o take_v place_n in_o christ_n affair_n for_o although_o that_o a_o man_n teach_v cunning_o unless_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v inwardlie_o stir_v up_o the_o hearer_n he_o lose_v his_o labour_n it_o be_v the_o spirit_n which_o true_o make_v the_o mind_n fruitful_a wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v there_o who_o be_v paul_n and_o who_o be_v apollo_n baptist_n 1._o cor._n 3._o a_o example_n of_o john_n baptist_n john_n baptist_n very_o well_o declare_v this_o when_o be_v demand_v of_o himself_o what_o he_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o christ_n nor_o elias_n nor_o yet_o a_o prophet_n but_o only_o 20._o john_n 1._o 20._o a_o voice_n of_o a_o crier_n in_o the_o wilderness_n prepare_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n have_v very_o ample_a gift_n which_o like_o faithful_a servant_n they_o ought_v to_o use_v to_o the_o commodity_n of_o other_o servant_n and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o lord_n neither_o must_v they_o bend_v they_o either_o unto_o gain_n or_o unto_o preferment_n 35_o and_o although_o paul_n seem_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o abase_v the_o ministry_n yet_o if_o thou_o diligent_o observe_v what_o he_o say_v thou_o will_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o take_v from_o the_o worthiness_n thereof_o for_o in_o deed_n he_o leave_v unto_o it_o a_o notable_a commendation_n when_o he_o say_v 5_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o ministry_n 1._o cor._n 3._o 5_o that_o they_o be_v minister_n by_o who_o they_o believe_v i'faith_o remission_n of_o sin_n
sacrament_n and_o that_o which_o we_o have_v set_v down_o touch_v the_o minister_n must_v also_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o if_o thou_o will_v regard_v they_o as_o simple_a and_o bare_a figure_n thou_o shall_v very_o much_o err_v if_o thou_o ascribe_v either_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n or_o thy_o salvation_n unto_o they_o but_o if_o in_o thy_o mind_n thou_o refer_v these_o thing_n unto_o that_o which_o they_o signify_v and_o the_o same_o embrace_n by_o faith_n as_o thou_o ought_v to_o do_v assure_o thou_o shall_v draw_v from_o thence_o both_o salvation_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o thou_o shall_v receive_v and_o reverence_v they_o as_o excellent_a gift_n of_o god_n wherefore_o let_v minister_n take_v heed_n that_o they_o continual_o pray_v unto_o god_n make_v what_o prayer_n the_o minister_n shall_v daily_o make_v and_o beseech_v he_o that_o his_o ministry_n through_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v of_o efficacy_n towards_o they_o which_o be_v commit_v unto_o their_o trust_n and_o let_v they_o to_o their_o power_n apply_v themselves_o unto_o god_n that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o apt_a and_o meet_a instrument_n nor_o let_v they_o ambitious_o go_v about_o to_o wrest_v great_a honour_n of_o the_o people_n honour_n they_o must_v not_o seek_v for_o honour_n christ_n so_o humble_v himself_o 6_o phil._n 2._o 6_o that_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o weakness_n of_o humane_a nature_n say_v 36._o joh._n 14._o 28._o mat._n 24._o 36._o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o of_o that_o day_n and_o hour_n none_o know_v neither_o the_o angel_n nor_o the_o son_n himself_o peter_n forbid_v the_o centurion_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o worship_v he_o 26._o act._n 10._o 26._o 14._o act._n 14._o 14._o the_o same_o do_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n when_o the_o ethnic_n be_v mind_v to_o do_v divine_a honour_n unto_o they_o yea_o and_o the_o angel_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apocalips_n forbid_v john_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o worship_v he_o 10_o apo._n 19_o 10_o man_n the_o pope_n adore_v of_o man_n at_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n be_v most_o shameful_o adore_v of_o all_o man_n and_o how_o the_o world_n dote_v upon_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n hereby_o it_o be_v easy_o gather_v that_o it_o have_v bestow_v such_o honour_n upon_o they_o as_o god_n have_v not_o require_v to_o be_v give_v they_o i_o mean_v kingdom_n dukedom_n earldom_n marquesshippe_n shall_v the_o word_n give_v unto_o minister_n that_o honour_n which_o it_o shall_v not_o and_o deny_v it_o that_o which_o it_o shall_v and_o other_o such_o like_a which_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o give_v when_o monarchy_n abound_v in_o they_o more_o than_o enough_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v deny_v they_o the_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n due_a unto_o they_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o place_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o to_o be_v obey_v when_o they_o command_v we_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o reform_v our_o life_n to_o repent_v and_o to_o avoid_v they_o who_o the_o church_n have_v pronounce_v excommunicate_a and_o whatsoever_o thing_n else_o be_v of_o this_o sort_n but_o because_o in_o these_o thing_n the_o alteration_n of_o life_n and_o sincere_a holiness_n be_v further_v the_o devil_n provide_v with_o great_a care_n and_o diligence_n that_o with_o deaf_a ear_n they_o may_v be_v hear_v whereby_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o all_o go_v to_o wrack_v because_o the_o prelate_n of_o church_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n ab●…_n note_v a_o great_a ab●…_n that_o not_o be_v content_a to_o have_v immoderate_a riches_n &_o principality_n do_v altogether_o busy_v themselves_o in_o the_o affair_n of_o this_o world_n neglect_v the_o charge_n which_o they_o have_v to_o feed_v the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o the_o people_n in_o like_a manner_n think_v that_o they_o have_v very_o well_o perform_v their_o duty_n if_o they_o heap_v up_o upon_o their_o pastor_n the_o good_n of_o this_o world_n be_v nothing_o careful_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o be_v nourish_v with_o doctrine_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v that_o neither_o he_o that_o plant_v neither_o he_o that_o water_v be_v any_o thing_n may_v be_v understand_v by_o hyperbole_n or_o excessive_a speech_n namely_o that_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v nothing_o if_o they_o be_v compare_v unto_o the_o divine_a action_n 40_o but_o because_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v serve_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o high_a god_n and_o do_v appoint_v unto_o themselves_o one_o &_o the_o same_o end_n they_o be_v all_o mean_n and_o instrument_n of_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n which_o they_o have_v in_o common_a with_o all_o the_o creature_n for_o the_o which_o in_o the_o scripture_n god_n be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o host_n beside_o 1._o sam._n 1._o 3._o ibid._n 15._o 2._o esa_n 1._o 24._o and_o in_o very_a many_o place_n beside_o for_o that_o all_o thing_n do_v no_o less_o serve_v god_n than_o soldier_n do_v their_o captain_n which_o comparison_n in_o very_a deed_n aristotle_n make_v mention_v of_o in_o his_o metaphysic_n wherefore_o as_o touch_v those_o thing_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v among_o themselves_o all_o one_o church_n the_o unity_n of_o minister_n degree_n of_o minister_n be_v not_o take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o paul_n therefore_o take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n the_o degree_n of_o minister_n for_o in_o better_a place_n be_v he_o which_o preach_v the_o gospel_n than_o he_o which_o baptise_v and_o in_o the_o church_n we_o have_v know_v some_o to_o be_v pastor_n some_o teacher_n some_o prophet_n minister_n yet_o more_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o minister_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v all_o one_o also_o because_o they_o serve_v one_o a_o other_o because_o they_o all_o consent_n in_o one_o thing_n even_o as_o inferior_a art_n be_v join_v with_o that_o which_o be_v call_v architecture_n further_o they_o be_v one_o because_o albeit_o the_o great_a be_v prefer_v before_o the_o lesser_a that_o be_v not_o do_v either_o in_o neglect_v or_o contemn_v of_o the_o lesser_a they_o be_v one_o also_o because_o of_o themselves_o they_o have_v no_o other_o thing_n as_o touch_v the_o office_n wherein_o they_o be_v conversaunt_a but_o so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v distribute_v unto_o they_o so_o that_o in_o this_o they_o be_v equal_a that_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v that_o have_v they_o receive_v of_o he_o neither_o have_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o use_v in_o their_o ministry_n proceed_v of_o nature_n and_o as_o a_o live_a creature_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o because_o the_o member_n thereof_o be_v diverse_a be_v knit_v together_o and_o be_v stir_v up_o in_o their_o action_n &_o quicken_v with_o one_o life_n wherewith_o they_o be_v form_v even_o so_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o charity_n knit_v together_o with_o the_o other_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o also_o be_v draw_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n wherewith_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v move_v that_o they_o may_v further_o the_o commodity_n of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n 11._o mark_v thou_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o minister_n more_o than_o their_o life_n 1._o cor._n 5._o 11._o one_o of_o the_o minister_n indeed_o be_v holy_a than_o a_o other_o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o thou_o mark_v then_o the_o doctrine_n and_o take_v thou_o heed_n that_o they_o be_v not_o defile_v with_o those_o most_o gross_a vice_n for_o the_o which_o paul_n command_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o eat_v with_o they_o neither_o persuade_v thou_o with_o thyself_o 2._o the_o vice_n of_o minister_n can_v contaminate_v the_o sacrament_n jerom._n similitude_n 2._o that_o their_o infirmity_n or_o blemish_n of_o vice_n can_v hurt_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v holy_a hierom_n against_o jovinian_a have_v then_o proper_a similitude_n by_o the_o which_o he_o excuse_v god_n that_o give_v a_o soul_n unto_o the_o child_n beget_v in_o adultery_n for_o say_v he_o if_o corn_n be_v steal_v away_o seed_n of_o he_o that_o steal_v seed_n the_o sin_n remain_v not_o in_o the_o seed_n but_o in_o he_o that_o sow_v it_o and_o therefore_o the_o seed_n sow_v spring_v neither_o do_v a_o other_o man_n sin_n hinder_v it_o hand_n of_o he_o that_o sow_v with_o pollute_a hand_n furthermore_o if_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o that_o sow_v shall_v be_v defile_v and_o pollute_v the_o seed_n be_v not_o therefore_o so_o infect_v as_o it_o can_v grow_v even_o so_o holy_a thing_n can_v be_v corrupt_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o they_o that_o minister_n and_o augustine_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o
that_o subject_n which_o obey_v those_o law_n be_v well_o advise_v and_o let_v this_o much_o suffice_v for_o the_o question_n propound_v 6_o but_o pass_v over_o these_o thing_n beginning_n in_o 1._o kin_n 21._o at_o the_o beginning_n two_o thing_n come_v now_o to_o mind_n to_o be_v examine_v which_o serve_v to_o our_o purpose_n for_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o pertain_v not_o to_o our_o right_n and_o power_n and_o yet_o be_v they_o sometime_o require_v of_o prince_n therefore_o we_o must_v see_v whether_o it_o be_v in_o our_o hand_n to_o give_v they_o there_o be_v certain_a good_n which_o be_v call_v ecclesiastical_a good_n of_o the_o which_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v disposer_n and_o have_v the_o charge_n but_o be_v not_o free_a and_o absolute_a lord_n for_o they_o be_v assign_v for_o the_o live_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o for_o sustenance_n of_o the_o poor_a nevertheless_o this_o do_v prince_n oftentimes_o require_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o they_o and_o to_o their_o nobility_n there_o be_v also_o a_o catholic_a &_o sound_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o we_o but_o must_v only_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o oftentimes_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v require_v by_o monarch_n and_o tyrant_n that_o we_o shall_v bend_v and_o apply_v the_o same_o to_o their_o will_n and_o pleasure_n wherefore_o it_o be_v demand_v whether_o in_o those_o thing_n we_o shall_v always_o follow_v the_o constancy_n of_o nabaoth_n whereof_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v in_o the_o xxj_o prince_n whether_o good_n ecclesiastical_a be_v to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o prince_n chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n of_o king_n as_o touch_v the_o first_o to_o wit_n ecclesiastical_a good_n the_o opinion_n of_o all_o man_n be_v not_o one_o &_o reason_n be_v find_v for_o both_o part_n they_o that_o will_v not_o have_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v give_v say_v that_o these_o good_n be_v not_o the_o good_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o pluck_v away_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v none_o of_o their_o own_o leo_fw-la the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n write_v unto_o a_o bishop_n near_o sicilia_n say_v these_o good_n be_v not_o we_o but_o be_v commit_v unto_o us._n further_n they_o say_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v give_v unto_o king_n &_o prince_n be_v not_o convert_v unto_o good_a use_n but_o serve_v unto_o riot_n and_o courtly_a pomp_n and_o they_o think_v it_o rather_o the_o part_n of_o a_o magistrate_n to_o provide_v that_o those_o be_v well_o distribute_v and_o bestow_v and_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v perceive_v that_o ecclesiastical_a man_n perform_v not_o the_o same_o both_o they_o may_v and_o ought_v to_o drive_v they_o to_o do_v their_o office_n ambrose_n ambrose_n very_o ambrose_n will_v not_o deliver_v the_o church_n unto_o valence_n the_o emperor_n when_o he_o require_v the_o same_o laurence_n laurence_n laurence_n also_o will_v not_o deliver_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o most_o cruel_a emperor_n decius_n but_o bestow_v they_o upon_o the_o poor_a further_n he_o show_v unto_o the_o tyrant_n the_o lame_a the_o blind_a the_o afflict_a and_o needy_a and_o those_o he_o say_v be_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n augustine_n be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o gentle_a and_o meek_a nature_n nature_n augustine_n be_v a_o man_n of_o meek_a nature_n be_v not_o austere_a and_o strait_a in_o defend_v of_o those_o thing_n nay_o rather_o as_o possidonius_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o calamensis_fw-la report_v in_o his_o life_n the_o 33._o chapter_n when_o some_o of_o his_o clergy_n be_v envy_v by_o reason_n of_o certain_a farm_n and_o possession_n which_o they_o have_v say_v open_o unto_o his_o people_n that_o he_o have_v rather_o live_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v by_o the_o people_n than_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o charge_n of_o possession_n &_o land_n of_o the_o which_o he_o with_o his_o might_n be_v maintain_v and_o that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v place_n that_o they_o themselves_o and_o the_o minister_n shall_v be_v maintain_v by_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o altar_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o this_o he_o not_o only_o speak_v in_o word_n but_o perform_v it_o by_o a_o certain_a deed_n which_o differ_v not_o from_o this_o his_o say_n for_o upon_o a_o time_n a_o certain_a noble_a man_n of_o hippo_n who_o notwithstanding_o live_v at_o carthage_n frank_o and_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o hippo_n whereof_o augustine_n have_v the_o charge_n a_o possession_n by_o writing_n make_v and_o seal_v which_o writing_n he_o deliver_v to_o augustine_n and_o his_o clergieman_n only_o reserve_v unto_o himself_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o land_n during_o his_o life_n but_o after_o a_o certain_a time_n when_o he_o have_v repent_v he_o of_o his_o grant_n he_o send_v his_o son_n unto_o augustine_n to_o require_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o grant_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o will_v give_v a_o hundred_o shilling_n to_o be_v bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a these_o thing_n be_v hear_v augustine_n lament_v and_o sorrow_v not_o for_o the_o possession_n demand_v again_o but_o for_o the_o inconstancy_n of_o man_n for_o he_o reproove_v he_o by_o letter_n but_o he_o restore_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o gift_n neither_o will_v he_o receive_v those_o hundred_o shilling_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o alienate_v from_o the_o church_n that_o right_a of_o donation_n which_o he_o then_o possess_v the_o question_n be_v difficulte_n note_n note_n in_o the_o resolve_v whereof_o i_o be_v first_o of_o this_o opinion_n that_o if_o the_o magistrate_n and_o prince_n will_v take_v away_o those_o good_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v resist_v by_o force_n howbeit_o if_o they_o will_v compel_v i_o to_o deliver_v those_o thing_n i_o shall_v not_o easy_o yield_v unto_o it_o 7_o but_o oftentimes_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n will_v not_o take_v away_o those_o good_n by_o force_n but_o they_o will_v have_v they_o deliver_v by_o writing_n of_o exchange_n or_o alienation_n make_v and_o seal_v and_o unless_o this_o be_v do_v there_o be_v a_o danger_n lest_o their_o mind_n shall_v be_v alienate_v from_o the_o church_n and_o from_o the_o reformation_n thereof_o and_o whereas_o they_o may_v seem_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o favour_v religion_n and_o if_o they_o be_v reject_v they_o will_v hinder_v the_o same_o and_o through_o they_o the_o church_n shall_v want_v good_a minister_n and_o papist_n shall_v be_v call_v in_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v destitute_a of_o sincere_a and_o pure_a doctrine_n neither_o shall_v the_o same_o have_v a_o due_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n deliver_v for_o what_o use_v the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v deliver_v when_o the_o cause_n than_o come_v into_o so_o great_a danger_n then_o if_o that_o any_o good_n of_o the_o church_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v redeem_v from_o such_o vexation_n they_o which_o so_o do_v must_v not_o in_o my_o judgement_n be_v think_v to_o sin_n for_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o sell_v the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n for_o redeem_n of_o the_o beléeve_a captive_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o also_o be_v as_o lawful_a for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o church_n itself_o that_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v sell_v to_o that_o use_n ambrose_n declare_v ambrose_n ambrose_n who_o in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o office_n chapter_n 28._o say_v use_n that_o ambrose_n take_v the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n and_o employ_v they_o to_o godly_a use_n that_o he_o sometime_o for_o this_o cause_n incur_v the_o envy_n of_o the_o arrian_n for_o that_o he_o melt_v the_o chalice_n of_o gold_n &_o the_o holy_a vessel_n whereof_o he_o may_v make_v a_o benefit_n for_o the_o redeem_n of_o captive_n further_o that_o he_o defend_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o captive_n which_o be_v redeem_v be_v more_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n than_o vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o other_o ornament_n of_o temple_n beside_o this_o he_o rehearse_v the_o example_n of_o laurence_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v a_o little_a before_o laurence_n the_o example_n of_o laurence_n add_v that_o the_o church_n have_v gold_n not_o to_o keep_v it_o but_o to_o bestow_v it_o that_o the_o very_a same_o be_v lawful_a gratian_n in_o the_o decree_n 12._o quaest_n 2._o can._n apost_n and_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o sixth_o synod_n and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o same_o place_n in_o the_o canon_n et_fw-la sacrorum_fw-la can._n therefore_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o redeem_v captive_n with_o the_o church_n good_n alienate_v away_o it_o shall_v be_v much_o more_o
lawful_a to_o redeem_v the_o church_n itself_o be_v captive_a another_o argument_n also_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o civil_a law_n which_o grant_v unto_o a_o guilty_a man_n in_o peril_n of_o his_o life_n and_o that_o shall_v fall_v into_o extreme_a punishment_n to_o redeem_v for_o a_o price_n even_o his_o own_o blood_n namely_o by_o make_v agreement_n with_o the_o accuser_n that_o he_o shall_v surcease_v his_o action_n and_o this_o be_v in_o the_o code_n de_n transact_v in_o the_o law_n transigere_fw-la and_o in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr eorum_fw-la bonis_fw-la qui_fw-la ante_fw-la sententiam_fw-la latam_fw-la mortem_fw-la sibi_fw-la consciverunt_fw-la in_o the_o first_o law_n and_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n through_o the_o abandon_v of_o good_n and_o possession_n to_o redeem_v his_o own_o blood_n why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v lawful_a for_o church_n which_o belong_v unto_o eternal_a life_n to_o redeem_v by_o their_o outward_a good_n see_v these_o thing_n be_v more_o of_o value_n than_o corporal_a life_n 8_o but_o they_o say_v no_o man_n can_v give_v these_o thing_n because_o they_o appertain_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o particular_a man_n i_o answer_v neither_o will_v i_o that_o a_o bishop_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n do_v this_o by_o his_o own_o only_a counsel_n and_o will_n but_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v privy_a and_o consent_n to_o the_o same_o over_o this_o let_v we_o imagine_v that_o there_o be_v some_o steward_n which_o govern_v the_o good_n and_o possession_n of_o his_o master_n if_o it_o happen_v that_o he_o come_v into_o the_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n or_o be_v take_v prisoner_n who_o will_v blame_v the_o good_a steward_n if_o by_o sell_v some_o of_o his_o master_n good_n he_o redeem_v he_o and_o deliver_v he_o from_o calamity_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o give_v skin_n for_o skin_n 4._o job._n 2._o 4._o &_o all_o that_o we_o have_v for_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v for_o the_o life_n doubtless_o it_o be_v much_o rather_o to_o be_v do_v that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o pure_a gospel_n and_o may_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n let_v we_o put_v the_o case_n that_o there_o be_v some_o pope_n create_v which_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o to_o be_v look_v for_o but_o for_o example_n sake_n let_v one_o be_v imagine_v note_n note_n that_o will_v say_v unto_o our_o man_n permit_v you_o i_o that_o i_o may_v possess_v these_o city_n and_o castle_n and_o i_o will_v suffer_v that_o you_o shall_v have_v the_o gospel_n free_a redeem_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v redeem_v that_o you_o shall_v reform_v the_o church_n as_o you_o will_v i_o will_v not_o trouble_v you_o nay_o rather_o i_o will_v be_v favourable_a to_o your_o endeavour_n who_o will_v not_o give_v these_o thing_n unto_o he_o wherefore_o if_o any_o be_v put_v in_o such_o or_o in_o the_o like_a danger_n do_v deliver_v any_o good_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o prince_n they_o be_v not_o straight_o way_n to_o be_v accuse_v as_o though_o they_o have_v sin_v nay_o rather_o if_o they_o obstinate_o delay_v to_o do_v it_o they_o may_v incur_v the_o suspicion_n of_o covetousness_n yet_o this_o must_v they_o take_v heed_n of_o namely_o that_o they_o be_v move_v through_o ambition_n to_o attain_v unto_o dignity_n or_o bishopricke_n or_o other_o spiritual_a promotion_n show_v not_o themselves_o ready_a either_o to_o give_v or_o alienate_v such_o good_n this_o also_o must_v be_v foresee_v that_o they_o give_v not_o unto_o their_o near_a kinsfolk_n and_o friend_n those_o thing_n which_o they_o fain_o that_o they_o will_v not_o grant_v unto_o magistrate_n and_o prince_n but_o as_o thing_n now_o be_v in_o popish_a religion_n i_o can_v tell_v what_o profit_n it_o may_v be_v to_o the_o church_n that_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a riches_n be_v possess_v by_o ecclesiastical_a man_n as_o they_o will_v be_v call_v see_v they_o abuse_v those_o good_n especial_o against_o the_o gospel_n and_o profession_n of_o true_a religion_n the_o effect_n be_v that_o in_o this_o difficult_a &_o hard_a cause_n i_o will_v allow_v that_o if_o it_o may_v possible_o be_v they_o which_o have_v the_o government_n of_o church_n shall_v not_o resist_v magistrate_n which_o pluck_v away_o such_o thing_n by_o force_n and_o yet_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o by_o their_o own_o proper_a assent_n deliver_v they_o howbeit_o if_o the_o same_o be_v do_v at_o any_o time_n in_o manner_n &_o form_n as_o it_o be_v now_o describe_v in_o my_o judgement_n it_o can_v be_v blame_v 9_o but_o as_o to_o the_o other_o kind_n of_o good_a that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o true_a and_o right_a faith_n because_o the_o same_o be_v the_o vine_n of_o god_n church_n whether_o the_o true_a and_o right_a belief_n be_v to_o be_v yield_v to_o the_o persecuter_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n to_o yield_v that_o unto_o any_o for_o nothing_o must_v be_v add_v or_o diminish_v at_o prince_n pleasure_n in_o this_o matter_n very_o many_o at_o sundry_a time_n depart_v from_o the_o constancy_n of_o nabaoth_n very_o there_o be_v some_o weak_a man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o dioclesian_n and_o maximinianus_fw-la which_o deliver_v even_o the_o very_a holy_a book_n to_o be_v burn_v of_o which_o offence_n coecilianus_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n be_v great_o accuse_v by_o donatus_n donatist_n whence_o arise_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n whereupon_o arise_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n moreover_o under_o constantius_n some_o which_o otherwise_o be_v good_a bishop_n be_v force_v by_o fear_n nazianzene_n the_o father_n of_o gregory_n nazianzene_n subscribe_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o arrian_n among_o who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o gregorius_n nazianzenus_n also_o many_o revolt_v what_o time_n as_o julianus_n the_o apostata_fw-la obtain_v the_o empire_n neither_o do_v they_o faithful_o keep_v the_o vine_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o mean_v the_o inheritance_n of_o their_o parent_n 10_o but_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o clergy_n and_o ecclesiastical_a man_n contend_v 9_o in_o rom_n 13_o verse_n 9_o that_o they_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o prince_n be_v exempt_v from_o tribute_n and_o custom_n doubtless_o christ_n use_v not_o this_o privilege_n for_o he_o provide_v to_o pay_v tribute_n both_o for_o himself_o and_o for_o peter_n 23._o mat._n 17._o 27_o why_o the_o clergy_n be_v exempt_v from_o tribute_n &_o custom_n look_v after_o in_o pl._n 13._o art_n 23._o again_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o civil_a law_n they_o be_v not_o exempt_v from_o all_o burden_n of_o tribute_n justinianus_n in_o deed_n will_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v free_a from_o personal_a office_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o code_n de_fw-fr ecclesijs_fw-la &_o episcope_n and_o those_o be_v call_v personal_a office_n which_o we_o execute_v give_v hereunto_o industry_n and_o labour_n only_o for_o if_o the_o minister_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o they_o it_o can_v not_o be_v choose_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v hinder_v from_o their_o function_n and_o the_o same_o justinian_n seem_v also_o to_o have_v exempt_v they_o from_o extraordinary_a and_o not_o from_o ordinary_a exaction_n yea_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o the_o mend_n of_o common_a high_a way_n and_o to_o repair_v of_o bridge_n neither_o do_v the_o law_n of_o charity_n suffer_v that_o when_o as_o they_o possess_v land_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n they_o shall_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o civil_a burden_n and_o lay_v the_o whole_a weight_n upon_o other_o 13_o 2._o cor._n 8._o 13_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o burden_n upon_o all_o other_o and_o they_o only_o discharge_v bonifacius_n the_o 8._o 8._o a_o most_o unjust_a decree_n of_o boniface_n the_o 8._o a_o man_n as_o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v over_o proud_a and_o arrogant_a in_o his_o decree_n as_o we_o have_v de_fw-fr immunitate_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la make_v a_o decree_n wherein_o he_o ordain_v that_o ecclesiastical_a man_n be_v altogether_o free_a from_o all_o payment_n of_o tribute_n yea_o rather_o he_o strait_o forbid_v they_o that_o without_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n none_o shall_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o pay_v any_o thing_n to_o profane_a prince_n a_o most_o grievous_a constitution_n of_o a_o most_o outrageous_a man_n from_o whence_o have_v spring_v welnéere_o infinite_a garboil_n and_o endless_a quarrel_n howbeit_o some_o have_v patch_v it_o up_o with_o a_o goodly_a interpretation_n namely_o that_o somewhat_o notwithstanding_o may_v be_v exact_v of_o they_o if_o church_n matter_n or_o religion_n or_o common_a weal_n be_v in_o any_o extreme_a danger_n as_o though_o for_o sooth_n these_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o succour_v the_o common_a weal_n except_o when_o it_o be_v in_o extreme_a necessity_n dioclesian_n a_o philosopher_n witty_o quip_v by_o dioclesian_n i_o remember_v a_o very_a witty_a
not_o every_o where_o receive_v so_o as_o if_o a_o due_a consent_n ought_v to_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o firm_o and_o constant_o stay_v ourselves_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o discern_v of_o spirit_n 9_o but_o the_o discern_a of_o spirit_n be_v a_o gift_n discern_v in_o 1._o cor._n 12._o ver_fw-la 10._o how_o spirit_n may_v be_v discern_v by_o which_o the_o difference_n of_o they_o which_o be_v move_v by_o a_o evil_a spirit_n be_v know_v from_o they_o which_o be_v inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v christ_n admonish_v when_o he_o say_v 15._o matt._n 7._o 15._o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n but_o inwardlie_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n 21._o 1._o thess_n 5._o 21._o and_o paul_n unto_o the_o thessalonian_o prove_v all_o thing_n and_o keep_v that_o which_o be_v good_a but_o how_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v know_v john_n teach_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n when_o he_o say_v 2._o 1._o john_n 4._o 2._o if_o a_o man_n confess_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o be_v of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o deni_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o of_o the_o lord_n but_o be_v of_o antichrist_n augustine_n treat_v on_o these_o word_n augustine_n augustine_n marvele_v that_o many_o heretic_n be_v very_o pernicious_a which_o confess_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o have_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n who_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o of_o god_n but_o he_o answer_v to_o this_o effect_n that_o they_o confess_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v come_v in_o flesh_n which_o with_o a_o sound_a faith_n receive_v all_o those_o doctrine_n which_o either_o go_v before_o or_o follow_v this_o article_n if_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o be_v before_o his_o come_n he_o take_v very_a flesh_n upon_o he_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o shall_v very_o die_v and_o that_o afterward_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o whereby_o he_o may_v also_o give_v we_o the_o hope_n of_o resurrection_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n be_v knit_v unto_o that_o principle_n the_o which_o aswell_o heretic_n as_o infidel_n do_v refuse_v either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n wherefore_o john_n will_v not_o distinctlie_o reckon_v up_o every_o thing_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o confess_v unto_o salvation_n to_o the_o end_n that_o our_o spirit_n may_v be_v approve_v but_o he_o only_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a unto_o which_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o other_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v adjoin_v confession_n look_v part_n 1._o pl_z 3._o art_n 8_o every_o one_o that_o hold_v right_a opinion_n be_v not_o therefore_o say_v to_o be_v of_o christ_n two_o sort_n of_o confession_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v say_v admit_v there_o be_v some_o which_o right_o and_o faithful_o hold_v all_o those_o opinion_n be_v he_o therefore_o think_v to_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n if_o he_o live_v unpurelie_o augustine_n answer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a confession_n which_o be_v in_o outward_a word_n only_o and_o a_o other_o which_o be_v true_a and_o have_v good_a work_n with_o it_o and_o this_o he_o proove_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n unto_o titus_n 16._o tit._n 1._o 16._o they_o confess_v that_o they_o know_v god_n but_o in_o deed_n they_o deny_v he_o therefore_o by_o contrary_n he_o say_v there_o be_v some_o which_o in_o deed_n confess_v god_n himself_o therefore_o he_o affirm_v that_o confession_n of_o which_o john_n speak_v be_v no_o vulgar_a confession_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o have_v deed_n but_o through_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o this_o godly_a man_n we_o have_v as_o yet_o no_o certain_a rule_n by_o the_o which_o spirit_n be_v discern_v show_n many_o heretic_n have_v live_v godly_a in_o show_n for_o there_o be_v many_o heretic_n which_o in_o outward_a show_n have_v have_v their_o life_n garnish_v with_o work_n notable_a enough_o but_o the_o same_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v contaminate_v with_o the_o endeavour_n of_o humane_a glory_n and_o we_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o purpose_n of_o their_o mind_n can_v judge_v nothing_o of_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o work_n which_o they_o make_v semblance_n of_o for_o this_o judgement_n pertain_v only_o to_o the_o conscience_n wherefore_o john_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n write_v 20._o 1._o joh._n 3._o 20._o and_o if_o so_o be_v our_o heart_n accuse_v we_o god_n be_v great_a than_o our_o heart_n and_o know_v all_o thing_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v although_o thou_o shall_v behave_v thyself_o notable_o in_o outward_a show_n and_o shall_v have_v a_o evil_a mind_n think_v not_o that_o thou_o be_v hide_v for_o god_n also_o understand_v the_o perverseness_n of_o thy_o mind_n see_v he_o be_v great_a than_o our_o heart_n so_o as_o to_o god_n must_v be_v leave_v the_o secret_a judgement_n of_o perfect_a uprightness_n of_o work_n because_o he_o be_v the_o judge_n it_o may_v be_v that_o he_o which_o shall_v give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v 3._o 1._o cor._n 13._o 3._o see_v he_o be_v without_o charity_n it_o be_v nothing_o and_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o seem_v to_o do_v very_o well_o be_v condemn_v only_o we_o can_v judge_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o appear_v manifest_o 6._o two_o rule_n for_o the_o try_v of_o spirit_n 1._o joh._n 4._o 2._o the_o confession_n of_o opinion_n must_v be_v examine_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n before_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v opinion_n be_v examine_v by_o the_o apostle_n say_n 1._o john_n 4._o 6._o 10_o wherefore_o there_o remain_v two_o rule_n for_o to_o judge_v of_o spirit_n one_o be_v if_o the_o opinion_n as_o touch_v faith_n be_v retain_v perfect_a and_o pure_a and_o this_o mean_v john_n when_o he_o say_v if_o any_o man_n confess_v the_o lord_n jesus_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o confession_n of_o opinion_n must_v be_v examine_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o see_v they_o have_v not_o in_o the_o church_n at_o the_o beginning_n as_o concern_v the_o new_a testament_n they_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o john_n a_o little_a after_o say_v he_o that_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v we_o and_o he_o that_o hear_v not_o we_o be_v not_o of_o god_n then_o he_o add_v that_o thus_o we_o do_v prove_v the_o spirit_n an_o other_o rule_n be_v of_o manner_n and_o life_n this_o do_v christ_n express_v when_o he_o say_v by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o and_o as_o opinion_n be_v know_v by_o examine_v of_o they_o with_o the_o scripture_n discipline_n life_n and_o manner_n must_v be_v try_v by_o discipline_n so_o life_n and_o manner_n shall_v be_v try_v by_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n howbeit_o either_o rule_n of_o examination_n be_v at_o this_o day_n waxen_a cold_a for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o look_v upon_o but_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n do_v miserable_o perish_v and_o be_v neglect_v further_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v less_o red_a than_o meet_v it_o shall_v neither_o be_v it_o careful_o and_o diligent_o handle_v and_o the_o papist_n will_v that_o the_o opinion_n shall_v be_v examine_v not_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o counsel_n and_o father_n thereof_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o church_n have_v these_o many_o year_n be_v deceive_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n a_o gift_n be_v extant_a whereby_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v know_v with_o what_o spirit_n they_o which_o do_v speak_v be_v lead_v by_o these_o mean_v satan_n be_v resist_v when_o he_o transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n of_o counsel_n 11_o wherefore_o let_v they_o take_v heed_n which_o in_o diverse_a place_n boast_v of_o the_o counsel_n 14._o in_o 1._o cor._n 2._o verse_n 14._o in_o which_o it_o have_v be_v judge_v as_o touch_v religion_n what_o man_n it_o behoove_v there_o to_o be_v namely_o spiritual_a for_o somuch_o as_o the_o judgement_n only_o of_o divine_a thing_n be_v bring_v to_o they_o but_o at_o this_o day_n the_o great_a part_n of_o a_o council_n counsel_n out_o of_o this_o place_n be_v gather_v a_o argument_n against_o counsel_n be_v so_o overfraught_a with_o gross_a imperfection_n as_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o take_v meat_n with_o they_o they_o say_v that_o they_o be_v the_o church_n howbeit_o although_o they_o be_v baptize_v and_o have_v take_v order_n in_o the_o church_n 11._o look_v after_o pl._n 6._o act._n 9_o &_o 17_o etc._n etc._n look_v part_n 1._o pl._n 6._o act._n 11._o yet_o do_v they_o not_o therefore_o prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v spiritual_a see_v it_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o not_o
the_o good_a as_o in_o the_o evil_a part_n for_o even_o great_a offender_n be_v call_v anathemata_fw-la or_o accuse_v 3._o rom._n 9_o 3._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n paul_n will_v have_v be_v accurse_v from_o christ_n for_o his_o brethren_n sake_n among_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v call_v cherem_n that_o be_v perdition_n prohibition_n or_o a_o thing_n prohibit_v and_o it_o may_v be_v also_o define_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o apostle_n excommunication_n a_o definition_n of_o excommunication_n after_o this_o manner_n excommunication_n be_v the_o cast_v out_o of_o a_o godless_a man_n from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o the_o judgement_n of_o they_o which_o be_v chief_a and_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n and_o rule_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o salvation_n both_o of_o he_o that_o be_v cast_v out_o and_o of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n treatise_n a_o order_n of_o the_o treatise_n now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o necessary_a this_o punishment_n be_v secondlie_o what_o thing_n ought_v to_o go_v before_o afterward_o who_o be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v further_o from_o whence_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v whither_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v by_o what_o degree_n by_o who_o when_o why_o and_o by_o what_o motion_n or_o inspiration_n and_o what_o we_o shall_v at_o the_o length_n do_v with_o he_o that_o be_v excommunicate_a 17_o how_o necessary_a a_o thing_n excommunication_n be_v mat._n 18._o 17_o 3_o by_o the_o gospel_n we_o easy_o know_v how_o necessary_a this_o aught_o to_o be_v account_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o 18._o of_o matthew_n when_o christ_n have_v teach_v as_o concern_v brotherlie_a correction_n he_o add_v but_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n 18_o ibid._n ver_fw-la 18_o again_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o lose_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v also_o be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n wherefore_o see_v it_o be_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n as_o touch_v all_o the_o part_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n &_o credit_n every_o where_o to_o be_v give_v unto_o it_o so_o as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v woonder_v at_o which_o will_v profess_v the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o do_v exclude_v this_o particle_n we_o read_v in_o the_o 13._o of_o deuteronomie_n 6._o verse_n 5._o jer._n 51._o 6._o take_v away_o the_o evil_a from_o among_o you_o and_o in_o jeremie_n it_o be_v write_v concern_v babylon_n fly_v you_o from_o the_o midst_n of_o she_o 11._o esa_n 52._o 11._o moreover_o the_o israelite_n be_v forbid_v to_o touch_v unpure_a thing_n and_o if_o they_o have_v perhaps_o touch_v those_o thing_n they_o become_v so_o unclean_a as_o they_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o company_n of_o other_o 46_o levi._n 13._o 46_o the_o leper_n be_v banish_v from_o the_o campe._n and_o the_o lord_n expel_v out_o of_o the_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n 23._o gen._n 3._o 23._o the_o first_o parent_n when_o they_o have_v sin_v 14._o gen._n 4._o 14._o cain_n also_o after_o the_o kill_n of_o his_o brother_n go_v as_o a_o runagate_n from_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o parent_n final_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o testimony_n extant_a 14_o 1._o cor._n 5._o 3._o 2._o thes_n 3._o 14_o that_o which_o we_o have_v out_o of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o and_o else_o where_o aught_o to_o be_v sufficient_a also_o john_n in_o the_o second_o epistle_n be_v irenaeus_n 2._o joh._n ver_fw-la 10._o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o john_n who_o it_o be_v the_o which_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o first_o book_n confirm_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n although_o some_o think_v the_o same_o to_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o one_o john_n a_o priest_n say_v if_o any_o man_n come_v and_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n he_o receive_v you_o not_o into_o your_o house_n neither_o say_v you_o unto_o he_o god_n speed_n and_o do_v not_o you_o communicate_v with_o evil_a work_n in_o like_a manner_n do_v the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o have_v write_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n 11._o ephe._n 5._o 11._o have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o the_o unfruitful_a work_n of_o darkness_n 4_o before_o excommunication_n 15._o correction_n go_v before_o excommunication_n mat._n 10._o 15._o go_v brotherlie_a correction_n for_o christ_n say_v if_o thy_o brother_n shall_v have_v sin_v against_o thou_o neither_o be_v he_o to_o be_v think_v that_o he_o sin_v not_o against_o we_o which_o sin_v against_o god_n see_v we_o be_v his_o child_n &_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n yea_o very_o the_o saint_n be_v so_o prepare_v as_o they_o easy_o neglect_v that_o which_o be_v commit_v against_o themselves_o and_o soon_o forgive_v their_o own_o injury_n except_o so_o much_o as_o they_o perceive_v they_o to_o redound_v against_o god_n be_v what_o manner_n of_o correction_n ought_v to_o be_v but_o and_o if_o the_o sin_n be_v common_a and_o know_v to_o all_o man_n shall_v it_o have_v need_n of_o brotherly_a correction_n no_o very_o let_v it_o be_v bring_v and_o make_v manifest_a unto_o the_o church_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v needful_a that_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o sinner_n be_v search_v out_o whether_o he_o have_v mind_v to_o repent_v and_o return_v into_o the_o way_n this_o be_v purpose_v he_o which_o sin_v open_o must_v be_v exhort_v and_o admonish_v whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o all_o sin_n aswell_o secret_a as_o public_a there_o be_v need_n of_o brotherlie_a correction_n the_o which_o behoove_v not_o to_o be_v do_v soft_o and_o slacklie_o but_o very_o earnest_o must_v be_v lay_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o sinner_n the_o weight_n of_o his_o transgression_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n kindle_v and_o stir_v up_o against_o he_o the_o punishment_n that_o remain_v for_o he_o final_o the_o offence_n whereby_o he_o have_v hurt_v the_o church_n but_o let_v the_o rebuke_n be_v gentle_a as_o proceed_v from_o a_o friendly_a mind_n otherwise_o if_o he_o shall_v think_v thou_o to_o be_v his_o enemy_n thou_o shall_v rebuke_v he_o without_o any_o fruit_n this_o unto_o the_o galathian_o be_v commend_v 1._o gal._n 6._o 1._o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a rebuke_n your_o brother_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o gentleness_n excommunication_n must_v not_o be_v rash_a let_v space_n be_v give_v to_o the_o sinner_n to_o think_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o may_v the_o easely_o repent_v a_o physician_n do_v gentle_o handle_v sore_n he_o do_v not_o straightwaie_o prepare_v a_o iron_n &_o fire_n and_o all_o way_n and_o mean_n must_v be_v attempt_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a without_o impair_n the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o retain_v he_o that_o have_v sin_v in_o the_o church_n before_o that_o excommunication_n be_v use_v if_o he_o which_o be_v fall_v give_v place_n to_o admonition_n &_o promise_v faithful_o that_o he_o will_v change_v his_o life_n and_o with_o tear_n and_o confession_n of_o sin_n do_v testify_v a_o repentance_n and_o sorrow_n of_o mind_n and_o do_v take_v away_o the_o offence_n and_o occasion_n of_o sin_n there_o let_v admonition_n cease_v for_o now_o the_o brother_n be_v win_v unto_o christ_n but_o if_o he_o shall_v despise_v to_o hear_v be_v warn_v twice_o or_o thrice_o before_o witness_n let_v he_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o who_o also_o he_o shall_v be_v admonish_v but_o if_o he_o shall_v make_v light_n of_o they_o let_v the_o elder_n refer_v the_o matter_n unto_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n unless_o he_o shall_v first_o repent_v let_v he_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v excommunicate_v these_o thing_n ought_v to_o go_v before_o this_o judgement_n excommunicate_v who_o be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v 5_o now_o remain_v to_o see_v who_o he_o be_v that_o must_v be_v excommunicate_v he_o must_v be_v as_o paul_n teach_v among_o the_o number_n of_o the_o brethren_n 11_o 1._o cor._n 5._o 11_o who_o although_o he_o confess_v christ_n in_o word_n yet_o in_o deed_n as_o it_o be_v write_v unto_o titus_n deni_v he_o augustine_n tit._n 1._o 16._o augustine_n neither_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o augustine_n allow_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o party_n name_v to_o be_v excommunicate_a shall_v be_v refer_v to_o a_o adulterer_n a_o drunkard_n and_o to_o other_o great_a crime_n which_o follow_v after_o for_o sin_n also_o which_o be_v not_o so_o public_a and_o know_v unto_o all_o man_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v stir_v up_o through_o brotherlie_a correction_n public_a how_o private_a sin_n become_v public_a be_v by_o accuse_v to_o the_o church_n make_v public_a also_o they_o that_o be_v infect_v with_o ill_a doctrine_n be_v excommunicate_v as_o
say_v that_o we_o must_v not_o cast_v away_o hope_v of_o they_o that_o be_v onlive_v but_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o no_o man_n must_v be_v punish_v with_o a_o curse_n it_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o saying_n of_o other_o father_n &_o counsel_n which_o curse_v arrius_n manicheus_fw-la and_o many_o heretic_n further_o it_o seem_v to_o agree_v but_o little_a with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v it_o be_v say_v unto_o the_o galathian_o 8._o gal._n 1._o 8._o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n than_o we_o have_v do_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a there_o seem_v also_o some_o degreée_n to_o be_v appoint_v in_o the_o church_n hearer_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a hearer_n in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v herer_n because_o they_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o holy_a preach_v wherefore_o none_o be_v utterlie_o drive_v away_o unless_o there_o be_v some_o open_a derider_n &_o contemner_n there_o be_v also_o man_n that_o prostrate_v themselves_o prostrate_v man_n prostrate_v who_o desire_v pardon_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n for_o their_o sin_n commit_v there_o be_v also_o suppliant_n reckon_v suppliant_n suppliant_n who_o not_o withstand_v they_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o when_o the_o faithful_a pray_v they_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v present_a unto_o which_o degree_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o abstinent_n do_v pertain_v final_o they_o be_v reckon_v which_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n excommunicant_o excommunicant_o among_o these_o degree_n it_o be_v account_v the_o small_a to_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o eucharist_n for_o a_o time_n more_o gréevous_a to_o be_v put_v apart_o from_o the_o company_n of_o they_o that_o pray_v but_o most_o gréevous_a of_o all_o to_o be_v remoove_v from_o they_o that_o lie_v prostrate_a but_o as_o touch_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a many_o thought_n that_o these_o article_n be_v counterfeit_a and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v for_o the_o lawful_a decree_n of_o that_o synod_n see_v they_o be_v almost_o no_o where_n observe_v yet_o out_o of_o cyprian_a we_o manifest_o gather_v death_n to_o man_n fall_v into_o idolatry_n no_o peace_n give_v but_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n that_o there_o be_v some_o degree_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v fall_v into_o idolatry_n as_o he_o say_v there_o be_v give_v no_o peace_n by_o the_o church_n unless_o it_o be_v about_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n but_o unto_o adulterer_n it_o be_v grant_v after_o a_o long_a repentance_n be_v adulterer_n libellates_n what_o they_o be_v but_o unto_o the_o libellatiste_n for_o so_o be_v they_o call_v which_o for_o money_n redeem_v themselves_o in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n pardon_n be_v somewhat_o easy_o grant_v so_o as_o out_o of_o the_o father_n be_v easy_o gather_v these_o degree_n which_o nevertheless_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n excommunication_n who_o shall_v use_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n 8_o now_o be_v we_o to_o entreat_v who_o they_o be_v which_o ought_v to_o exercise_v excommunication_n separation_n from_o god_n and_o from_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o as_o we_o say_v happen_v through_o infidelity_n and_o other_o sin_n can_v be_v lay_v upon_o we_o by_o any_o creature_n we_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o god_n 2._o esa_n 59_o 2._o wherefore_o esaie_n say_v sin_n have_v make_v a_o separation_n between_o i_o and_o you_o 39_o rom._n 8._o 35._o &_o 39_o and_o paul_n say_v that_o he_o certain_o know_v that_o no_o creature_n can_v pluck_v he_o away_o from_o that_o love_n wherewith_o god_n &_o christ_n love_v they_o but_o excommunication_n which_o be_v a_o token_n of_o this_o inward_a profess_v inward_a apostasy_n be_v a_o fall_v away_o from_o he_o that_o we_o profess_v apostasy_n in_o deed_n not_o a_o certain_a and_o necessary_a token_n yet_o a_o great_a one_o and_o great_o to_o be_v fear_v must_v be_v inflict_v by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n god_n excommunication_n be_v no_o certain_a token_n of_o the_o separation_n from_o god_n and_o therefore_o i_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o certain_a and_o necessary_a token_n of_o the_o separation_n from_o god_n and_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o may_v sometime_o be_v that_o a_o good_a and_o innocent_a man_n may_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o corrupt_a judgement_n of_o the_o ruler_n in_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v know_v it_o to_o be_v do_v more_o than_o once_o in_o the_o counsel_n and_o among_o the_o father_n which_o be_v otherwise_o account_v holy_a wherefore_o by_o excommunication_n we_o be_v not_o proper_o say_v to_o be_v separate_v from_o god_n but_o be_v show_v and_o discern_v to_o be_v separate_v similitude_n a_o similitude_n as_o in_o the_o old_a law_n a_o priest_n when_o he_o judge_v any_o leper_n do_v not_o infect_v he_o with_o leprosy_n but_o pronounce_v he_o to_o be_v already_o infect_v 18_o mat._n 16._o 18_o neither_o be_v it_o against_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o bind_v &_o loose_v because_o this_o judgement_n when_o it_o concur_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n church_n how_o god_n work_v together_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a and_o see_v god_n work_v together_o with_o they_o the_o separation_n which_o have_v already_o happen_v to_o the_o poor_a wretch_n be_v become_v more_o gréevous_a but_o now_o this_o only_a we_o say_v that_o in_o excommunication_n it_o perpetuallie_o happen_v that_o apostasy_n and_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n go_v before_o the_o same_o and_o so_o god_n work_v together_o with_o this_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n when_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o decré_v that_o he_o may_v send_v scourge_n and_o unclean_a spirit_n for_o to_o vex_v they_o that_o be_v excommunicate_a ambrose_n ambrose_n we_o read_v of_o ambrose_n that_o the_o scribe_n of_o stellico_n when_o as_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v he_o begin_v to_o be_v gréevouslie_o vex_v with_o a_o ill_a spirit_n and_o these_o thing_n do_v god_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v declare_v that_o he_o confirm_v that_o in_o heaven_n which_o in_o earth_n shall_v be_v justly_o bind_v 9_o but_o that_o we_o may_v right_o understand_v who_o ought_v to_o be_v excommunicate_a it_o be_v needful_a to_o discuss_v in_o what_o sort_n the_o society_n of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o be_v not_o simple_a of_o what_o manner_n of_o society_n the_o church_n be_v of_o but_o it_o be_v compound_v of_o one_o alone_a of_o many_o good_a governor_n and_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o people_n for_o from_o it_o must_v be_v remoove_v pernicious_a kind_n of_o common_a weal_n i_o mean_v tyranny_n the_o government_n of_o a_o few_o 28._o how_o it_o be_v a_o monarchy_n act._n 20._o 28._o and_o the_o lordship_n of_o corrupt_a people_n if_o thou_o respect_v christ_n it_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o monarchy_n for_o he_o be_v our_o king_n who_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n have_v purchase_v the_o church_n unto_o himself_o he_o be_v now_o go_v into_o heaven_n yet_o do_v he_o govern_v this_o kingdom_n of_o he_o indeed_o not_o with_o visible_a presence_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 11._o how_o it_o be_v a_o aristocracy_n 1._o co._n 12._o 28_o ephe._n 4._o 11._o and_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n which_o do_v execute_v the_o office_n for_o he_o bishop_n elder_n doctor_n and_o other_o bear_v rule_n in_o respect_n of_o who_o it_o may_v justly_o be_v call_v a_o government_n of_o many_o for_o they_o which_o be_v prefer_v to_o the_o government_n of_o church_n only_o because_o of_o the_o excellent_a gift_n of_o god_n as_o touch_v doctrine_n and_o pureness_n of_o life_n must_v be_v promote_v unto_o these_o degree_n these_o office_n be_v not_o commit_v unto_o they_o according_a to_o the_o estimation_n of_o riches_n and_o revenue_n not_o for_o favour_n beauty_n or_o nobility_n sake_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o merit_n and_o virtue_n but_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o it_o be_v do_v against_o the_o rule_n but_o because_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v matter_n of_o very_a great_a weight_n &_o importance_n democracy_n how_o it_o be_v a_o democracy_n refer_v unto_o the_o people_n 2._o acts._n 1._o 15._o acts._n 6._o 2._o as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o it_o have_v a_o consideration_n of_o politic_a government_n but_o of_o the_o most_o weight_n be_v account_v excommunication_n absolution_n choose_v of_o minister_n and_o such_o like_a so_o as_o it_o be_v conclude_v weal_n no_o man_n can_v be_v excommunicate_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n the_o roman_a common_a weal_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v excommunicate_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n on_o this_o
another_o which_o hold_v not_o with_o that_o guide_n with_o who_o he_o hold_v and_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o two_o or_o three_o pope_n live_v at_o one_o time_n these_o thing_n be_v mark_v it_o may_v easy_o be_v gather_v what_o be_v schism_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n schism_n it_o defin●…_n of_o schism_n it_o be_v a_o separation_n of_o a_o congregation_n through_o the_o hatred_n of_o brethren_n because_o of_o the_o diversity_n either_o of_o mind_n or_o opinion_n or_o speech_n or_o election_n of_o governor_n which_o thing_n do_v both_o breed_v and_o increase_v that_o hatred_n 3_o howbeit_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o all_o schism_n be_v not_o good_a or_o evil_n for_o there_o be_v schism_n a_o distinction_n of_o schism_n which_o thou_o may_v not_o condemn_v whole_a it_o be_v no_o separation_n but_o of_o part_n from_o the_o whole_a and_o which_o thou_o may_v just_o allow_v it_o be_v no_o separation_n except_o it_o be_v of_o the_o part_n from_o the_o whole_a which_o whole_a when_o it_o shall_v become_v evil_a if_o certain_a part_n divine_v themselves_o from_o it_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v corrupt_v and_o infect_v the_o depart_a shall_v be_v commendable_a 8_o a_o good_a departure_n or_o separation_n hebr._n 11._o 8_o so_o be_v abraham_n commend_v because_o he_o depart_v from_o the_o chaldean_n &_o from_o his_o own_o country_n a_o good_a separation_n also_o there_o be_v of_o the_o proselit_n who_o sunder_v themselves_o from_o idolatry_n go_v unto_o the_o people_n of_o god_n also_o the_o depart_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o jew_n be_v altogether_o commendable_a especial_o see_v christ_n himself_o say_v 34._o mat._n 10._o 34._o that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o send_v peace_n but_o a_o sword_n and_o to_o sever_v man_n from_o their_o own_o household_n it_o also_o happen_v sometime_o that_o all_o the_o part_n of_o some_o whole_a be_v evil_a and_o it_o profit_v the_o godly_a that_o those_o be_v draw_v one_o from_o another_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v languish_v and_o be_v enféebled_a and_o to_o that_o purpose_n paul_n when_o he_o be_v come_v into_o great_a danger_n 6._o acts._n 23._o 6._o set_v the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n at_o debate_n one_o against_o another_o it_o be_v profitable_a also_o for_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n when_o the_o jew_n disagré_v among_o themselves_o as_o concern_v christ_n a_o part_n say_v of_o he_o he_o be_v good_a 40._o john_n 7._o 40._o see_v he_o do_v so_o many_o sign_n but_o other_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v evil_a and_o that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v of_o god_n see_v he_o break_v the_o sabaoth_n day_n but_o if_o the_o whole_a itself_o be_v good_a and_o some_o part_n be_v putrify_v &_o defile_v be_v depart_v away_o schism_n a_o detestable_a schism_n such_o a_o schism_n must_v be_v detest_v and_o we_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v evil_a wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o pernicious_a thing_n because_o the_o nature_n neither_o of_o the_o part_n nor_o yet_o of_o the_o whole_a be_v preserve_v which_o that_o we_o may_v understand_v a_o certain_a distinction_n of_o the_o whole_a must_v be_v consider_v as_o it_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o natural_a philosopher_n one_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o it_o consist_v of_o like_a part_n as_o be_v water_n blood_n earth_n and_o such_o like_a if_o a_o division_n be_v make_v doubtless_o the_o power_n of_o the_o whole_a do_v after_o a_o sort_n perish_v for_o by_o that_o pluck_n in_o sunder_o it_o be_v weaken_v but_o in_o the_o part_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v preserve_v for_o every_o part_n of_o water_n be_v water_n and_o every_o part_n of_o blood_n be_v blood_n another_o whole_a there_o be_v find_v which_o they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o consist_v of_o the_o diversity_n of_o part_n such_o be_v live_v creature_n make_v of_o diverse_a member_n yea_o and_o plant_n consist_v of_o diverse_a part_n these_o thing_n if_o a_o man_n divide_v neither_o the_o whole_a nor_o the_o part_n will_v stand_v a_o man_n be_v draw_v asunder_o into_o part_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o man_n and_o his_o part_n be_v no_o more_o the_o member_n of_o a_o man_n and_o the_o church_n see_v it_o be_v a_o body_n of_o diverse_a part_n when_o it_o be_v divide_v both_o itself_o after_o a_o sort_n be_v ruin_v and_o the_o part_n thereof_o be_v distract_v do_v perish_v see_v they_o fall_v from_o eternal_a life_n so_o as_o they_o that_o separate_v themselves_o in_o a_o evil_a schism_n both_o destroy_v themselves_o and_o asmuch_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v destroy_v the_o church_n unless_o that_o christ_n be_v present_a to_o restore_v and_o preserve_v the_o same_o wherefore_o the_o vice_n must_v be_v shun_v as_o a_o pernicious_a thing_n cause_n what_o manner_n of_o depart_v we_o be_v &_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n 4_o now_o must_v we_o see_v whether_o our_o separation_n be_v evil_a or_o good_a i_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v good_a first_o because_o it_o have_v most_o just_a and_o very_o good_a cause_n the_o which_o i_o will_v in_o this_o order_n recite_v the_o first_o cause_n be_v in_o the_o church_n there_o can_v be_v no_o conjunction_n between_o they_o which_o retain_v not_o the_o faith_n faith_n the_o papist_n be_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n our_o adversary_n have_v cast_v away_o and_o retain_v not_o the_o faith_n so_o as_o there_o can_v no_o knit_n together_o happen_v between_o they_o and_o us._n that_o they_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n hereby_o it_o appear_v in_o that_o they_o have_v cleaved_a to_o tradition_n neglect_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o paul_n testify_v 17._o ro._n 10._o 17._o further_o there_o can_v be_v no_o fellowship_n with_o they_o burden_n they_o lay_v upon_o we_o intolerable_a burden_n which_o by_o a_o mighty_a and_o welnéere_o tyrannical_a violence_n obtrude_v unto_o we_o heavy_a &_o intolerable_a burden_n a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o false_a prophet_n will_v lay_v upon_o the_o gentile_n be_v convert_v unto_o christ_n what_o may_v we_o here_o do_v in_o time_n past_o the_o lacedaemonian_n say_v unto_o the_o athenian_n if_o you_o shall_v command_v thing_n that_o be_v more_o hard_a than_o death_n we_o will_v rather_o die_v than_o do_v they_o thirdlie_o our_o adversary_n usurp_v more_o unto_o themselves_o than_o paul_n think_v do_v appertain_v unto_o himself_o 24._o the_o papist_n arroga●…_n too_o much_o unto_o themselves_o verse_n 24._o he_o write_v in_o the_o 2._o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o first_o chapter_n not_o as_o though_o we_o have_v dominion_n over_o your_o faith_n by_o which_o word_n he_o testify_v that_o faith_n be_v subject_a unto_o none_o but_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o dominion_n over_o it_o but_o as_o peter_n say_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n the_o five_o chapter_n 12_o ver._n 2._o &_o 12_o they_o ought_v by_o admonish_v and_o teach_v to_o be_v helper_n of_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v of_o their_o eternal_a felicity_n and_o he_o have_v say_v before_o not_o as_o though_o you_o bare_a rule_n over_o the_o clergy_n by_o the_o clergy_n he_o understand_v the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v general_o consider_v be_v one_o certain_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o have_v many_o part_n to_o wit_n particular_a church_n all_o which_o be_v call_v the_o lot_n and_o inheritance_n of_o god_n wherefore_o peter_n will_v not_o that_o minister_n and_o pastor_n shall_v behave_v themselves_o towards_o they_o like_o lord_n four_o papist_n suffer_v we_o not_o to_o worship_n god_n pure_o and_o sincere_o they_o the_o papist_n admit_v no_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o they_o if_o we_o be_v conversant_a with_o they_o because_o they_o neither_o suffer_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v by_o we_o neither_o grant_v they_o the_o pure_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v institute_v of_o christ_n fiftlie_o thursdaie_n the_o papist_n every_o year_n accurse_v we_o upon_o shere_n thursdaie_n they_o curse_v we_o and_o pronounce_v most_o horrible_a execration_n against_o we_o especial_o upon_o thursday_n in_o the_o great_a week_n see_v then_o they_o have_v so_o excommunicate_v we_o and_o every_o year_n renew_v their_o excommunication_n what_o shall_v we_o deal_v with_o they_o when_o as_o they_o have_v so_o cruel_o abandon_v we_o six_o if_o we_o shall_v join_v ourselves_o unto_o they_o world_n the_o papist_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o inhabit_a world_n we_o shall_v be_v pull_v away_o from_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o account_v for_o schismatic_n the_o church_n of_o africa_n egypt_n syria_n the_o
east-church_n the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o respect_n forsooth_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o seat_n or_o rather_o the_o tyranny_n of_o rome_n seventhlie_a they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o excommunication_n and_o execration_n by_o which_o they_o curse_v we_o be_v faithful_a man_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n godly_a the_o papist_n persecute_v the_o godly_a do_v most_o cruel_o persecute_v &_o destroy_v we_o with_o sword_n violence_n prison_n banishment_n confiscation_n of_o good_n and_o final_o with_o flame_n and_o fire_n eightlie_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o godly_a man_n shall_v be_v conversant_a together_o with_o sinner_n reformation_n the_o papist_n admit_v no_o reformation_n so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v any_o hope_n of_o they_o remain_v and_o while_o they_o abide_v to_o hear_v those_o which_o warn_v they_o but_o these_o man_n have_v stop_v their_o ear_n like_o adder_n neither_o can_v they_o abide_v any_o word_n of_o man_n admonish_v they_o they_o have_v be_v cry_v upon_o of_o long_a time_n and_o they_o compel_v of_o force_n confess_v that_o many_o great_a error_n be_v creep_v in_o into_o the_o church_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o either_o show_n or_o amend_v any_o certain_a counsel_n have_v be_v hold_v namely_o of_o constance_n basill_n florence_n and_o trent_n welnéere_o within_o our_o age_n or_o the_o age_n of_o our_o father_n yet_o be_v there_o not_o correct_v in_o the_o church_n so_o much_o as_o one_o trifle_a thing_n or_o error_n or_o abuse_v so_o as_o they_o seem_v now_o past_a hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o experience_n teach_v that_o in_o live_v with_o they_o the_o truth_n be_v rather_o hide_v and_o weaken_v than_o that_o they_o be_v become_v the_o better_a wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o we_o depart_v from_o they_o for_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o very_a same_o cause_n depart_v from_o the_o jew_n 46._o act._n 13._o 46._o see_v they_o cast_v away_o the_o word_n of_o god_n council_n the_o papist_n mislike_v of_o a_o christian_a council_n ninthlie_a many_o have_v hope_v and_o yet_o hold_v opinion_n that_o the_o only_a remedy_n which_o remain_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o miserable_a state_n of_o thing_n be_v a_o general_a council_n which_o shall_v be_v free_o hold_v where_o the_o cause_n on_o both_o part_n may_v be_v discuss_v but_o they_o never_o abide_v themselves_o to_o be_v bring_v thereunto_o with_o grief_n they_o hear_v mention_v make_v of_o a_o council_n moreover_o lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v over_o wicked_a they_o permit_v a_o council_n after_o a_o sort_n but_o such_o a_o council_n as_o consist_v of_o they_o that_o conspire_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o see_v the_o ground_n and_o state_n of_o all_o depend_v whole_o upon_o the_o pope_n they_o will_v abide_v none_o there_o but_o such_o as_o be_v swear_v unto_o he_o 5_o tenthlie_a in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o thing_n church_n what_o and_o how_o many_o kind_n of_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o be_v necessary_a other_o be_v free_a and_o othersome_a be_v wicked_a among_o thing_n necessary_a be_v appoint_v doctrine_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o also_o holy_a and_o honest_a life_n namely_o that_o man_n shall_v behave_v themselves_o godly_a modest_o and_o justly_o towards_o god_n themselves_o and_o their_o neighbour_n all_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n belong_v unto_o discipline_n this_o be_v so_o let_v we_o consider_v how_o these_o man_n behave_v themselves_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n doctrine_n out_o of_o all_o doubt_n they_o have_v corrupt_v for_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n only_o 19_o rom._n 1._o 16._o &_o 3._o 21._o &_o 5._o 1._o gal._n 2._o 19_o as_o the_o scripture_n do_v appoint_v but_o that_o we_o be_v also_o justify_v by_o work_n they_o preach_v worship_v of_o image_n and_o the_o adore_v of_o creature_n they_o defend_v invocation_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o be_v mere_a corruption_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n they_o have_v so_o deface_v by_o add_v too_o and_o mangle_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v now_o scarce_o know_v further_o as_o to_o manner_n and_o life_n they_o have_v so_o excéedinglie_o loose_v the_o reins_n of_o discipline_n as_o they_o call_v good_a 20._o esa_n 5._o 20._o evil_a and_o evil_a good_a and_o all_o thing_n be_v take_v hand_n over_o head_n and_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n there_o be_v of_o thing_n as_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n perceive_v of_o justice_n and_o thing_n that_o be_v free_a now_o they_o suffer_v not_o to_o be_v free_a they_o have_v ordain_v a_o choice_n of_o meat_n 16._o col._n 2._o 16._o when_o as_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_v as_o testify_v the_o apostle_n none_o ought_v to_o judge_v us._n they_o observe_v day_n with_o great_a superstition_n also_o they_o suffer_v not_o fasting_n to_o be_v free_a but_o they_o will_v have_v appoint_v time_n as_o the_o year_n go_v about_o they_o have_v decree_v to_o fast_v upon_o fridaie_n and_o saturdaie_o in_o the_o time_n of_o lent_n in_o the_o vigil_n and_o imber_n day_n matrimony_n which_o among_o other_o thing_n be_v most_o free_a they_o have_v forbid_v to_o all_o the_o clergy_n also_o there_o be_v garment_n prescribe_v by_o they_o to_o be_v so_o ncecessarie_a as_o without_o they_o mass_n can_v be_v have_v they_o will_v not_o that_o leaven_a bread_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v but_o sweet_a or_o unleavened_a ceremony_n and_o rite_n they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v so_o common_a that_o all_o man_n may_v use_v they_o brief_o they_o have_v make_v thing_n that_o be_v free_a to_o be_v of_o necessity_n thing_n that_o be_v naught_o and_o corrupt_v they_o will_v not_o cut_v off_o they_o retain_v they_o obstinate_o and_o he_o that_o will_v admonish_v they_o thereof_o they_o gréevouslie_o pursue_v he_o 2._o whether_o the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n look_v before_o cap._n 1._o act._n 2._o 6_o furthermore_o they_o will_v have_v none_o to_o be_v of_o their_o fellowship_n that_o profess_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o universal_a church_n to_o be_v particular_a for_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v one_o certain_a church_n as_o be_v the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n milan_n and_o ephesus_n but_o the_o catholic_a be_v universal_a for_o it_o be_v there_o find_v wheresoever_o the_o beléever_n and_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n live_v well_o it_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o place_n &_o chair_n they_o straight_o way_n revolt_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n be_v erect_v by_o they_o for_o they_o which_o will_v not_o go_v under_o the_o yoke_n be_v by_o the_o romanistes_n expulse_v from_o the_o church_n they_o seek_v not_o that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v large_o spread_v but_o that_o they_o may_v bear_v rule_n far_o and_o wide_o paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n write_v 5_o rom._n 12._o 5_o that_o we_o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n &_o member_n every_o one_o of_o a_o other_o but_o and_o if_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v one_o in_o christ_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v enough_o to_o profess_v christ_n donatist●…_n e●…ors_n of_o the_o donatist●…_n not_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o donatist_n be_v reproove_v by_o many_o of_o the_o father_n and_o especial_o by_o augustine_n because_o they_o have_v straiten_v the_o catholic_a church_n into_o a_o small_a corner_n of_o aphrica_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o where_o else_o to_o be_v find_v but_o do_v not_o the_o papist_n the_o very_a same_o when_o as_o they_o acknowledge_v none_o for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o follow_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o their_o head_n and_o prince_n let_v they_o prove_v if_o they_o can_v that_o the_o gospel_n spring_v up_o at_o rome_n it_o can_v be_v say_v for_o it_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n aswell_o unto_o the_o greek_n as_o latin_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o by_o the_o right_n of_o antiquity_n the_o first_o of_o all_o further_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v before_o the_o same_o and_o if_o it_o can_v then_o be_v without_o it_o what_o let_v be_v there_o but_o that_o now_o also_o it_o may_v be_v without_o it_o but_o if_o so_o be_v to_o speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o logician_n the_o roman_a church_n first_o of_o all_o and_o by_o itself_o have_v be_v the_o catholic_a church_n all_o church_n by_o it_o shall_v be_v name_v and_o shall_v be_v call_v and_o become_v catholic_a through_o she_o which_o how_o false_a it_o be_v i_o have_v already_o show_v in_o that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n antioch_n and_o
of_o that_o say_n of_o christ_n 33_o luke_n 23._o 33_o i_o pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o the_o peter_n expound_v as_o though_o the_o lord_n pray_v not_o for_o other_o also_o assure_o he_o pray_v as_o it_o be_v in_o john_n for_o other_o also_o not_o only_o for_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o for_o all_o man_n that_o shall_v believe_v but_o i_o return_v to_o the_o place_n of_o feed_v the_o sheep_n and_o i_o answer_v they_o which_o demand_v why_o those_o word_n be_v severallie_o speak_v by_o the_o lord_n unto_o peter_n sheep_n why_o it_o be_v only_o say_v to_o peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o i_o say_v that_o christ_n will_v take_v away_o the_o infamy_n of_o peter_n thrice_n denial_n and_o as_o augustine_n say_v it_o be_v provide_v that_o the_o tongue_n of_o peter_n shall_v no_o less_o serve_v to_o the_o love_a than_o to_o the_o fear_v of_o the_o saviour_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o death_n be_v at_o hand_n he_o shall_v speak_v no_o otherwise_o than_o in_o the_o life_n present_v he_o do_v and_o the_o same_o in_o a_o manner_n have_v cyrill_n so_o as_o the_o lord_n deal_v after_o this_o manner_n with_o peter_n catch_v as_o it_o be_v common_o say_v two_o hare_n at_o one_o leap_n first_o he_o endeavour_v that_o all_o the_o apostles_n shall_v know_v that_o peter_n be_v receive_v into_o favour_n and_o restore_v to_o his_o former_a place_n secondlie_o that_o they_o may_v understand_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o singular_a love_n to_o the_o feed_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o that_o from_o the_o heart_n and_o sincere_o love_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o flock_n can_v but_o feed_v it_o with_o exceed_a faithfulness_n but_o least_o that_o unto_o any_o man_n it_o may_v seem_v somewhat_o hard_o which_o we_o affirm_v either_o that_o peter_n speak_v for_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n or_o else_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v unto_o he_o pertain_v also_o unto_o other_o this_o will_v be_v easy_o prove_v by_o the_o usual_a speech_n in_o the_o scripture_n judgement_n zuinglius_fw-la judgement_n certain_o zuinglius_fw-la labour_v very_o well_o in_o that_o argument_n he_o in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la religione_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n where_o he_o intreat_v of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n gather_v many_o place_n which_o make_v well_o for_o the_o present_a purpose_n 67._o verse_n 67._o in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o john_n when_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n be_v go_v christ_n turn_v unto_o the_o 12._o say_v unto_o they_o will_v you_o also_o go_v away_o there_o peter_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o all_o answer_v lord_n unto_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n we_o know_v and_o believe_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n see_v he_o speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n he_o manifest_o show_v that_o he_o answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o fellow_n disciple_n neither_o do_v the_o confession_n which_o he_o utter_v differ_v from_o that_o which_o a_o little_a before_o both_o we_o bring_v &_o utter_v out_o of_o the_o 16._o 16._o mat._n 16._o 16._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n but_o sometime_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o one_o man_n do_v not_o answer_v for_o all_o man_n but_o all_o man_n for_o themselves_o as_o when_o the_o lord_n demand_v in_o the_o 22._o 35._o verse_n 35._o of_o luke_n whether_o they_o want_v any_o thing_n while_o they_o live_v together_o with_o he_o they_o answer_v nothing_o again_o in_o the_o same_o evangelist_n he_o say_v unto_o the_o apostle_n 13._o luk._n 9_o 13._o give_v they_o to_o eat_v unto_o who_o they_o answer_v we_o have_v no_o more_o but_o five_o loaf_n and_o two_o fish_n there_o this_o answer_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o all_o whereas_o nevertheless_o in_o john_n it_o be_v assign_v only_o unto_o andrew_n the_o brother_n of_o simon_n peter_n 9_o john_n 6._o 9_o 10._o matt._n 4._o 10._o moreover_o unto_o peter_n and_o andrew_n be_v say_v that_o which_o belong_v unto_o all_o the_o apostle_n to_o wit_n i_o will_v make_v you_o fisher_n of_o man_n but_o to_o come_v more_o near_o unto_o that_o place_n in_o the_o 16._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n of_o which_o i_o speak_v before_o it_o be_v easy_o gather_v by_o the_o other_o evangelist_n that_o peter_n answer_v under_o the_o name_n and_o person_n of_o all_o for_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o 8._o 21._o mark_n 8._o 30_o luke_n 9_o 21._o of_o mark_n and_o in_o the_o 9_o chapter_n of_o luke_n the_o lord_n rebuke_v they_o and_o threaten_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o tell_v it_o unto_o other_o our_o adversary_n do_v not_o weigh_v these_o thing_n they_o be_v only_o very_o desirous_a to_o speak_v but_o what_o they_o do_v speak_v they_o consider_v not_o they_o be_v exceed_a careful_a for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o dominion_n and_o primacy_n servant_n mat._n 20._o 26._o but_o the_o pope_n to_o become_v lord_n of_o lord_n call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o servant_n whereas_o the_o lord_n forbid_v the_o same_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o command_v that_o they_o which_o will_v be_v the_o great_a shall_v behave_v themselves_o as_o the_o lesser_a and_o he_o warn_v that_o such_o ambition_n be_v proper_a unto_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o ethnic_n and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o his_o disciple_n 33_o because_o we_o have_v say_v that_o they_o deal_v very_o wicked_o and_o shameful_o 2._o whether_o the_o foul_a life_n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n because_o sufficient_a to_o depart_v from_o they_o mat._n 23._o 2._o here_o also_o they_o set_v themselves_o against_o we_o and_o say_v that_o the_o foul_a and_o reproachful_a life_n of_o minister_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o separation_n and_o depart_n from_o the_o church_n because_o christ_n say_v unto_o his_o apostle_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr which_o sit_v upon_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o they_o but_o not_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v we_o also_o confess_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n for_o the_o filthy_a manner_n and_o vicious_a life_n of_o clergy_n man_n although_o it_o behoove_v all_o godly_a man_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n to_o endeavour_v that_o either_o they_o may_v be_v amend_v or_o else_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v obstinate_a in_o their_o sin_n to_o be_v remoove_v from_o their_o place_n but_o while_o this_o can_v be_v do_v let_v we_o hear_v they_o when_o they_o shall_v speak_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n i_o mean_v out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o if_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n they_o will_v obtrude_v the_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o especial_o such_o as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o may_v not_o hear_v they_o neither_o shall_v we_o violate_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n by_o withstand_v they_o they_o be_v wont_v also_o to_o object_n that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 12._o verse_n 12._o where_o god_n command_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n shall_v be_v hear_v by_o the_o people_n of_o god_n answer_v a_o place_n in_o deuteronomie_n answer_v but_o why_o do_v they_o not_o mark_v in_o like_a manner_n that_o it_o be_v command_v the_o priest_n that_o he_o shall_v answer_v according_a to_o the_o law_n whereby_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o he_o must_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v obey_v while_o he_o declare_v his_o opinion_n not_o out_o of_o his_o own_o head_n but_o out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o this_o they_o allege_v against_o we_o the_o example_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n scribe_n a_o example_n of_o simeon_n and_o other_o which_o in_o christ_n time_n forsake_v not_o the_o company_n of_o the_o scribe_n of_o john_n baptist_n of_o elizabeth_n joseph_n and_o simeon_n who_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n of_o their_o time_n be_v corrupt_v yet_o do_v not_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n unto_o this_o we_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n urge_v they_o to_o sacrifice_v for_o the_o time_n of_o that_o age_n &_o that_o for_o sundry_a cause_n 5_o deut._n 12._o 5_o again_o they_o be_v enforce_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o sacrifice_v whersoever_o they_o think_v good_a but_o in_o some_o certain_a place_n which_o god_n have_v choose_v but_o we_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o those_o precept_n further_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n although_o they_o be_v corrupt_a and_o infect_v yet_o do_v they_o not_o compel_v any_o man_n unto_o wicked_a rite_n
which_o come_v from_o they_o to_o our_o church_n and_o we_o reverence_v and_o read_v the_o self_n same_o holy_a book_n which_o they_o use_v 4_o antichrist_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n 2._o thes_n 2._o 4_o and_o by_o this_o reason_n we_o understand_v antichrist_n to_o fit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n because_o undoubted_o such_o a_o one_o he_o be_v in_o time_n past_a and_o so_o by_o many_o he_o be_v esteem_v and_o call_v &_o because_o he_o still_o retain_v as_o i_o have_v say_v some_o step_n of_o the_o church_n 42_o when_o they_o urge_v we_o as_o touch_v a_o visible_a church_n visible_a how_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a we_o answer_v that_o iustify_v man_n which_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v bodily_a and_o visible_a albeit_o that_o those_o difference_n namely_o faith_n and_o hypocrisy_n by_o which_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n differ_v from_o the_o wicked_a can_v be_v discern_v with_o eye_n whereof_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o in_o sense_n be_v discern_v from_o hypocrite_n but_o as_o to_o that_o precept_n bind_v mat._n 18._o 17._o how_o far_o forth_o that_o precept_n ●e●_n the_o church_n bind_v tell_v it_o the_o church_n we_o say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o order_n of_o affirmative_n which_o kind_n as_o the_o schoolman_n say_v do_v in_o deed_n bind_v man_n perpetual_o but_o not_o so_o as_o it_o require_v a_o execution_n in_o every_o place_n moment_n and_o case_n but_o then_o only_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v when_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o profitable_a they_o that_o be_v corrupt_v must_v be_v show_v to_o the_o church_n where_o and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o church_n which_o may_v he_o come_v unto_o even_o as_o we_o judge_v of_o baptism_n for_o it_o must_v be_v provide_v that_o every_o faithful_a man_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a may_v be_v baptize_v but_o when_o he_o can_v have_v a_o minister_n he_o be_v excuse_v when_o in_o the_o time_n of_o constantius_n wellnear_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o east_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o arrian_n unto_o what_o church_n shall_v it_o have_v be_v tell_v if_o thou_o answer_v unto_o the_o west_n church_n i_o reply_v that_o all_o man_n can_v not_o go_v thither_o neither_o will_v the_o tyrant_n have_v permit_v it_o i_o will_v add_v moreover_o that_o godly_a man_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o be_v in_o the_o popedom_n and_o can_v not_o have_v their_o assembly_n else_o where_o if_o they_o have_v think_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v profit_v any_o thing_n in_o correct_v of_o manner_n and_o in_o procure_v any_o way_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n or_o salvation_n of_o other_o they_o shall_v have_v show_v that_o which_o be_v requisite_a unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n for_o that_o time_n give_v if_o they_o may_v not_o do_v it_o among_o their_o own_o but_o now_o whenas_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a unto_o god_n to_o raise_v up_o famous_a man_n such_o as_o be_v luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la church_n the_o famous_a me●_n luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la raise_v by_o god_n to_o restore_v church_n who_o have_v plant_v innumerable_a church_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o godly_a man_n set_v aside_o the_o relic_n and_o remnante_n and_o slender_a step_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v repair_v thither_o where_o they_o may_v both_o deal_n and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o shall_v continue_v in_o themselves_o through_o succession_n the_o faith_n &_o apostolical_a life_n conjoin_v themselves_o with_o their_o forefather_n which_o live_v right_o &_o sincere_o in_o the_o primative_a church_n 43_o nor_o will_v i_o have_v they_o ignorant_a that_o the_o further_o they_o have_v go_v the_o worse_a always_o be_v their_o deal_n become_v which_o we_o may_v gather_v not_o only_o by_o the_o former_a similitude_n of_o the_o decay_a building_n but_o also_o by_o a_o other_o namely_o of_o wine_n similitude_n a_o exce●…_n similitude_n the_o which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v of_o itself_o mighty_a and_o strong_a be_v praise_v of_o all_o man_n wherewith_o if_o there_o be_v any_o water_n mingle_v afterward_o the_o wine_n in_o deed_n remain_v still_o although_o more_o unperfect_a and_o the_o more_o that_o it_o be_v still_o delay_v the_o less_o it_o retain_v of_o the_o pureness_n of_o the_o wine_n and_o if_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o such_o a_o pass_n that_o in_o the_o end_n the_o wine_n will_v be_v overcome_v by_o the_o water_n so_o as_o of_o the_o wine_n only_o the_o colour_n after_o a_o sort_n may_v be_v perceive_v and_o some_o token_n although_o but_o small_a of_o the_o first_o taste_n thus_o undoubted_o be_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o church_n with_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n since_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v begin_v to_o be_v blend_v which_o as_o they_o have_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o increase_v so_o have_v they_o make_v feeble_a the_o pureness_n of_o doctrine_n and_o mystery_n and_o at_o the_o last_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o most_o of_o all_o do_v establish_v a_o church_n have_v after_o a_o sort_n vanish_v away_o so_o as_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v cease_v to_o be_v the_o church_n or_o else_o be_v so_o infect_v &_o corrupt_v as_o nothing_o in_o a_o manner_n remain_v sound_a therein_o we_o be_v separate_v from_o thence_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o blame_n but_o rather_o of_o praise_n especial_o when_o we_o go_v unto_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n because_o the_o church_n from_o which_o we_o separate_v ourselves_o want_v both_o for_o it_o be_v no_o more_o catholic_n because_o it_o have_v transform_v the_o universal_a church_n into_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o apostolic_a it_o be_v not_o see_v it_o differ_v most_o far_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o which_o will_v be_v build_v upon_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n &_o be_v come_v to_o that_o church_n which_o lean_v only_o unto_o christ_n the_o sure_a foundation_n we_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o which_o build_v chaff_n hay_n &_o stubble_n &_o that_o upon_o a_o strange_a foundation_n &_o we_o be_v come_v thither_o whereas_o silver_n gold_n &_o precious_a stone_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n build_v upon_o christ_n himself_o confute_v a_o objection_n touch_v the_o multitude_n cleave_v to_o the_o pope_n confute_v 44_o they_o press_v we_o much_o with_o multitude_n and_o boast_v that_o france_n spain_n and_o italy_n make_v on_o their_o side_n but_o herein_o they_o be_v double_a deceive_v and_o deceive_v other_o first_o of_o all_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n have_v depart_v from_o they_o or_o take_v not_o part_n with_o they_o second_o the_o multitude_n be_v no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o most_o populous_a country_n of_o the_o israelite_n god_n say_v unto_o elias_n 18._o 1._o king_n 19_o 18._o that_o he_o have_v keep_v only_o seven_o thousand_o unto_o himself_o which_o bow_v not_o their_o knee_n unto_o baal_n and_o of_o the_o seed_n that_o be_v cast_v upon_o the_o ground_n 8._o matt._n 13._o 8._o only_o the_o four_o part_n fall_v upon_o the_o good_a ground_n and_o it_o be_v say_v by_o christ_n 32._o luk._n 12._o 32._o fear_v not_o thou_o flock_v because_o thou_o be_v but_o little_a this_o nazianzene_n understanding_n in_o sermone_fw-la de_fw-la seipso_fw-la adversus_fw-la arrianos_fw-la say_v where_o be_v they_o now_o which_o defend_v the_o church_n by_o multitude_n and_o despise_v the_o small_a flock_n he_o therefore_o speak_v these_o thing_n because_o the_o arrian_n by_o favour_n of_o the_o monarch_n have_v possess_v the_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n &_o mock_v the_o right_a beléever_n as_o be_v most_o few_o nor_o must_v the_o church_n be_v measure_v by_o nobility_n or_o worldly_a honour_n 21._o luk._n 14._o 21._o for_o christ_n warn_v we_o that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o blind_a the_o lame_a and_o the_o poor_a shall_v be_v call_v out_o of_o the_o street_n and_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o enter_v when_o as_o other_o which_o be_v bid_v have_v deny_v to_o come_v paul_n also_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n testify_v that_o not_o many_o mighty_a man_n noble_a man_n 26._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 26._o and_o wise_a man_n be_v call_v yea_o &_o jerom_n in_o his_o proheme_n to_o the_o galathian_o the_o 3_o book_n write_v that_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o poor_a people_n 45_o and_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o suffer_v not_o ourselves_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o glorious_a title_n which_o our_o adversary_n abuse_n papist_n title_n of_o the_o papist_n for_o they_o call_v themselves_o apostolic_a catholic_n &_o the_o
raise_v up_o many_o tumult_n against_o the_o church_n that_o be_v true_a which_o be_v common_o say_v of_o live_a creature_n that_o by_o a_o dry_v up_o member_n the_o spirit_n of_o life_n can_v have_v no_o passage_n into_o the_o other_o member_n for_o if_o the_o arm_n be_v dead_a and_o wither_a up_o the_o life_n and_o spirit_n can_v come_v unto_o the_o hand_n but_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o such_o great_a conjunction_n between_o man_n for_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o we_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o light_n although_o it_o be_v disperse_v through_o vile_a and_o filthy_a place_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o therefore_o defile_v or_o corrupt_v 7_o but_o the_o time_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o will_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n sign_n of_o sacrament_n same_o be_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n &_o some_o after_o they_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o by_o note_n and_o sign_n for_o some_o be_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o some_o after_o and_o these_o differ_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o by_o outward_a note_n and_o sign_n neither_o be_v that_o do_v rash_o or_o without_o great_a consideration_n for_o we_o also_o as_o say_v augustine_n do_v after_o one_o sort_n signify_v thing_n to_o be_v do_v and_o after_o another_o sort_n affirm_v thing_n already_o do_v and_o this_o do_v these_o two_o word_n now_o pronounce_v sufficient_o declare_v but_o here_o be_v two_o error_n to_o be_v take_v heed_n of_o we_o sacrament_n two_o error_n to_o be_v shun_v in_o sacrament_n as_o the_o same_o father_n against_o faustus_n very_o well_o admonish_v we_o first_o that_o we_o think_v not_o that_o though_o the_o sign_n be_v change_v therefore_o the_o thing_n also_o be_v diverse_a or_o that_o for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o thing_n be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o therefore_o the_o sign_n ought_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o be_v change_v for_o if_o a_o householder_n may_v command_v straight_a thing_n unto_o those_o servant_n who_o he_o know_v it_o expedient_a to_o be_v keep_v under_o with_o great_a servitude_n similitude_n two_o similitude_n and_o may_v lay_v easy_a burden_n upon_o their_o neck_n who_o he_o will_v count_v as_o his_o child_n why_o then_o may_v not_o god_n do_v the_o same_o towards_o man_n physician_n also_o use_v according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o sick_a person_n to_o minister_v diverse_a and_o sundry_a medicine_n of_o all_o which_o medicine_n yet_o the_o force_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o namely_o to_o restore_v health_n but_o whether_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v now_o utter_o cease_v or_o no_o augustine_n answer_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la religione_fw-la away_o how_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n remain_v and_o how_o they_o be_v take_v away_o that_o they_o remain_v by_o interpretation_n and_o faith_n but_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n take_v away_o but_o touch_v the_o very_a thing_n themselves_o those_o which_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o the_o elder_n in_o their_o sacrament_n and_o which_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o our_o sacrament_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o if_o thou_o demand_v what_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v common_a unto_o the_o father_n and_o unto_o we_o it_o may_v in_o few_o word_n be_v answer_v god_n christ_n reconciliation_n grace_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o such_o other_o like_o matter_n us._n what_o thing_n be_v common_a to_o they_o &_o us._n these_o thing_n in_o time_n past_a be_v signify_v and_o set_v forth_o to_o be_v beléeve_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a father_n &_o the_o self_n same_o be_v in_o our_o time_n signify_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o set_v forth_o in_o our_o sacrament_n but_o the_o sign_n and_o symbol_n which_o the_o father_n be_v use_v be_v change_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n away_o at_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n our_o sign_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o at_o who_o second_o come_v also_o those_o which_o we_o now_o have_v shall_v in_o like_a manner_n be_v take_v away_o for_o when_o we_o have_v once_o the_o fruition_n of_o that_o chief_a felicity_n which_o we_o wait_v for_o we_o shall_v then_o need_v no_o sacrament_n further_o beside_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o sign_n be_v also_o out_o of_o augustine_n gather_v some_o other_o condition_n whereby_o be_v declare_v that_o our_o sacrament_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o forefather_n forefather_n our_o sacrament_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o those_o of_o the_o forefather_n for_o we_o say_v he_o be_v in_o power_n great_a in_o profit_n better_o in_o act_n easy_o in_o number_n few_o in_o understand_v most_o full_o of_o majesty_n in_o observation_n most_o pure_a and_o in_o signification_n most_o excellent_a those_o thing_n in_o deed_n be_v great_a 8._o look_v part_n 2_o cap._n 16._o art_n 12._o &_o part_n 4._o p●_n 10._o art_n 8._o but_o yet_o they_o alter_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v neither_o cause_n they_o but_o that_o our_o sacrament_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v as_o touch_v the_o substance_n one_o and_o the_o same_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o the_o roman_n say_v 17._o ro._n 11._o 17._o that_o the_o jew_n as_o unprofitable_a branch_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o holy_a tree_n and_o we_o graft_v in_o their_o place_n and_o the_o root_n say_v he_o carri_v thou_o and_o not_o thou_o the_o root_n root_n how_o we_o and_o the_o father_n be_v both_o in_o one_o stock_n and_o in_o one_o root_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o both_o we_o and_o the_o father_n as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o salvation_n be_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o stock_n and_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o root_n same_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o so_o then_o the_o better_a and_o worthy_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o and_o whatsoever_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o we_o and_o they_o the_o same_o consist_v whole_o in_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n past_a and_o to_o come_v wherefore_o augustine_n against_o faustus_n say_v that_o our_o sacrament_n be_v sign_n of_o thing_n now_o fulfil_v but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o forefather_n be_v sign_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v fulfil_v and_o upon_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o john_n he_o say_v that_o in_o sign_n they_o be_v diverse_a from_o we_o but_o in_o signification_n of_o thing_n they_o be_v both_o alike_o father_n the_o father_n extenuate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a father_n 8_o i_o know_v in_o deed_n and_o i_o remember_v that_o the_o father_n be_v sometime_o wont_v above_o measure_n to_o extenuate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 27._o homily_n upon_o genesis_n deni_v that_o circumcision_n any_o thing_n profit_v unto_o salvation_n but_o that_o the_o israelite_n carry_v it_o about_o with_o they_o as_o a_o token_n of_o gratitude_n and_o as_o a_o sign_n and_o seal_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v defile_v by_o mingle_v themselves_o with_o other_o nation_n and_o in_o his_o 39_o homily_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o bridle_n and_o a_o pair_n of_o fetter_n unto_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o mingle_v themselves_o with_o other_o nation_n and_o he_o affirm_v that_o god_n command_v it_o unto_o abraham_n and_o unto_o his_o posterity_n that_o by_o a_o outward_a sign_n he_o may_v declare_v that_o he_o be_v the_o possessor_n of_o he_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o change_v his_o name_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n for_o so_o do_v we_o also_o when_o we_o take_v into_o our_o possession_n a_o beast_n or_o bondman_n for_o we_o give_v unto_o they_o a_o name_n and_o we_o mark_v they_o with_o our_o sign_n or_o mark_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o book_n in_o the_o 40._o homily_n he_o say_v that_o the_o jew_n by_o circumcision_n may_v be_v know_v and_o hereunto_o may_v be_v add_v ambrose_n for_o he_o declare_v that_o circumcision_n do_v only_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o posterity_n of_o abraham_n and_o other_o nation_n manner_n the_o father_n speak_v not_o of_o this_o thing_n after_o one_o manner_n howbeit_o they_o do_v not_o every_o where_o speak_v after_o one_o manner_n for_o the_o same_o ambrose_n when_o he_o expound_v that_o place_n in_o the_o 10._o chap._n of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o the_o old_a father_n be_v baptize_v in_o the_o sea_n say_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v and_o that_o they_o be_v without_o doubt_n purify_v these_o thing_n be_v of_o much_o more_o excellency_n than_o to_o be_v separate_v or_o to_o differ_v from_o other_o nation_n baptism_n augustine_n admit_v unto_o the_o old_a father_n true_a baptism_n and_o
not_o in_o that_o it_o be_v speak_v but_o it_o that_o it_o be_v beléeve_v but_o in_o infant_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o age_n can_v yet_o believe_v 5._o the_o word_n cleanse_v not_o because_o it_o be_v speak_v bu●_n because_o it_o be_v beléeve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o faith_n tit._n 3._o 5._o the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v in_o their_o heart_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o faith_n the_o effusion_n also_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v in_o baptism_n as_o it_o be_v expresselie_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n who_o have_v save_v we_o by_o the_o fountain_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o have_v plentiful_o pour_v upon_o us._n 3_o neither_o be_v these_o two_o thing_n in_o such_o manner_n offer_v unto_o we_o in_o baptism_n 44._o the_o thing_n offer_v in_o baptism_n be_v also_o have_v even_o before_o baptism_n rom._n 4._o 11._o act._n 10._o 44._o as_o though_o we_o in_o no_o wise_a may_v have_v they_o before_o baptism_n for_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o which_o be_v of_o full_a age_n if_o they_o believe_v be_v justify_v even_o before_o they_o be_v baptize_v for_o so_o abraham_n believe_v and_o be_v justify_v and_o after_o that_o he_o receive_v the_o seal_n of_o circumcision_n and_o cornelius_n the_o centurion_n when_o he_o have_v hear_v peter_n and_o beléeve_v be_v not_o only_o justify_v but_o also_o visible_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o will_v we_o baptise_v infant_n but_o that_o we_o suppose_v that_o they_o already_o pertain_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o unto_o christ_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o such_o baptise_a in_o vain_a for_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v contemn_v though_o he_o boast_v never_o so_o much_o of_o his_o faith_n yet_o shall_v he_o sufficient_o declare_v that_o he_o neither_o beléeve_v nor_o be_v justify_v nor_o yet_o have_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n furthermore_o although_o they_o believe_v increase_v in_o baptism_n the_o gift_n which_o be_v have_v before_o be_v increase_v yet_o when_o these_o promise_n be_v again_o offer_v &_o that_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o through_o faith_n and_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v effectual_o take_v hold_n of_o they_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n can_v but_o be_v increase_v in_o they_o and_o why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pour_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o they_o that_o be_v regenerate_v this_o be_v the_o reason_n 13_o why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pour_v into_o the_o heart_n when_o we_o be_v regenerate_v eze._n 36._o 26._o by_o baptism_n we_o be_v visible_o graft_v into_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n 1_o co._n 12._o 13_o because_o they_o must_v be_v make_v man_n again_o and_o their_o stony_a heart_n as_o the_o pophete_n say_v must_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n which_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v do_v by_o man_n reason_n and_o that_o we_o be_v by_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n graft_v into_o christ_n &_o into_o the_o church_n be_v first_o declare_v out_o of_o paul_n for_o paul_n say_v that_o they_o which_o be_v baptize_v be_v graft_v into_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 12._o chapter_n by_o one_o spirit_n say_v he_o all_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o that_o this_o body_n be_v the_o church_n he_o teach_v at_o large_a in_o the_o same_o chapter_n we_o add_v in_o the_o definition_n by_o a_o visible_a sacrament_n because_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v justify_v we_o be_v very_o in_o mind_n and_o in_o spirit_n graft_v both_o into_o christ_n and_o into_o the_o church_n but_o because_o that_o be_v unknowen_a unto_o man_n it_o be_v afterward_o know_v when_o we_o be_v enter_v by_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n seal_v by_o baptism_n the_o right_a of_o eternal_a life_n be_v seal_v 4_o also_o the_o right_a way_n unto_o eternal_a life_n be_v seal_v unto_o we_o by_o baptism_n so_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v justify_v we_o have_v it_o give_v unto_o we_o and_o it_o pertain_v unto_o we_o by_o right_a not_o of_o desert_n but_o of_o the_o liberal_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o by_o baptism_n it_o be_v seal_v similitude_n a_o similitude_n as_o the_o gift_n of_o king_n so_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o be_v grant_v unto_o we_o do_v without_o doubt_n pertain_v unto_o we_o but_o afterward_o be_v seal_v that_o the_o will_n of_o the_o king_n if_o it_o be_v needful_a may_v be_v testify_v unto_o other_o neither_o be_v this_o part_n to_o wit_n the_o right_a unto_o eternal_a life_n perish_v not_o all_o which_o be_v not_o baptize_v do_v perish_v so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v not_o baptize_v for_o if_o they_o beléeve_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o let_n in_o they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o baptize_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o their_o salvation_n for_o christ_n say_v 25._o john_n 11._o 25._o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n although_o he_o say_v that_o he_o which_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v 16_o mar._n 16._o 16_o yet_o straight_o way_n he_o add_v he_o which_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v condemn_v baptism_n a_o faithful_a man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o baptism_n by_o which_o word_n he_o give_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o baptism_n be_v not_o of_o such_o necessity_n but_o that_o a_o faithful_a man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o so_o that_o there_o happen_v therein_o no_o contempt_n nor_o disobedience_n the_o schoolman_n also_o confess_v that_o beside_o the_o baptism_n of_o water_n the_o godly_a be_v sometime_o baptize_v with_o martyrdom_n and_o with_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 22_o death_n call_v baptism_n mat._n 20._o 22_o so_o much_o as_o suffire_v unto_o salvation_n christ_n also_o call_v death_n itself_o baptism_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v baptize_v with_o a_o other_o baptism_n and_o foretell_v that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o many_o day_n after_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n 6._o acts._n 1._o 6._o baptism_n repentance_n must_v be_v join_v with_o baptism_n last_o we_o again_o in_o baptism_n profess_v death_n towards_o sin_n and_o also_o a_o new_a life_n which_o profession_n show_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o unto_o this_o sacrament_n be_v join_v repentance_n 20._o mat._n 3._o 2._o &_o 28._o 20._o which_o both_o john_n and_o christ_n teach_v when_o they_o speak_v of_o baptism_n and_o the_o father_n waen_n they_o pass_v over_o the_o sea_n escape_v into_o liberty_n 14._o exod._n 14._o but_o pharaoh_n with_o his_o host_n be_v drown_v in_o the_o water_n whereby_o be_v signify_v that_o by_o baptism_n we_o ought_v so_o to_o be_v renew_v as_o there_o we_o shall_v forsake_v our_o sin_n and_o issue_n out_o with_o a_o new_a purpose_n to_o holiness_n of_o life_n all_o these_o thing_n ought_v we_o when_o we_o be_v baptize_v often_o to_o consider_v out_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o continual_o admonish_v ourselves_o thereof_o for_o although_o this_o sacrament_n be_v but_o only_o once_o give_v remembrance_n we_o must_v continual_o carry_v our_o baptism_n in_o remembrance_n yet_o ought_v it_o never_o in_o our_o whole_a life_n be_v forget_v for_o even_o as_o it_o behoove_v the_o jew_n evermore_o to_o remember_v that_o they_o be_v circumcise_v so_o also_o we_o ought_v continual_o to_o call_v to_o mind_v our_o baptism_n 5_o but_o it_o be_v wonder_a how_o some_o dare_v affirm_v basil_n baptism_n of_o child_n be_v no_o new_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n cyprian_n look_v in._n 1._o cor._n 1._o 16._o and_o in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr votis_n pag_n 73._o 〈◊〉_d forth_o at_o basil_n that_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n be_v a_o new_a institution_n in_o the_o church_n for_o cyprian_a a_o very_a ancient_a writer_n make_v mention_n of_o it_o and_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n that_o we_o shall_v tarry_v till_o the_o eight_o day_n for_o the_o baptise_v of_o they_o for_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v deliver_v we_o from_o observe_v the_o number_n of_o day_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o may_v well_o be_v baptize_v what_o day_n soever_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v assemble_v together_o origen_n also_o write_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o upon_o leviticus_fw-la sufficient_o declare_v that_o infant_n be_v in_o his_o time_n accustom_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o since_o that_o these_o man_n be_v not_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o that_o they_o make_v not_o mention_v of_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n invent_v by_o they_o or_o in_o their_o time_n it_o sufficient_o appear_v
the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n by_o which_o sacrifice_n god_n have_v make_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n with_o his_o people_n have_v forgive_v our_o sin_n have_v adopt_v those_o that_o believe_v to_o be_v his_o child_n have_v commit_v they_o to_o his_o first_o beget_v son_n to_o be_v save_v and_o have_v incorporate_v they_o and_o make_v they_o heir_n of_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o the_o lord_n death_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o become_v flesh_n thereby_o be_v renew_a the_o memory_n of_o god_n testament_n and_o therein_o be_v offer_v the_o participation_n of_o christ_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n through_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n wherefore_o in_o this_o sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v receive_v right_o and_o with_o faith_n not_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o work_n but_o by_o the_o free_a benefit_n of_o christ_n which_o in_o believe_v we_o apprehend_v we_o confess_v our_o sin_n to_o be_v forgive_v the_o testament_n or_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o we_o to_o be_v confirm_v and_o the_o very_a son_n of_o god_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o for_o the_o father_n to_o be_v so_o receive_v that_o whosoever_o with_o a_o true_a faith_n be_v partaker_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n do_v live_v for_o he_o and_o that_o the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n be_v possess_v of_o the_o faithful_a so_o far_o as_o the_o state_n of_o this_o life_n will_v permit_v we_o therefore_o do_v challenge_n unto_o we_o not_o only_a life_n but_o also_o a_o safe_a and_o quiet_a life_n from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o we_o which_o have_v god_n merciful_a and_o favourable_a unto_o we_o and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o of_o what_o joy_n of_o what_o delight_n of_o what_o honest_a pleasure_n be_v we_o destitute_a without_o doubt_n of_o none_o if_o we_o seek_v after_o those_o that_o be_v true_a and_o sound_a thing_n and_o not_o after_o fancy_n and_o shadow_n and_o of_o this_o commodity_n do_v christ_n make_v mention_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n when_o he_o give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o drunken_a by_o faith_n namely_o to_o the_o maintenance_n and_o nourish_v of_o life_n by_o faith_n for_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o luke_n he_o say_v 19_o luk._n 22._o 19_o do_v this_o in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o which_o paul_n express_v more_o plain_o say_v for_o so_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n 26_o 1._o co._n 11._o 26_o and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n you_o shall_v declare_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v 25_o luk._n 22._o 20._o 1._o co._n 11._o 25_o final_o in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v say_v of_o they_o both_o by_o luke_n and_o paul_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n through_o my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o so_o then_o as_o touch_v the_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o testament_n i_o have_v feign_v nothing_o i_o have_v devise_v nothing_o i_o have_v invent_v nothing_o which_o i_o have_v not_o do_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n last_o because_o a_o man_n be_v not_o make_v to_o solitariness_n but_o that_o he_o be_v desirous_a of_o fellowship_n and_o of_o a_o civil_a life_n therefore_o when_o he_o have_v now_o assure_v himself_o that_o he_o have_v god_n merciful_a unto_o he_o for_o christ_n his_o sake_n and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o require_v towards_o his_o perfect_a and_o absolute_a life_n so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v in_o this_o world_n but_o that_o with_o other_o man_n which_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v call_v his_o neighbour_n he_o live_v together_o joint_o and_o with_o singular_a justice_n and_o charity_n but_o this_o sacrament_n do_v most_o effectual_o and_o earnest_o admonish_v we_o hereof_o for_o while_o we_o in_o these_o mystery_n become_v partaker_n of_o one_o table_n what_o else_o shall_v we_o meditate_v in_o our_o mind_n than_o this_o that_o we_o be_v one_o body_n that_o we_o be_v member_n one_o of_o another_o under_o christ_n our_o head_n that_o we_o be_v one_o bread_n that_o be_v to_o be_v so_o join_v one_o with_o another_o even_o as_o wellnear_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o wheat_n corn_n be_v make_v up_o together_o in_o that_o bread_n which_o we_o receive_v those_o without_o doubt_n which_o through_o these_o admonition_n be_v not_o persuade_v to_o maintain_v mutual_a concord_n and_o charity_n between_o brethren_n have_v their_o heart_n harden_v like_o stone_n and_o iron_n and_o shall_v be_v account_v more_o savage_a and_o beastly_a than_o tiger_n and_o most_o cruel_a beast_n insomuch_o as_o they_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n give_v his_o life_n for_o his_o enemy_n be_v not_o move_v themselves_o to_o do_v good_a asmuch_o as_n in_o they_o lie_v to_o their_o brethren_n and_o neighbour_n for_o who_o christ_n die_v if_o a_o temporal_a table_n do_v reconcile_v man_n one_o to_o a_o other_o when_o they_o meet_v together_o why_o shall_v not_o rather_o the_o table_n of_o christ_n bring_v this_o to_o pass_v since_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v most_o savage_a be_v make_v tame_a by_o meat_n why_o do_v not_o man_n wax_v meek_a by_o this_o heavenly_a food_n if_o league_n and_o covenant_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o meat_n and_o drink_v why_o do_v not_o the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o communicate_v together_o establish_z peace_n and_o friendship_n among_o themselves_o of_o these_o thing_n undoubted_o be_v they_o admonish_v by_o this_o divine_a rite_n and_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n recite_v therein_o but_o and_o if_o the_o admonition_n we_o be_v obstinate_a as_o we_o be_v and_o very_o untoward_a unto_o just_a honest_a and_o holy_a thing_n be_v think_v but_o slender_a or_o not_o to_o be_v effectual_a enough_o yet_o upon_o condition_n that_o faith_n be_v not_o want_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v by_o the_o sacrament_n and_o word_n of_o god_n join_v unto_o our_o heart_n the_o which_o do_v always_o stir_v up_o unto_o concord_n peace_n and_o mutual_a charity_n so_o as_o not_o only_o a_o outward_a admonition_n be_v use_v but_o the_o mind_n also_o while_o we_o communicate_v together_o do_v feel_v the_o inward_a encouragement_n of_o divine_a inspiration_n wherefore_o you_o see_v what_o notable_a &_o excellent_a good_a thing_n i_o teach_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o eucharist_n let_v now_o my_o adversary_n go_v and_o cry_v out_o asmuch_o as_o they_o will_v that_o i_o do_v violate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n let_v themselves_o come_v forth_o and_o show_v by_o their_o monstrous_a and_o prodigious_a transubstantiation_n what_o more_o sound_a fruit_n and_o just_a commodity_n they_o have_v bring_v by_o this_o sacrament_n either_o unto_o communicant_n or_o unto_o church_n than_o i_o have_v verify_v will_v they_o speak_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o our_o dwell_n in_o christ_n and_o christ_n dwelling_n in_o we_o that_o do_v i_o also_o affirm_v will_v they_o speak_v of_o obtain_v a_o divine_a life_n and_o a_o heavenly_a blessedness_n even_o that_o do_v i_o also_o testify_v will_v they_o boast_v of_o a_o receive_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o do_v i_o also_o prove_v no_o less_o than_o they_o but_o yet_o such_o a_o receive_n as_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o from_o the_o heart_n but_o will_v they_o object_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o testament_n and_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n i_o think_v they_o will_v not_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o oftentimes_o teach_v in_o great_a assembly_n will_v they_o allege_v against_o we_o the_o incorporation_n as_o i_o may_v say_v which_o we_o in_o communicate_v by_o faith_n obtain_v with_o christ_n and_o between_o ourselves_o which_o be_v his_o member_n they_o can_v for_o this_o also_o have_v be_v perpetual_o rehearse_v of_o i_o what_o do_v they_o then_o say_v since_o beside_o these_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o teach_v we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n i_o know_v now_o what_o they_o will_v say_v you_o take_v away_o say_v they_o transubstantiation_n bodily_a fleshlie_o real_a and_o substantial_a presence_n this_o do_v we_o take_v in_o ill_a part_n this_o do_v we_o confess_v over_o and_o above_o that_o which_o you_o affirm_v herein_o do_v we_o disagree_v from_o you_o i_o hear_v they_o well_o enough_o and_o as_o touch_v transubstantiation_n aswell_o for_o that_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n as_o because_o i_o have_v deal_v therein_o sufficient_o both_o
consider_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v be_v accustom_v as_o it_o be_v by_o turn_n to_o attribute_v that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o sign_n unto_o the_o thing_n and_o again_o which_o be_v of_o the_o thing_n to_o ascribe_v they_o unto_o the_o sign_n the_o self-same_a manner_n also_o do_v the_o father_n use_n so_o as_o thou_o shall_v oftentimes_o perceive_v they_o to_o entreat_v of_o the_o thing_n as_o though_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o sign_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n so_o to_o write_v of_o the_o sign_n as_o though_o they_o entreat_v of_o the_o thing_n and_o of_o that_o which_o be_v signify_v this_o may_v very_o well_o accord_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a likeness_n which_o be_v between_o they_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o lord_n hereof_o augustine_n unto_o boniface_n give_v a_o plain_a advertisement_n that_o be_v sacrament_n the_o name_n be_v change_v another_o rule_n be_v that_o if_o thou_o diligent_o consider_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v before_o &_o after_o thou_o shall_v always_o perceive_v the_o father_n to_o testify_v that_o this_o food_n be_v spiritual_a and_o not_o meat_n of_o the_o throat_n spiritual_a the_o father_n always_o testify_v the_o food_n to_o be_v spiritual_a belly_n or_o tooth_n a_o third_o rule_n be_v that_o if_o they_o at_o any_o time_n say_v that_o we_o communicate_v with_o christ_n carnal_o so_o as_o the_o body_n also_o be_v nourish_v in_o the_o eucharist_n these_o thing_n must_v be_v so_o take_v even_o as_o we_o understand_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o he_o be_v conceive_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n do_v then_o take_v part_n of_o our_o flesh_n carnal_o what_o the_o father_n mean_v if_o happy_o they_o say_v that_o we_o communicate_v with_o christ_n carnal_o further_o we_o abide_v in_o he_o &_o he_o likewise_o abide_v in_o we_o when_o as_o we_o believe_v his_o word_n and_o when_o by_o faith_n we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n because_o in_o so_o communicate_v there_o be_v add_v unto_o we_o the_o spirit_n and_o our_o flesh_n and_o body_n which_o be_v already_o of_o the_o self_n same_o nature_n with_o christ_n be_v become_v of_o the_o self_n same_o condition_n with_o he_o they_o be_v make_v capable_a of_o immortality_n and_o resurrection_n and_o when_o they_o obey_v and_o serve_v the_o spirit_n they_o be_v true_o nourish_v unto_o life_n everlasting_a and_o so_o be_v our_o body_n two_o manner_n of_o way_n feed_v in_o the_o eucharist_n first_o it_o be_v feed_v by_o sign_n second_o by_o this_o renew_v unto_o life_n everlasting_a and_o thus_o be_v christ_n say_v to_o dwell_v in_o we_o by_o this_o sacrament_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o first_o communicate_v that_o we_o have_v with_o he_o by_o nativity_n and_o incarnation_n thou_o have_v a_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o 2._o 14._o verse_n 14._o chapter_n forsomuch_o then_o as_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o himself_o likewise_o be_v partaker_n with_o they_o moreover_o consider_v that_o the_o word_n of_o consecrate_v signify_v nothing_o else_o among_o the_o father_n than_o to_o dedicate_v a_o thing_n common_a and_o profane_a unto_o a_o holy_a use_n consecrate_v how_o the_o father_n understand_v this_o word_n to_o consecrate_v and_o this_o be_v to_o make_v it_o holy_a wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n that_o when_o we_o meet_v in_o the_o father_n with_o the_o word_n consecration_n we_o shall_v straight_o way_n fain_o unto_o ourselves_o transubstantiation_n but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o alteration_n make_v there_o we_o deny_v it_o not_o namely_o in_o that_o those_o thing_n be_v now_o make_v sacrament_n to_o signify_v unto_o we_o effectual_o that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o touch_v the_o mind_n and_o faith_n we_o must_v offer_v and_o exhibit_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n capernait_n the_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o capernait_n further_o it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o between_o we_o and_o the_o capernaite_n as_o touch_v the_o matter_n itself_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n they_o think_v that_o they_o shall_v eat_v the_o very_a body_n and_o the_o very_a flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o also_o we_o grant_v to_o be_v do_v but_o the_o difference_n be_v in_o the_o manner_n and_o way_n of_o eat_v that_o which_o they_o think_v shall_v be_v carnal_o do_v we_o teach_v to_o be_v spiritual_o do_v otherwise_o the_o true_a body_n and_o the_o true_a blood_n be_v exhibit_v because_o faith_n comprehend_v not_o feign_a thing_n but_o true_a thing_n also_o when_o it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o father_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v or_o have_v in_o these_o mystery_n by_o these_o word_n be_v nothing_o else_o to_o be_v understand_v than_o betokened_a show_v declare_v and_o signify_v 44_o and_o when_o thou_o hear_v the_o father_n say_v etc._n what_o the_o father_n mean_v when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n or_o wine_n remain_v no●_n in_o etc._n etc._n that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v no_o more_o in_o the_o sacrament_n this_o thou_o must_v not_o absolute_o understand_v but_o as_o touch_v thyself_o when_o thou_o do_v faithful_o communicate_v for_o there_o thou_o must_v not_o think_v either_o of_o the_o bread_n or_o of_o the_o wine_n it_o behoove_v that_o thy_o mind_n and_o thy_o sense_n do_v only_o cleave_v unto_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v represent_v unto_o thou_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v lift_v up_o your_o heart_n when_o as_o thou_o lifte_v up_o thy_o mind_n from_o the_o sign_n unto_o thing_n invisible_a which_o be_v offer_v unto_o thou_o also_o the_o holy_a scripture_n shun_v not_o this_o kind_n of_o figure_n paul_n say_v 12._o ephe._n 6._o 12._o our_o wrestle_n be_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n who_o nevertheless_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o body_n and_o flesh_n do_v grieve_v the_o soul_n and_o must_v be_v bridle_v see_v he_o write_v in_o another_o place_n 17._o gal._n 5._o 17._o the_o flesh_n lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n neither_o yet_o be_v he_o ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v many_o evil_a man_n who_o be_v call_v flesh_n and_o blood_n by_o who_o yet_o we_o be_v trouble_v and_o with_o they_o we_o have_v daily_o wrestle_v but_o paul_n mean_v of_o that_o chief_a and_o principal_a contention_n from_o whence_o these_o other_o have_v their_o original_n he_o say_v also_o that_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v neither_o male_a nor_o female_a 28._o gal._n 3._o 28._o neither_o bond_n nor_o free_a when_o as_o nevertheless_o these_o office_n and_o these_o person_n be_v not_o remoove_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n nay_o rather_o there_o be_v precept_n particular_o describe_v of_o they_o but_o paul_n understand_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o christ_n as_o concern_v the_o obtainement_n of_o regeneration_n forgivensse_n of_o sin_n and_o life_n everlasting_a which_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o in_o christianity_n and_o in_o the_o disstribute_v of_o these_o mystery_n christ_n respect_v not_o these_o state_n and_o condition_n the_o same_o apostle_n write_v 20_o 1._o cor._n 4._o 20_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o word_n and_o yet_o will_v he_o not_o therefore_o that_o sermon_n admonition_n and_o readins_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v remoove_v from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o he_o only_o respect_v that_o high_a power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o all_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v rule_v in_o the_o church_n thus_o the_o father_n speak_v when_o they_o deny_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sign_n do_v remain_v which_o must_v not_o as_o we_o have_v say_v be_v simple_o understand_v 1._o as_o touch_v our_o own_o faith_n and_o cogitation_n the_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v not_o faith_n make_v thing_n present_a gal._n 3._o 1._o but_o that_o be_v mean_v as_o touch_v our_o faith_n and_o cogitation_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o stay_v upon_o they_o hereunto_o thou_o may_v add_v that_o faith_n be_v of_o so_o great_a efficacy_n as_o it_o make_v thing_n to_o be_v present_a not_o forsooth_o real_o or_o substantial_o but_o spiritual_o for_o it_o true_o comprehend_v they_o and_o on_o this_o wise_a do_v the_o apostle_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v even_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o galathian_o and_o so_o be_v abraham_n say_v to_o have_v see_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n 56._o john_n 8._o 56._o and_o after_o this_o manner_n the_o old_a father_n have_v in_o their_o sacrament_n the_o self_n same_o christ_n which_o we_o also_o do_v enjoy_v and_o thus_o thou_o see_v that_o unto_o this_o presence_n be_v not_o require_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o touch_v natural_a constitution_n do_v change_v place_n or_o be_v present_a with_o we_o with_o all_o
decree_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o will_v nothing_o regard_v the_o boldness_n and_o impudency_n of_o corrupt_a man_n which_o teach_v otherwise_o of_o the_o sacrament_n than_o christ_n teach_v paul_n in_o the_o 11._o of_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n testify_v 23._o verse_n 23._o that_o he_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o which_o he_o deliver_v and_o he_o out_o of_o doubt_n rehearse_v both_o kind_n so_o as_o we_o may_v think_v that_o they_o which_o otherwise_o define_v have_v not_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n but_o rather_o of_o his_o adversary_n wherefore_o they_o must_v not_o be_v hear_v 15._o the_o 3._o reason_n gal._n 3._o 15._o and_o unto_o the_o galathian_o paul_n have_v unto_o a_o testament_n although_o it_o be_v man_n the_o same_o be_v confirm_v nothing_o be_v add_v or_o ordain_v beside_o how_o much_o less_o shall_v man_n be_v rash_a in_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o testament_n of_o christ_n man_n which_o be_v frail_a and_o weak_a do_v only_o bequeath_v earthly_a thing_n by_o their_o testament_n but_o christ_n which_o be_v god_n and_o omnipotent_a have_v bequeath_v to_o his_o church_n sacrament_n which_o belong_v unto_o eternal_a life_n wherefore_o none_o ought_v at_o any_o time_n to_o have_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o invert_v his_o testament_n 1._o verse_n 1._o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o four_o chapter_n the_o lord_n command_v israel_n that_o he_o shall_v hear_v his_o law_n reason_n the_o 4._o reason_n &_o special_o he_o mention_v chukim_n which_o word_n signify_v ceremony_n &_o he_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v neither_o add_v nor_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o they_o which_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o beat_v down_o our_o pride_n for_o so_o proud_a be_v we_o that_o we_o will_v always_o have_v our_o own_o devise_n not_o only_o to_o be_v in_o estimation_n but_o also_o to_o be_v prefer_v above_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n reason_n verse_n 3_o 8._o the_o 5._o reason_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n the_o 15._o chapter_n it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v have_v ryband_n of_o blue_a silk_n in_o the_o border_n of_o their_o garment_n that_o in_o see_v of_o they_o they_o may_v call_v to_o remembrance_n the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v not_o do_v that_o which_o be_v please_v to_o their_o own_o heart_n or_o like_v to_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o unto_o the_o roman_n 21._o rom._n 1._o 21._o paul_n grievous_o reproove_v it_o that_o the_o gentile_n be_v infatuate_v with_o their_o own_o vain_a disputation_n &_o that_o they_o will_v not_o worship_n god_n simple_o as_o they_o know_v he_o by_o his_o creature_n reason_n the_o 6_o reason_n whereupon_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v give_v over_o unto_o wicked_a lust_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o this_o maym_v of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n belong_v unto_o this_o kind_n of_o vice_n reason_n the_o 7._o reason_n and_o moreover_o to_o this_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n concern_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o universal_a church_n both_o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o best_a time_n have_v always_o consent_v reason_n the_o 8._o reason_n 4_o also_o the_o father_n have_v great_o fear_v to_o leave_v the_o lord_n order_n in_o this_o sacrament_n there_o be_v extant_a a_o canon_n of_o gelasius_n gelasius_n gelasius_n which_o be_v in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr consecratione_fw-la distinct_a 2._o in_o the_o chapter_n comperimus_fw-la wherein_o certain_a man_n be_v blame_v because_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o lord_n body_n abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o blood_n which_o he_o say_v be_v superstitious_a and_o he_o command_v they_o that_o either_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n or_o else_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o whole_a also_o he_o say_v it_o be_v sacrilege_n that_o they_o shall_v in_o such_o sort_n be_v divide_v this_o do_v they_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v and_o to_o restrain_v it_o to_o mass_a priest_n while_o they_o consecrate_v for_o they_o say_v they_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o receive_v both_o kind_n howbeit_o this_o they_o have_v not_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o bishop_n nay_o rather_o there_o be_v mention_v there_o of_o the_o participant_n and_o of_o they_o which_o be_v to_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o agree_v fit_o unto_o they_o to_o who_o they_o be_v distribute_v moreover_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o decree_n that_o the_o injury_n be_v do_v not_o unto_o the_o oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n but_o unto_o the_o sacrament_n for_o he_o say_v that_o a_o division_n of_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o mystery_n can_v be_v do_v without_o great_a sacrilege_n therefore_o see_v they_o distribute_v the_o communion_n unto_o the_o laity_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o make_v division_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o commit_v sacrilege_n chrysost_n chrysost_n chrysostome_n in_o the_o 18._o homily_n upon_o the_o 2._o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n wherein_o a_o priest_n differ_v not_o from_o a_o lay_n man_n i_o say_v in_o receive_v of_o the_o dreadful_a mystery_n it_o be_v not_o with_o we_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o old_a law_n where_o some_o part_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o priest_n other_o go_v unto_o they_o that_o offer_v but_o unto_o all_o we_o be_v set_v forth_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o selfsame_o cup._n 5_o cyprian_a cyprian_a cyprian_a in_o his_o second_o book_n and_o 3._o epistle_n earnest_o affirm_v that_o in_o this_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n vary_v from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o there_o when_o he_o intreat_v at_o large_a of_o this_o matter_n he_o set_v down_o these_o special_a point_n namely_o that_o christ_n in_o this_o matter_n must_v be_v hear_v further_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o regard_v what_o other_o have_v do_v before_o we_o but_o what_o christ_n do_v before_o all_o moreover_o he_o that_o do_v not_o as_o he_o do_v do_v in_o vain_a worship_n god_n with_o the_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n and_o such_o precept_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o make_v not_o light_n but_o say_v they_o be_v great_a and_o the_o same_o martyr_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o pompeius_n against_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n write_v where_o any_o doubt_n be_v we_o must_v always_o resort_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o apostle_n the_o adversary_n say_v that_o cyprian_n speak_v not_o of_o this_o which_o we_o now_o entreat_v of_o he_o dispute_v against_o the_o heretic_n call_v aquarij_fw-la aquarij_fw-la the_o aquarij_fw-la who_o use_v not_o wine_n unto_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o water_n this_o say_v they_o he_o reproove_v and_o not_o the_o take_v away_o of_o a_o part_n of_o the_o eucharist_n from_o the_o laity_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o i_o say_v that_o these_o man_n sin_n more_o gréevous_o against_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n than_o do_v the_o aquarij_fw-la because_o they_o although_o they_o put_v water_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o wine_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o utter_o remove_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o use_v the_o selfsame_a word_n which_o we_o speak_v in_o deliver_v of_o the_o cup_n only_o they_o do_v change_v the_o element_n but_o these_o man_n take_v away_o from_o the_o people_n both_o the_o whole_a cup_n and_o the_o word_n thereof_o further_o i_o grant_v the_o disputation_n of_o cyprian_a to_o be_v particular_a whereby_o he_o confute_v the_o aquarij_fw-la but_o the_o argument_n and_o reason_n which_o he_o use_v be_v universal_a namely_o that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o must_v not_o fly_v from_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o this_o cause_n also_o we_o argue_v that_o we_o as_o it_o be_v by_o hand_n do_v receive_v the_o same_o from_o he_o to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o take_v away_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o communion_n they_o have_v also_o other_o subtle_a shift_n and_o they_o say_v that_o cyprian_n write_v these_o thing_n only_o of_o they_o that_o offer_v and_o that_o therefore_o the_o place_n serve_v nothing_o unto_o communion_n but_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o these_o so_o witty_a man_n perceive_v not_o that_o they_o in_o time_n past_a and_o special_o in_o the_o time_n of_o cyprian_a have_v no_o oblation_n that_o differ_v from_o the_o communion_n mass_n private_a mass_n there_o be_v no_o place_n among_o they_o for_o private_a mass_n those_o spring_v up_o many_o year_n after_o to_o the_o great_a hurt_n of_o religion_n moreover_o if_o the_o epistle_n be_v read_v from_o the_o beginning_n thou_o shall_v hear_v cyprian_a say_v that_o these_o man_n
this_o word_n missa_fw-la for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v that_o perfect_a thank_n give_v be_v renew_v &_o straightway_o after_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n that_o be_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a without_o the_o bishop_n either_o to_o baptise_v either_o to_o offer_v either_o to_o make_v sacrifice_n or_o to_o end_v the_o feast_n and_o this_o be_v the_o greek_a prayer_n of_o ignatius_n wherein_o as_o appear_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o mass_n leo._n leo._n also_o leo_n be_v cite_v in_o the_o 9_o epistle_n to_o dioscorus_n wherein_o i_o confess_v that_o that_o father_n make_v mention_v of_o mass_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o he_o very_o much_o repugn_v private_a mass_n for_o he_o be_v demand_v when_o the_o church_n be_v not_o so_o great_a as_o it_o may_v contain_v all_o the_o people_n which_o come_v while_o the_o communion_n be_v minister_a mass_n a_o argument_n against_o private_a mass_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o multitude_n which_o tarry_v abroad_o and_o can_v not_o be_v present_a leo_n answer_v when_o that_o part_n of_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v go_v forth_o which_o be_v present_a at_o the_o holy_a service_n it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o they_o which_o succéede_v to_o begin_v again_o the_o holy_a service_n but_o if_o the_o private_a mass_n have_v be_v in_o use_n what_o need_n will_v there_o have_v be_v to_o ask_v leo_n counsel_n for_o that_o matter_n assure_o this_o demand_n be_v a_o token_n sufficient_a the_o mass_n be_v not_o accustom_v to_o be_v do_v but_o once_o 4_o they_o be_v wont_v also_o to_o bring_v john_n cassianus_n which_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o honorius_n cassian_n john_n cassian_n and_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o heretic_n and_o then_o he_o come_v to_o massilia_n and_o be_v a_o monk_n by_o profession_n he_o indeed_o make_v mention_n of_o mass_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n the_o 7._o and_o 8._o chapter_n but_o he_o wre_v the_o signification_n of_o that_o word_n far_o to_o a_o other_o purpose_n than_o to_o the_o holy_a communion_n for_o with_o he_o mass_n be_v a_o perfection_n accomplishment_n and_o discharge_n wherefore_o he_o say_v we_o wait_v for_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o congregation_n that_o be_v till_o the_o assembly_n be_v discharge_v and_o dispatch_v and_o straight_o after_o be_v content_a with_o the_o sleep_n which_o be_v grant_v from_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o watch_n until_o it_o be_v day_n where_o by_o the_o mass_n he_o understand_v the_o time_n of_o watch_n wherein_o the_o watch_n be_v discharge_v then_o very_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o moonke_n to_o sleep_v until_o day_n light_n neither_o be_v we_o to_o pass_v over_o that_o there_o be_v most_o manifest_a mention_v make_v of_o mass_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o proverbe_n of_o solomon_n the_o xi_o jerom._n the_o exposition_n of_o the_o proverb_n false_o ascribe_v to_o jerom._n chapter_n which_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o jerom._n howbeit_o that_o book_n without_o controversy_n be_v none_o of_o jeromes_n for_o gregory_n be_v there_o speak_v of_o which_o live_v long_a time_n after_o augustine_n and_o jerome_n bruno_n amerbachius_n in_o a_o epistle_n which_o he_o put_v before_o his_o book_n say_v he_o see_v in_o a_o old_a copy_n that_o interpretation_n to_o be_v entitle_v unto_o bede_n which_o if_o it_o be_v it_o seem_v no_o marvel_n that_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o mass_n church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o bede_n be_v creep_v in_o many_o abuse_n in_o the_o church_n for_o in_o that_o age_n wherein_o bede_n the_o priest_n live_v many_o abuse_n be_v now_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n but_o i_o therefore_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o this_o because_o in_o that_o place_n that_o suppose_a jerome_n affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o purgatory_n by_o the_o celebration_n of_o mass_n jerome_n be_v not_o so_o accustom_v to_o speak_v 5_o it_o rest_v that_o we_o declare_v name_n from_o whence_o mass_n take_v her_o name_n from_o whence_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n which_o in_o deed_n be_v a_o latin_a name_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v take_v the_o ancient_a father_n who_o so_o shall_v diligent_o mark_v their_o writing_n have_v say_v remiss_a tertullian_n remissa_fw-la &_o remissio_fw-la tertullian_n in_o stead_n of_o remission_n tertullian_n in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o martion_n page_n 249._o we_o have_v speak_v say_v he_o of_o the_o remiss_a of_o sin_n cyprian_a de_n bono_fw-mi patientiae_fw-la cyprian_a cyprian_a he_o that_o be_v to_o give_v the_o remiss_a of_o sin_n in_o the_o fountain_n of_o regeneration_n disdain_v not_o to_o be_v wash_v the_o same_o father_n in_o the_o 14._o epistle_n the_o three_o book_n he_o that_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o the_o remiss_a of_o sin_n therefore_o see_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o remission_n they_o say_v remiss_a they_o seem_v also_o to_o have_v use_v this_o word_n missa_fw-la in_o the_o place_n of_o mission_n and_o so_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n after_o the_o send_n away_o of_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la catechumeni_fw-la catechumeni_fw-la they_o call_v mass_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o tell_v you_o that_o by_o the_o way_n be_v to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v especial_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o not_o by_o writing_n wherefore_o they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v not_o yet_o wash_v with_o the_o fountain_n of_o regeneration_n but_o be_v instruct_v as_o touch_v faith_n by_o tertullian_n they_o be_v call_v audient_n or_o auditor_n and_o by_o augustine_n competent_n for_o before_o they_o shall_v be_v baptise_a at_o easter_n they_o give_v their_o name_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 40._o day_n before_o in_o which_o space_n of_o time_n they_o be_v instruct_v and_o by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o their_o faith_n but_o their_o life_n and_o manner_n be_v thorough_o try_v but_o in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n when_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v be_v recite_v and_o a_o sermon_n make_v the_o deacon_n speak_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n let_v the_o catechumeni_fw-la come_v forth_o gregory_n the_o catechumeni_fw-la &_o those_o which_o will_v not_o communicate_v be_v send_v away_o by_o the_o deacon_n cyril_n gregory_n and_o the_o grecian_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v holy_a thing_n to_o holy_a man_n according_a as_o it_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n and_o also_o out_o of_o cyril_n upon_o john_n the_o 12._o book_n chapter_n the_o 50._o yea_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n as_o himself_o testify_v in_o the_o 2._o book_n chapter_n the_o 23._o of_o his_o dialogue_n it_o be_v say_v if_o any_o man_n communicate_v not_o let_v he_o give_v place_n and_o that_o manner_n may_v have_v seem_v very_o like_a to_o a_o certain_a rite_n of_o the_o ethnic_n for_o in_o a_o certain_a service_n of_o their_o religion_n fostus_n fostus_n as_o festus_n report_v the_o officer_n say_v stand_v forth_o thou_o vanquish_a enemy_n and_o thou_o woman_n or_o virgin_n because_o in_o that_o divine_a service_n it_o be_v forbid_v unto_o these_o kind_n of_o person_n to_o be_v present_a apuleius_n apuleius_n and_o apuleius_n in_o his_o second_o book_n say_v that_o the_o priest_n when_o he_o shall_v begin_v the_o sacrifice_n be_v accustom_v thus_o to_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v there_o unto_o who_o it_o be_v answer_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v honest_a and_o good_a man_n when_o the_o pollute_a and_o unworthy_a person_n be_v go_v forth_o so_o be_v it_o do_v in_o our_o church_n for_o after_o that_o by_o the_o deacon_n be_v utter_v that_o voice_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o runagate_n and_o penitentes_fw-la go_v away_o thence_o of_o these_o order_n dionysius_n make_v mention_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v those_o which_o be_v vex_v with_o ill_a spirit_n perhaps_o they_o be_v person_n excommunicate_v see_v those_o at_o that_o time_n i_o mean_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n be_v deliver_v unto_o satan_n wherefore_o as_o it_o now_o appear_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v the_o latin_a church_n call_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n missa_fw-la missio_fw-la massa_n as_o it_o be_v missio_fw-la as_o it_o be_v missio_fw-la a_o send_v away_o for_o sometime_o ambrose_n also_o use_v this_o phrase_n missas_fw-la facere_fw-la and_o undoubted_o this_o opinion_n i_o better_o allow_v than_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o which_o judge_v that_o the_o name_n be_v derive_v of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n mass_n 6_o but_o now_o that_o we_o have_v entreat_v of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o mass_n mass_n
all_o these_o thing_n be_v finish_v sacrament_n the_o distribution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o come_v to_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n while_o the_o same_o be_v a_o do_v or_o when_o it_o be_v finish_v the_o song_n of_o thanksgiving_n be_v add_v which_o they_o call_v the_o after_o communion_n communion_n after_o communion_n when_o all_o this_o be_v complete_a &_o finish_v end_n a_o prayer_n at_o the_o end_n the_o minister_n add_v a_o comfortable_a prayer_n licence_v the_o people_n to_o depart_v all_o these_o thing_n albeit_o they_o lead_v away_o the_o christian_a people_n from_o that_o first_o simplicity_n of_o have_v the_o lord_n supper_n many_o thing_n be_v add_v as_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o sundry_a man_n yet_o may_v they_o after_o a_o sort_n be_v abide_v and_o not_o just_o be_v accuse_v of_o superstition_n or_o idolatry_n milan_n one_o and_o the_o same_o rite_n be_v not_o in_o all_o church_n alike_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n howbeit_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o all_o church_n nor_o be_v not_o keep_v after_o one_o sort_n for_o as_o yet_o it_o be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n by_o the_o constitution_n of_o ambrose_n nevertheless_o afterward_o the_o roman_a antichristes_n corrupt_v all_o thing_n 8_o but_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v specify_v be_v by_o the_o old_a ordinance_n keep_v i_o may_v easy_o show_v by_o the_o most_o ancient_a writer_n tertullian_n in_o apologetico_fw-la say_v tertullian_n tertullian_n we_o come_v together_o into_o the_o congregation_n and_o assembly_n that_o pray_v unto_o god_n we_o may_v as_o it_o be_v hand_n in_o hand_n forcible_o compass_v he_o about_o with_o prayer_n this_o force_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n we_o also_o pray_v for_o emperor_n for_o their_o minister_n and_o man_n in_o authority_n for_o the_o state_n of_o this_o life_n for_o the_o quietness_n of_o thing_n and_o for_o prolong_v of_o the_o end_n these_o thing_n do_v show_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o collect_v and_o as_o touch_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o add_v we_o come_v together_o to_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n if_o the_o quality_n of_o time_n present_a either_o compel_v we_o to_o forewarn_v or_o to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n doubtless_o by_o the_o holy_a word_n we_o feed_v our_o faith_n we_o advance_v our_o hope_n we_o fasten_v our_o confidence_n we_o nevertheless_o by_o often_o put_v in_o mind_n do_v strengthen_v the_o discipline_n of_o teacher_n there_o also_o have_v we_o exhortation_n chastisement_n and_o divine_a censure_n for_o judgement_n be_v give_v with_o great_a weight_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n whereunto_o these_o also_o must_v be_v add_v which_o the_o same_o author_n elsewhere_o say_v namely_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v receive_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o chief_a prelate_n etc._n etc._n in_o these_o word_n we_o may_v have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o we_o have_v rehearse_v martyr_n justinus_n martyr_n justin_n martyr_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n write_v that_o upon_o the_o sunday_n the_o christian_n come_v together_o but_o of_o other_o feast_n he_o make_v no_o mention_n there_o he_o say_v the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v recite_v unto_o which_o afterward_o the_o chief_a prelate_n add_v his_o own_o exhortation_n that_o say_v he_o be_v do_v we_o rise_v and_o pray_v afterward_o he_o add_v unto_o the_o chief_a prelate_n be_v bring_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o drink_n over_o which_o he_o give_v thanks_n as_o hearty_o as_o he_o can_v to_o who_o answer_n be_v make_v of_o all_o man_n amen_n these_o word_n declare_v two_o thing_n not_o negligent_o to_o be_v pass_v over_o first_o that_o thanks_o be_v not_o slight_o give_v but_o with_o all_o the_o power_n that_o may_v be_v that_o be_v with_o singular_a affection_n further_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o all_o thing_n be_v speak_v with_o a_o audible_a voice_n see_v the_o people_n answer_v amen_o afterward_o say_v he_o the_o eucharist_n be_v distribute_v last_o of_o all_o be_v a_o general_a thanksgiving_n and_o offer_v of_o alm_n dionysius_n dionysius_n 9_o dionysius_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n rehearse_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o selfsame_o thing_n namely_o a_o recital_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o sing_n of_o psalm_n a_o communion_n and_o other_o thing_n which_o will_v be_v now_o overlong_o to_o declare_v but_o which_o seem_v the_o more_o strange_a he_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o offer_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n acts._n this_o dionysius_n be_v not_o areopagita_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o acts._n howbeit_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v the_o same_o areopagita_n who_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o whosoever_o he_o be_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n as_o i_o think_v but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o ancient_a writer_n and_o why_o i_o shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v not_o areopagita_n i_o be_o lead_v by_o these_o reason_n first_o because_o the_o kind_n of_o write_v which_o he_o use_v especial_o of_o divine_a name_n and_o of_o heavenly_a governance_n contain_v rather_o a_o doctrine_n of_o vain_a philosophy_n than_o a_o doctrine_n of_o pure_a christianity_n and_o it_o be_v utterlie_o void_a of_o edify_v moreover_o those_o book_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n void_a of_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v no_o monk_n in_o the_o church_n further_o in_o his_o eccleasiasticall_a hierarchy_n he_o make_v moonke_n to_o be_v as_o a_o certain_a mean_a order_n between_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n whereas_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n that_o kind_n of_o life_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o in_o the_o church_n héerewithall_o the_o elder_a father_n in_o no_o place_n make_v mention_n of_o those_o book_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o those_o be_v none_o of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o martyr_n gregorius_n romanus_n first_o of_o all_o other_o in_o a_o certain_a homily_n of_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o writing_n but_o pass_v over_o he_o come_v we_o to_o augustine_n that_o father_n in_o the_o 59_o augustine_n augustine_n epistle_n unto_o paulinus_n while_o he_o assoyl_v the_o five_o question_n he_o expound_v four_o word_n which_o be_v in_o the_o 1._o epistle_n to_o timothy_n the_o 2._o 1._o verse_n 1._o chapter_n thanksgiving_n a_o place_n of_o timothy_n expound_v supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n thanksgiving_n and_o those_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o he_o affirm_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v supplication_n do_v go_n before_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o make_v to_o be_v prayer_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o very_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n wherein_o after_o a_o sort_n we_o vow_v ourselves_o unto_o christ_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o think_v to_o be_v petition_n and_o request_n by_o which_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n pray_v for_o good_a thing_n for_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v by_o and_o final_o he_o teach_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v general_a thanks_n givinge_n i_o may_v beside_o these_o bring_v many_o other_o monument_n of_o the_o father_n if_o i_o think_v not_o these_o to_o be_v sufficient_a but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n i_o see_v that_o there_o be_v some_o also_o which_o think_v the_o same_o to_o be_v derive_v of_o this_o word_n missio_fw-la sort_n mass_n and_o missio_fw-la interpret_v after_o a_o other_o sort_n because_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v offer_v by_o the_o faithful_a be_v say_v to_o be_v send_v and_o they_o think_v that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n masath_n give_v a_o occasion_n of_o that_o name_n because_o the_o jew_n use_v in_o time_n of_o the_o pentecost_n to_o offer_v gift_n but_o for_o what_o cause_n i_o judge_v that_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n be_v not_o derive_v from_o a_o hebrew_n word_n i_o have_v declare_v before_o and_o this_o i_o now_o add_v if_o the_o mass_n take_v his_o name_n from_o the_o oblation_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o godly_a the_o papist_n shall_v abuse_v that_o name_n who_o have_v there_o no_o respect_n at_o all_o to_o the_o alm_n of_o godly_a man_n but_o only_o to_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o common_o boast_n and_o that_o impudent_o that_o they_o offer_v unto_o the_o father_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o for_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o those_o thing_n i_o suppose_v we_o have_v speak_v enough_o and_o at_o large_a of_o the_o mass_n look_v another_o place_n in_o the_o addition_n at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n of_o sacrifice_n natural_a in_o jud._n
which_o be_v terrify_v through_o behold_v of_o the_o punishment_n so_o as_o they_o may_v desist_v from_o that_o kind_n of_o sin_n which_o they_o see_v be_v so_o severe_o punish_v or_o else_o to_o beware_v that_o they_o fall_v not_o into_o such_o heinous_a offence_n wherefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o deuteronomie_n etc._n ver._n 1._o etc._n etc._n the_o 13._o chapter_n as_o touch_v the_o ston_a of_o a_o idolater_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o israelit_n may_v see_v &_o fear_v third_n to_o the_o third_n augustine_n further_o argue_v that_o after_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o other_o place_n of_o amendment_n &_o repentance_n and_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o danger_n lest_o if_o they_o that_o be_v guilty_a shall_v after_o this_o manner_n be_v suffer_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n without_o repentance_n they_o will_v fall_v into_o those_o punishment_n which_o shall_v never_o have_v end_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o repentance_n be_v not_o deny_v unto_o they_o which_o he_o condemn_v for_o time_n &_o space_n of_o repentance_n be_v give_v they_o &_o there_o be_v appoint_v unto_o they_o pastor_n &_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n to_o admonish_v they_o diligent_o of_o salvation_n &_o to_o drive_v faith_n &_o repentance_n into_o their_o mind_n notwithstanding_o it_o seem_v that_o augustine_n in_o this_o place_n attribute_v over_o much_o unto_o that_o public_a repentance_n as_o though_o the_o guilty_a sort_n if_o they_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n without_o it_o may_v not_o have_v salvation_n but_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o in_o such_o sort_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v there_o speak_v if_o they_o be_v somewhat_o narrow_o consider_v can_v stand_v together_o for_o see_v that_o repentance_n of_o that_o kind_n be_v not_o often_o renew_v lest_o as_o augustine_n himself_o confess_v so_o notable_a a_o remedy_n shall_v through_o much_o frequent_v become_v of_o no_o estimation_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v unto_o they_o which_o after_o that_o repentance_n fall_v again_o into_o the_o self_n same_o and_o more_o gréevous_a crime_n shall_v we_o bid_v they_o to_o despair_v no_o very_o if_o they_o believe_v sincere_o and_o that_o they_o be_v again_o penitent_a no_o doubt_n but_o they_o shall_v again_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o god_n and_o if_o that_o the_o sin_n commit_v after_o the_o same_o public_a repentance_n may_v be_v forgive_v without_o it_o why_o shall_v not_o those_o sin_n also_o be_v forgive_v without_o it_o which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o former_a time_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o those_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v abolish_v in_o our_o age_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o public_a repentance_n they_o have_v place_v auricular_a confession_n which_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o west_n church_n augustine_n purgatory_n overthrow_v by_o a_o reason_n of_o augustine_n further_o those_o word_n of_o augustine_n be_v to_o be_v note_v to_o wit_n that_o after_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o place_n of_o amendment_n or_o repentance_n for_o so_o be_v purgatory_n take_v away_o if_o that_o those_o which_o depart_v from_o hence_o be_v either_o exalt_v unto_o glory_n or_o else_o do_v fall_v into_o punishment_n that_o shall_v never_o have_v end_n 11_o that_o doubtless_o which_o be_v bring_v as_o concern_v the_o imitation_n of_o god_n be_v of_o small_a force_n four_o to_o the_o four_o because_o his_o counsel_n far_o differ_v from_o we_o he_o be_v exempt_v from_o all_o law_n &_o govern_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o own_o free_a will_n as_o it_o please_v he_o howbeit_o we_o live_v under_o law_n and_o must_v do_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v but_o which_o be_v prescribe_v god_n must_v be_v imitate_v of_o we_o but_o yet_o so_o much_o as_o our_o condition_n and_o the_o law_n lay_v upon_o we_o will_v bear_v to_o the_o proof_n that_o he_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 4._o rom._n 2._o 4._o because_o god_n of_o his_o benignity_n lead_v evil_a man_n unto_o repentance_n it_o may_v also_o be_v say_v that_o prince_n do_v lead_v such_o guilty_a one_o to_o repentance_n when_o as_o with_o singular_a benignity_n and_o gentleness_n they_o make_v the_o way_n open_a for_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o come_v unto_o they_o five_o to_o the_o five_o god_n in_o very_a deed_n command_v we_o to_o love_v our_o enemy_n 44._o matt._n 5._o 44._o howbeit_o that_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o we_o do_v it_o so_o much_o as_o the_o law_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n do_v permit_v be_v it_o not_o also_o command_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v account_v as_o ethnic_n and_o publican_n 17._o matt._n 1●_n ver_fw-la 17._o those_o rebellious_a and_o obstinate_a person_n which_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n and_o yet_o though_o we_o do_v this_o we_o love_v they_o well_o enough_o in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o magistrate_n to_o slay_v the_o guilty_a and_o therewith_o to_o keep_v charity_n towards_o they_o it_o be_v say_v also_o a●t_n to_o the_o a●t_n that_o these_o escape_v not_o unpunished_a see_v they_o punish_v themselves_o in_o the_o church_n by_o fast_v weep_a pray_v and_o by_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o good_a work_n some_o punishment_n indeed_o they_o sustain_v yet_o not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o law_n require_v see_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o kill_v themselves_o when_o as_o nevertheless_o by_o justice_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n that_o argument_n derive_v from_o a_o possibility_n and_o easiness_n because_o magistrate_n have_v power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n over_o the_o guilty_a be_v not_o firm_a for_o the_o power_n which_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n have_v their_o sword_n from_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o they_o that_o be_v guilty_a &_o to_o defend_v honest_a &_o good_a man_n and_o not_o that_o they_o shall_v use_v the_o same_o at_o their_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o do_v not_o their_o duty_n if_o they_o let_v go_v the_o guilty_a unpunished_a see_v they_o have_v receive_v authority_n to_o punish_v they_o 8._o to_o the_o 8._o he_o say_v moreover_o you_o also_o that_o be_v magistrate_n have_v need_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n see_v even_o like_o other_o man_n you_o pass_v not_o over_o this_o life_n without_o sin_n wherefore_o yield_v you_o unto_o other_o that_o it_o may_v also_o be_v yield_v unto_o you_o nevertheless_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o give_v not_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o another_o but_o that_o which_o be_v his_o own_o howbeit_o whatsoever_o pain_n and_o punishment_n be_v forgive_v to_o the_o offender_n it_o be_v not_o give_v of_o the_o magistrate_n good_n but_o it_o be_v give_v either_o of_o the_o party_n harm_v or_o else_o of_o the_o public_a discipline_n and_o severity_n of_o the_o law_n which_o thing_n if_o they_o be_v not_o keep_v &_o remain_v safe_a there_o follow_v a_o incredible_a confuse_a order_n 9_o john_n 8._o 11_o to_o the_o 9_o 12_o and_o as_o touch_v that_o which_o be_v bring_v of_o the_o adultress_n who_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n absolve_v it_o serve_v not_o unto_o this_o present_a question_n because_o while_o christ_n live_v upon_o the_o earth_n he_o have_v no_o magistrate_n office_n but_o be_v a_o interpreter_n of_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n and_o he_o minister_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o people_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o his_o part_n to_o condemn_v the_o adulteress_n to_o death_n see_v he_o take_v not_o to_o he_o the_o sword_n upon_o the_o earth_n also_o he_o can_v not_o prosecute_v the_o accusation_n of_o she_o see_v he_o take_v she_o not_o in_o the_o present_a crime_n neither_o can_v he_o prove_v the_o crime_n by_o witness_n but_o as_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o first_o give_v a_o warning_n of_o repentance_n unto_o the_o accuser_n after_o that_o according_a to_o his_o office_n he_o warn_v the_o adulteress_n that_o she_o shall_v sin_v no_o more_o so_o that_o we_o may_v not_o gather_v hereby_o that_o the_o fact_n of_o christ_n either_o diminish_v or_o hinder_v magistrate_n from_o the_o lawful_a punish_v of_o they_o neither_o do_v the_o example_n of_o joseph_n the_o husband_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n any_o thing_n more_o belong_v unto_o this_o matter_n 10._o matt._n 1._o 19_o to_o the_o 10._o for_o he_o also_o be_v no_o magistrate_n but_o he_o will_v not_o bring_v marie_n into_o obloquy_n because_o he_o be_v just_a these_o word_n have_v a_o double_a sense_n mercy_n tsedec_n for_o clemency_n or_o mercy_n first_o tsedec_n sometime_o among_o the_o hebrew_n be_v mercy_n and_o therefore_o some_o think_v that_o joseph_n spare_v marie_n who_o he_o suspect_v of_o adultery_n because_o he_o be_v of_o a_o
howbeit_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o so_o teach_v 29._o exo._n 32._o 29._o moses_n say_v unto_o the_o levite_n which_o with_o he_o have_v kill_v so_o many_o you_o have_v consecrate_v your_o hand_n so_o far_o be_v it_o off_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n 8._o 1._o par._n 22._o 8._o but_o thou_o say_v that_o david_n be_v in_o old_a time_n forbid_v to_o build_v the_o temple_n for_o his_o shed_n of_o blood_n but_o in_o this_o place_n we_o must_v mark_v the_o mystery_n wherein_o solomon_n shadow_v christ_n the_o peaceable_a king_n see_v by_o he_o he_o be_v express_v who_o without_o weapon_n have_v gather_v together_o the_o church_n be_v the_o true_a temple_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o true_a &_o everlasting_a peace_n 40._o blood_n right_o shed_v debar_v not_o from_o the_o holy_a ministry_n num._n 25._o 7_o 1._o king_n 18._o 40._o nevertheless_o blood_n be_v justly_o and_o right_o shed_v debar_v not_o from_o the_o holy_a ministry_n for_o phince_n who_o hold_v the_o high_a priest_n office_n thrust_v through_o two_o most_o unpure_a whoremonger_n elias_n a_o man_n of_o the_o stock_n of_o the_o levite_n slay_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o prophet_n of_o baal_n and_o samuel_n a_o man_n of_o the_o same_o tribe_n do_v himself_o kill_v agag_n the_o king_n and_o yet_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o be_v reject_v from_o their_o office_n neither_o do_v i_o therefore_o speak_v these_o thing_n to_o commend_v the_o promote_a of_o men-killer_n unto_o holy_a order_n but_o this_o only_a i_o oppugn_v that_o every_o slaughter_n and_o every_o mankilling_n make_v not_o a_o man_n so_o irregular_a as_o these_o man_n say_v that_o he_o can_v be_v ordain_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n what_o if_o a_o man_n have_v be_v a_o judge_n or_o magistrate_n or_o in_o just_a war_n have_v fight_v for_o his_o country_n can_v he_o straightway_o therefore_o be_v ordain_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n peradventure_o he_o have_v obtain_v excellent_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o be_v endue_v with_o singular_a learning_n adorn_v with_o a_o pure_a life_n instruct_v with_o dexterity_n of_o government_n and_o with_o godly_a eloquence_n can_v the_o church_n as_o these_o man_n most_o absurd_o think_v use_v his_o gift_n certain_o that_o be_v not_o observe_v in_o ambrose_n he_o be_v servant_n unto_o caesar_n and_o decide_v matter_n in_o the_o law_n be_v praetor_n of_o milan_n and_o yet_o be_v he_o sudden_o take_v perforce_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n i_o know_v that_o paul_n require_v that_o a_o bishop_n be_v no_o striker_n 3_o 1._o tim._n 3._o 3_o yet_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o unjust_a slaughter_n or_o violence_n but_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n here_o do_v all_o thing_n be_v by_o the_o papist_n handle_v superstitious_o 33_o final_o the_o three_o cause_n why_o officer_n of_o punishment_n and_o executioner_n be_v evil_o speak_v of_o be_v this_o because_o very_o many_o of_o they_o live_v wicked_o and_o dishonest_o and_o have_v before_o time_n be_v naughty_a man_n howbeit_o the_o office_n do_v not_o dishonest_a they_o but_o they_o rather_o by_o their_o fault_n pollute_v a_o excellent_a office_n aristotle_n aristotle_n aristotle_n in_o his_o 6._o book_n of_o politics_n the_o last_o chapter_n say_v that_o good_a man_n abhor_v this_o kind_n of_o office_n namely_o of_o punish_v of_o man_n because_o it_o have_v a_o hatred_n annex_v unto_o it_o for_o they_o oftentimes_o incur_v the_o hatred_n of_o man_n howbeit_o in_o my_o judgement_n a_o good_a and_o godly_a man_n ought_v not_o for_o that_o cause_n to_o mislike_v of_o his_o office_n chrysippus_n the_o answer_n of_o chrysippus_n i_o remember_v a_o answer_n of_o chrysippus_n who_o be_v demand_v why_o he_o exercise_v not_o the_o office_n of_o a_o magistrate_n if_o i_o exercise_v it_o not_o right_o say_v he_o i_o shall_v displease_v god_n and_o yet_o if_o i_o do_v it_o right_o i_o shall_v displease_v man_n but_o i_o will_v neither_o of_o both_o unto_o some_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v answer_v very_o prudent_o but_o i_o think_v he_o answer_v foolish_o for_o he_o shall_v rather_o have_v answer_v contrary_a that_o the_o public_a weal_n ought_v to_o be_v govern_v and_o that_o right_o to_o please_v both_o god_n and_o good_a man_n doubtless_o a_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n shall_v have_v no_o respect_n unto_o wicked_a man_n by_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v now_o manifest_o show_v that_o gideon_n in_o that_o he_o by_o himself_o kill_v the_o king_n of_o madian_n commit_v nothing_o that_o be_v unfit_a for_o he_o neither_o that_o he_o command_v his_o son_n to_o do_v a_o dishonest_a act_n of_o sanctuary_n call_v asyla_n 34_o but_o because_o it_o be_v write_v that_o adonias_n catch_v hold_v on_o the_o horn_n of_o the_o altar_n 50._o in_o 1._o king_n 1._o ver_fw-la 50._o and_o the_o very_a like_o also_o be_v read_v of_o joab_n therefore_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o entreat_v somewhat_o of_o sanctuary_n wherein_o be_v grant_v a_o liberty_n to_o they_o which_o fly_v thither_o for_o refuge_n they_o call_v a_o sanctuary_n a_o holy_a thing_n or_o place_n call_v what_o thing_n a_o sanctuary_n be_v and_o whereof_o it_o be_v so_o call_v from_o whence_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o draw_v any_o man_n by_o violence_n if_o we_o give_v credit_n to_o servius_n the_o grammarian_n upon_o the_o 8._o book_n of_o aeneid_n the_o noun_n be_v derive_v from_o α_n a_o particle_n of_o deprive_v and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o draw_v and_o by_o a_o ill_a pronunciation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v change_v into_o λ_n or_o else_o of_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o take_v away_o as_o homer_n use_v it_o in_fw-la these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v draw_v goodly_a armour_n howsoever_o the_o name_n be_v derive_v we_o will_v not_o much_o strive_v but_o yet_o this_o i_o will_v not_o pass_v over_o that_o hereof_o come_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o express_v the_o right_n which_o they_o enjoy_v that_o fly_n unto_o altar_n image_n &_o temple_n whereupon_o be_v vaunt_v that_o say_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v they_o that_o flee_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o theseus_n have_v the_o right_a of_o sanctuary_n certain_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o image_n they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pollux_n say_v that_o the_o common_a crier_n or_o herald_n at_o arm_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v safe_a man_n so_o that_o where_o soever_o they_o be_v they_o shall_v be_v keep_v inviolate_a plutarche_n say_v in_o his_o problem_n of_o the_o tribune_n of_o the_o people_n they_o make_v he_o both_o holy_a and_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v inviolate_a neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o lay_v hand_n upon_o they_o sanctuary_n the_o original_n of_o sanctuary_n 35_o but_o the_o begin_n of_o sanctuary_n they_o affirm_v to_o be_v by_o the_o nephew_n of_o hercules_n for_o when_o he_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o the_o world_n they_o fear_v the_o violence_n and_o disquietness_n of_o they_o who_o their_o grandfather_n have_v afflict_v wherefore_o at_o athens_n they_o build_v the_o temple_n of_o mercy_n and_o they_o cause_v a_o decree_n to_o be_v make_v that_o they_o which_o flee_v thither_o for_o succour_n may_v not_o be_v pull_v away_o from_o thence_o thereof_o do_v statius_n make_v mention_n say_v the_o fame_n be_v that_o the_o nephew_n of_o hercules_n build_v a_o habitation_n etc._n etc._n livius_n write_v that_o romulus_n and_o remus_n after_o rome_n be_v build_v open_v a_o sanctuary_n between_o the_o castle_n and_o the_o capitol_n in_o that_o place_n which_o be_v call_v intermontius_n so_o many_o as_o come_v thither_o though_o they_o be_v wicked_a man_n obtain_v freedom_n from_o punishment_n unto_o what_o god_n that_o place_n be_v consecrate_v it_o be_v doubt_v there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v it_o be_v dedicate_v unto_o veiovis_n but_o dionysius_n halicarnassaeus_n free_o confess_v that_o he_o do_v not_o know_v augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n de_fw-fr concordia_fw-la euangelistarum_fw-la the_o 1._o book_n and_o 12._o chapter_n condemn_v this_o act_n of_o romulus_n and_o remus_n in_o respect_n that_o they_o for_o the_o advauncement_n and_o increase_n of_o the_o city_n which_o they_o have_v build_v shall_v grant_v impunity_n to_o wicked_a man_n and_o those_o arm_v against_o their_o own_o country_n who_o law_n they_o fear_v and_o thereby_o for_o a_o reward_n of_o fly_v away_o obtain_v impunity_n we_o deal_v not_o say_v he_o by_o this_o example_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n wherein_o doubtless_o be_v give_v a_o security_n unto_o sinner_n and_o penitent_a person_n so_o then_o sanctuary_n have_v be_v in_o sundry_a place_n to_o
send_v into_o galley_n that_o they_o may_v neither_o hurt_v themselves_o nor_o other_o and_o that_o they_o may_v labour_v with_o some_o profit_n to_o the_o commonweal_n by_o this_o mean_n may_v the_o inconvenience_n which_o come_v by_o banish_a man_n be_v take_v away_o these_o thing_n undoubted_o be_v not_o set_v down_o of_o we_o by_o reason_n demonstrative_a but_o confirm_v as_o i_o think_v by_o probable_a reason_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o moreover_o i_o think_v good_a to_o add_v that_o if_o any_o through_o fear_n fly_v away_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n the_o city_n be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o it_o can_v not_o let_v they_o but_o yet_o it_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v well_o advise_v if_o afterward_o it_o forbid_v they_o to_o return_v better_o it_o shall_v be_v to_o suffer_v they_o to_o return_v who_o be_v return_v they_o may_v send_v out_o unto_o such_o place_n as_o they_o shall_v think_v to_o be_v due_a unto_o their_o misdéede_n the_o sixteenth_o chapter_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o christian_a man_n to_o go_v to_o law_n here_o now_o the_o place_n put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n to_o see_v whether_o it_o be_v licence_v unto_o a_o christian_a man_n to_o try_v matter_n by_o law_n 6._o in_o 1._o cor._n 6._o of_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o which_o we_o will_v accomplish_v three_o thing_n first_o we_o will_v prove_v by_o firm_a and_o strong_a argument_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a second_o shall_v be_v set_v forth_o the_o form_n and_o way_n wherein_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v and_o final_o whereas_o there_o be_v certain_a place_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o teach_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o certain_a reason_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v bring_v which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o let_v we_o will_v interpret_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o will_v confute_v the_o reason_n object_v 1._o the_o first_o place_n verse_n 1._o as_o touch_v the_o first_o the_o sentence_n of_o paul_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o 1._o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 6._o chapter_n plain_o persuade_v that_o to_o go_v to_o law_n be_v not_o forbid_v he_o reprove_v those_o only_o because_o they_o go_v unto_o infidel_n further_o because_o they_o be_v overcome_v with_o perturbation_n of_o the_o mind_n in_o that_o they_o can_v not_o bear_v injury_n final_o because_o themselves_o do_v injury_n remove_v thou_o those_o fault_n that_o be_v reproove_v and_o what_o will_v remain_v but_o that_o cause_n may_v be_v hear_v between_o faithful_a man_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o wise_a judge_n may_v be_v appoint_v to_o discern_v &_o pronounce_v just_o of_o cause_n cesar_n acts._n 15._o 20_o paul_n appeal_v unto_o cesar_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n appeal_v unto_o caesar_n for_o defence_n of_o his_o own_o life_n he_o will_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o jury_n because_o he_o see_v that_o his_o tribunal_n seat_n be_v already_o corrupt_v by_o the_o head_n bishop_n and_o priest_n he_o choose_v caesar_n to_o be_v his_o judge_n with_o who_o his_o cause_n may_v be_v understand_v wherefore_o before_o the_o apostle_n be_v lay_v two_o unjust_a tribunal_n seat_n and_o both_o of_o infidel_n that_o he_o choose_v unto_o himself_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v least_o discommodity_n every_o godly_a man_n so_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a must_v escape_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o faithless_a and_o ungodly_a even_o as_o we_o at_o this_o day_n will_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o pope_n who_o hold_v all_o for_o excommunicate_v even_o so_o many_o as_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o tyranny_n and_o the_o very_a same_o apostle_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o same_o book_n of_o act_n send_v a_o young_a man_n his_o sister_n son_n unto_o the_o tribune_n 17_o acts._n 23_o 17_o tribune_n paul_n cause_v that_o the_o ●aying_n in_o wait_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v show_v unto_o the_o tribune_n who_o shall_v declare_v the_o conspiracy_n which_o the_o jew_n make_v against_o he_o and_o so_o be_v he_o save_v and_o send_v again_o by_o night_n unto_o caesarea_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o implore_v the_o help_n of_o public_a power_n god_n judgement_n and_o magistrate_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n 2_o furthermore_n god_n do_v not_o institute_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v against_o charity_n but_o judgement_n and_o magistrate_n without_o all_o doubt_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o god_n so_o as_o they_o be_v not_o repugnant_a unto_o charity_n 6._o gen._n 9_o 6._o we_o read_v in_o genesis_n the_o 9_o 9_o exo._n 18._o 19_o deut._n 1._o 9_o in_o exodus_fw-la the_o 18._o and_o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o first_o that_o a_o magistrate_n and_o judgement_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n the_o anabaptist_n cry_v that_o in_o christianisme_n there_o be_v require_v a_o far_o great_a perfection_n than_o in_o the_o old_a law_n and_o therefore_o that_o argument_n must_v not_o be_v seek_v from_o thence_o these_o mad_a man_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o perfection_n endeavour_n to_o confound_v the_o world_n by_o a_o confuse_a order_n of_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o we_o shall_v want_v magistrate_n will_v not_o murder_n robbery_n and_o other_o mischief_n every_o where_o abound_v there_o be_v no_o hope_n that_o any_o man_n may_v let_v offence_n to_o happen_v for_o as_o christ_n say_v they_o must_v of_o necessity_n happen_v what_o do_v these_o man_n mean_v 18●_n matt._n 18●_n will_v they_o have_v they_o punish_v or_o not_o punish_v if_o they_o will_v say_v unpunished_a what_o end_n or_o measure_n will_v there_o then_o be_v of_o calamity_n but_o if_o they_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v punish_v by_o who_o at_o the_o length_n shall_v punishment_n be_v execute_v doubtless_o magistrate_n be_v take_v away_o if_o every_o man_n punish_v and_o revenge_v at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n all_o thing_n will_v be_v fill_v with_o a_o confuse_a order_n and_o while_o they_o fain_o to_o follow_v perfection_n they_o will_v bring_v we_o into_o a_o utter_a confusion_n of_o thing_n 9_o verse_n 19_o verse_n 9_o beside_o this_o in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la and_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n god_n provide_v with_o all_o diligence_n that_o the_o quality_n and_o virtue_n of_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v appoint_v judge_n may_v be_v express_v to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v plain_o perceive_v that_o he_o have_v a_o singular_a care_n of_o judgement_n in_o esaie_n it_o be_v say_v 17._o esa_n 1._o 17._o seek_v you_o judgement_n help_v the_o fatherless_a judge_v the_o widow_n and_o the_o like_a place_n we_o meet_v withal_o every_o where_n in_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o psalm_n it_o be_v show_v that_o god_n have_v so_o great_a a_o care_n of_o judgement_n 1._o psal_n 82._o 1._o as_o he_o himself_o will_v sit_v with_o the_o judge_n wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v god_n stand_v in_o the_o synagogue_n or_o in_o the_o company_n of_o judge_n he_o be_v judge_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o 6._o 2._o par._n 19_o ver_fw-la 6._o and_o in_o paralipomenon_n the_o judge_n be_v admonish_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o business_n of_o man_n which_o they_o execute_v but_o the_o business_n of_o god_n the_o very_a which_o thing_n be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 10._o deut._n 1._o 10._o 3_o but_o least_o these_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o a_o magistrate_n and_o judgement_n be_v assure_v only_o by_o the_o old_a law_n we_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n the_o 13._o chapter_n office_n rom._n 13._o 1._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 13._o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o godly_a man_n to_o bear_v office_n and_o also_o by_o peter_n in_o his_o epistle_n and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o godly_a man_n to_o bear_v office_n the_o example_n of_o joseph_n david_n ezechias_n josias_n daniel_n and_o his_o fellow_n do_v plain_o declare_v and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n paul_n in_o the_o 16._o 23._o verse_n 23._o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n write_v erastus_n the_o chamberlain_n of_o the_o city_n salute_v you_o 1●_n acts._n 13._o 1●_n and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o sergius_n paulus_n the_o proconsul_n be_v convert_v unto_o christ_n he_o renounce_v not_o his_o office_n and_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o a_o magistrate_n to_o judge_v cause_n and_o take_v away_o contention_n by_o punish_v and_o reward_v it_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o definition_n thereof_o office_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o magistrate_n office_n for_o it_o be_v a_o power_n institute_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o safety_n of_o good_a man_n and_o reprehension_n of_o evil_a man_n by_o lay_v of_o punishment_n upon_o the_o one_o sort_n and_o give_v reward_n unto_o
which_o he_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o death_n howbeit_o because_o there_o be_v always_o some_o cockle_n among_o the_o wheat_n of_o the_o lord_n therefore_o be_v there_o need_v of_o a_o magistrate_n but_o if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o be_v thorough_o purge_v to_o what_o end_n belong_v that_o promise_n of_o turn_v spear_n in_o spade_n i_o answer_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o if_o we_o have_v in_o this_o life_n some_o begin_n of_o felicity_n for_o even_o now_o also_o among_o man_n which_o be_v true_a christian_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o sword_n but_o that_o promise_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v in_o all_o respect_n at_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n and_o in_o this_o very_a time_n how_o many_o of_o we_o soever_o do_v worship_n god_n true_o do_v live_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o war_n be_v not_o stir_v up_o by_o us._n and_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o peace_n thereby_o it_o appear_v that_o when_o he_o be_v bear_v the_o temple_n of_o janus_n be_v shut_v up_o at_o rome_n for_o he_o will_v have_v that_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o token_n of_o his_o come_n paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n say_v that_o our_o weapon_n be_v spiritual_a 14._o ephe._n 6._o 13._o to_o the_o 14._o true_a it_o be_v in_o so_o much_o as_o we_o be_v christian_n but_o because_o we_o not_o only_o be_v christian_n but_o also_o man_n therefore_o neither_o paul_n nor_o christ_n will_v pluck_v away_o the_o sword_n from_o the_o magistrate_n our_o wrestle_n be_v not_o against_o flesh_n &_o blood_n 15._o 2._o cor._n 10._o 4_o to_o the_o 15._o that_o say_v must_v be_v understand_v by_o comparison_n as_o must_v also_o many_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o thing_n somewhat_o be_v deny_v not_o in_o all_o respect_n but_o only_o by_o a_o comparison_n paul_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n say_v christ_n send_v not_o i_o to_o baptise_v what_o then_o when_o he_o baptize_v do_v he_o any_o thing_n beside_o his_o vocation_n no_o very_o neither_o be_v this_o his_o meaning_n but_o he_o mean_v that_o he_o be_v chief_o send_v to_o teach_v the_o gospel_n even_o so_o this_o wrestle_n with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v none_o at_o all_o if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o spiritual_a blessing_n 20_o also_o tertullian_n be_v tertullians_n judgement_n touch_v be_v a_o very_a ancient_a writer_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_n militis_fw-la seem_v to_o make_v for_o the_o adversary_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o christian_n to_o make_v war_n and_o this_o distinction_n he_o use_v if_o thou_o have_v already_o take_v a_o soldier_n oath_n when_o thou_o receive_v baptism_n depart_v not_o from_o warfare_n but_o if_o thou_o shall_v then_o be_v free_a bound_v not_o thyself_o this_o distinction_n be_v not_o good_a for_o if_o war_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v evil_a what_o time_n soever_o thou_o give_v thy_o name_n thou_o must_v depart_v for_o a_o unjust_a covenant_n make_v must_v straightway_o be_v break_v so_o soon_o as_o ever_o thou_o understand_v the_o same_o to_o be_v unjust_a howbeit_o tertullian_n intreat_v not_o of_o every_o warfare_n but_o of_o that_o only_a wherein_o soldier_n be_v drive_v to_o idolatry_n to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o god_n to_o eat_v thing_n dedicate_v unto_o idol_n and_o to_o wear_v crown_n unto_o this_o kind_n of_o warrefare_n tertullian_n exhort_v that_o the_o christian_n shall_v not_o come_v but_o and_o if_o so_o be_v they_o be_v find_v in_o those_o at_o the_o time_n of_o baptism_n they_o shall_v remain_v in_o their_o state_n yet_o so_o as_o they_o shall_v do_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o but_o rather_o that_o they_o shall_v offer_v themselves_o unto_o martyrdom_n and_o undoubted_o many_o soldier_n become_v martyr_n for_o that_o cause_n and_o that_o which_o he_o say_v that_o thou_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o vocation_n of_o a_o soldier_n if_o christ_n shall_v find_v thou_o therein_o and_o that_o if_o thou_o be_v free_a thou_o must_v not_o come_v thereunto_o may_v be_v declare_v by_o a_o example_n paul_n when_o he_o say_v if_o a_o man_n have_v a_o wife_n that_o be_v a_o infidel_n which_o he_o marry_v before_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a and_o she_o will_v dwell_v together_o with_o he_o she_o must_v not_o be_v reject_v but_o if_o he_o have_v already_o give_v his_o name_n unto_o christ_n he_o must_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a marry_v with_o a_o infidel_n tertullian_n altogether_o seem_v to_o exclude_v nothing_o else_o than_o voluntary_a and_o mercenary_a warrefare_n for_o otherwise_o to_o say_v that_o a_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o obey_v the_o magistrate_n if_o he_o be_v call_v unto_o war_n be_v very_a madness_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v marvel_v at_o if_o tertullian_n err_v in_o this_o thing_n for_o he_o be_v incline_v to_o the_o montanistes_n and_o judge_v not_o right_o as_o concern_v fly_v away_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n 2._o in_o 2._o king_n 19_o 2._o 21_o and_o see_v the_o question_n concern_v the_o cause_n of_o war_n and_o whether_o war_n may_v justly_o or_o iniustlie_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n some_o will_v make_v war_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o right_n or_o by_o wrong_n &_o othersome_a for_o turn_v of_o the_o same_o away_o will_v receive_v even_o most_o unhonest_a and_o unjust_a condition_n god._n that_o all_o consideration_n of_o war_n must_v be_v refer_v unto_o god._n but_o ezechias_n by_o his_o example_n and_o that_o in_o his_o own_o self_n teach_v that_o all_o this_o deliberation_n must_v be_v revoke_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n forsomuch_o as_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o happen_v unto_o he_o in_o war_n he_o refer_v unto_o esay_n as_o to_o a_o most_o holy_a interpreter_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god._n then_o to_o let_v he_o understand_v that_o the_o chief_a care_n of_o that_o matter_n be_v in_o he_o he_o send_v even_o they_o which_o stand_v face_n to_o face_n both_o saw_n and_o hear_v rabsacke_n that_o if_o esay_n will_v demand_v any_o thing_n else_o they_o may_v declare_v it_o all_o unto_o he_o 4._o look_v in_o 2._o sam_n 2._o verse_n 4._o furthermore_o war_n be_v not_o of_o the_o kind_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v for_o their_o own_o sake_n for_o in_o such_o manner_n of_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o measure_n to_o be_v put_v see_v overmuch_o can_v be_v there_o where_o nothing_o be_v enough_o for_o no_o man_n at_o any_o time_n either_o regard_v virtue_n too_o much_o or_o two_o much_o love_a god_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o other_o thing_n especial_o if_o they_o have_v great_a damage_n join_v with_o they_o ought_v some_o way_n to_o be_v temper_v by_o reason_n but_o war_n be_v a_o cruel_a thing_n and_o as_o cicero_n say_v the_o latin_a word_n bellum_n have_v his_o name_n of_o belluis_fw-la that_o be_v cruel_a beast_n for_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o cruel_a beast_n so_o to_o rage_n with_o themselves_o and_o to_o tear_v one_o a_o other_o neither_o can_v a_o war_n be_v justly_o enough_o make_v unless_o it_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n for_o a_o other_o thing_n and_o that_o other_o thing_n be_v that_o safe_a peace_n may_v be_v keep_v insomuch_o as_o peace_n be_v not_o ordain_v for_o war_n sake_n but_o war_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n for_o peace_n sake_n and_o of_o this_o thing_n we_o may_v have_v a_o similitude_n of_o our_o own_o body_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n for_o who_o will_v so_o live_v as_o he_o shall_v perpetuallie_o wrestle_v against_o disease_n wherefore_o war_n be_v make_v for_o peace_n sake_n not_o that_o we_o shall_v therein_o abuse_v leisure_n and_o give_v ourselves_o to_o lust_n but_o that_o we_o may_v sincere_o and_o quiet_o worship_n god_n and_o by_o this_o reason_n plato_n reproove_v the_o law_n which_o minos_n and_o lycurgus_n make_v because_o they_o provide_v so_o many_o thing_n touch_v warrfare_n as_o though_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o commonweal_n consist_v in_o make_v of_o war_n for_o a_o active_a 1._o in_o 2._o king_n 25._o verse_n 1._o wise_a &_o valiant_a manner_n of_o warfare_n can_v but_o move_v fear_n and_o bring_v great_a loss_n to_o the_o enemy_n which_o thing_n polybius_n show_v the_o cause_n teach_v neither_o in_o deed_n be_v it_o to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o warfare_n import_v not_o much_o see_v only_o in_o the_o same_o we_o see_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o seem_v unpossible_a to_o be_v do_v pass_v what_o a_o right_a manner_n of_o war_a may_v bring_v to_o pass_v be_v easy_o bring_v to_o pass_v and_o again_o those_o thing_n which_o seem_v easy_a to_o be_v do_v can_v be_v perform_v and_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n they_o that_o do_v thing_n
21_o but_o now_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o treat_v wherefore_o tyrant_n be_v so_o stir_v up_o against_o godly_a man_n and_o against_o the_o gospel_n paul_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n say_v he_o woork_v with_o efficacy_n in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n even_o as_o godly_a man_n be_v move_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o which_o place_n it_o be_v manifest_o gather_v that_o wicked_a man_n be_v instrument_n which_o the_o devil_n use_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o fury_n and_o moreover_o unto_o the_o devil_n be_v give_v power_n against_o the_o saint_n although_o the_o same_o be_v repress_v and_o bridle_v within_o certain_a bound_n and_o limit_n according_a as_o unto_o the_o lord_n it_o have_v seem_v profitable_a for_o he_o for_o this_o cause_n do_v the_o devil_n rage_n in_o his_o own_o member_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o hindrance_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o do_v god_n permit_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o excellent_a victory_n of_o martyr_n may_v appear_v and_o that_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o the_o world_n may_v have_v her_o excellent_a man_n so_o then_o thou_o understand_v for_o what_o end_n or_o purpose_n god_n suffer_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v assure_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o the_o devil_n rage_v against_o the_o gospel_n because_o through_o it_o he_o be_v spoil_v by_o christ_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n to_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v 1._o rom._n 16._o 1._o 23_o there_o remain_v a_o doubt_n why_o god_n do_v prosper_v tyrant_n which_o be_v altogether_o cruel_a and_o wicked_a who_o have_v have_v sometime_o such_o prosperous_a success_n as_o their_o kingdom_n have_v be_v advance_v to_o most_o ample_a monarchy_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o romulus_n cyrus_n philip_n and_o alexander_n of_o macedonia_n which_o even_o of_o ethnic_a historiographer_n be_v note_v to_o have_v be_v most_o violent_a and_o unjust_a first_o as_o touch_v these_o monarchy_n increase_v why_o how_o and_o to_o what_o end_n god_n suffer_v tyrant_n to_o increase_v how_o they_o have_v grownne_v this_o shall_v be_v impute_v the_o cause_n that_o in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a conjunction_n between_o cause_n and_o effect_n firm_o appoint_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n which_o can_v easy_o be_v change_v nay_o rather_o it_o seem_v many_o time_n to_o take_v place_n wherefore_o those_o prince_n or_o people_n which_o have_v attain_v and_o keep_v these_o study_n and_o art_n of_o government_n which_o be_v of_o force_n aswell_o to_o increase_v as_o amplify_v dominion_n and_o empire_n have_v obtain_v this_o good_a success_n for_o present_a example_n let_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o roman_n they_o as_o the_o history_n declare_v and_o as_o augustine_n testify_v may_v get_v themselves_o so_o great_a power_n because_o they_o have_v those_o thing_n by_o which_o it_o have_v be_v usual_o obtain_v first_o they_o have_v a_o desire_n of_o praise_n not_o in_o very_a deed_n altogether_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a namely_o such_o as_o thereby_o they_o may_v approve_v themselves_o sound_o and_o just_a judge_n moreover_o they_o be_v liberal_a of_o money_n yea_o and_o add_v if_o you_o will_v that_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o contemner_n of_o the_o same_o and_o desirous_a of_o glory_n which_o glory_n notwithstanding_o they_o ascribe_v to_o their_o country_n in_o general_a which_o they_o so_o love_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o for_o a_o long_a time_n to_o be_v free_a but_o evermore_o to_o be_v the_o lady_n of_o other_o country_n and_o by_o virgil_n be_v set_v forth_o that_o excellent_a property_n of_o the_o roman_n to_o spare_v the_o subject_n and_o to_o vanquish_v the_o proud_a 24_o they_o suffer_v not_o themselves_o to_o be_v weaken_v with_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n neither_o set_v they_o their_o mind_n upon_o heap_v of_o riches_n beside_o this_o there_o be_v a_o patient_a endure_v of_o labour_n and_o also_o a_o discipline_n of_o war_n they_o pould_v not_o their_o subject_n but_o protect_v they_o they_o waste_v not_o their_o money_n upon_o stage_n player_n jester_n dice_v harlot_n or_o haunt_v of_o victual_v house_n they_o obtain_v not_o their_o office_n by_o guile_n by_o deceit_n or_o by_o ill_a practice_n but_o by_o honest_a mean_n whereby_o at_o home_n they_o use_v great_a diligence_n and_o abroad_o a_o just_a government_n they_o give_v counsel_n free_o take_v heed_n lest_o their_o mind_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o lust_n and_o vice_n wherefore_o see_v they_o have_v so_o excellent_a study_n virtue_n and_o faculty_n they_o easy_o obtain_v by_o nature_n to_o bear_v rule_n over_o other_o for_o such_o a_o conjunction_n and_o link_a together_o in_o the_o world_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n as_o of_o such_o cause_n unless_o he_o himself_o let_v it_o those_o thing_n do_v always_o or_o for_o the_o most_o part_n follow_v howbeit_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o in_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v many_o vice_n also_o see_v the_o people_n be_v constrain_v sundry_a time_n to_o avoid_v from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o father_n albeit_o that_o even_o in_o those_o time_n they_o have_v some_o excellent_a active_a and_o valiant_a man_n which_o temper_v and_o correct_v such_o vice_n but_o afterward_o when_o the_o empire_n be_v obtain_v when_o vice_n have_v excéedinglie_o prevail_v vice_n be_v support_v together_o with_o the_o very_a hugeness_n of_o so_o great_a a_o kingdom_n and_o people_n and_o nobility_n so_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o themselves_o abuse_v so_o great_a a_o empire_n yet_o god_n do_v both_o punish_v the_o world_n and_o the_o infinite_a wickedness_n thereof_o and_o the_o church_n be_v wonderful_o increase_v with_o witness_n and_o heaven_n with_o saint_n there_o be_v moreover_o other_o cause_n as_o unto_o we_o unknowen_a so_o most_o just_a for_o the_o which_o god_n suffer_v these_o thing_n to_o happen_v the_o roman_a empire_n at_o the_o length_n give_v peace_n unto_o the_o church_n in_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o persian_n the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v restore_v into_o their_o own_o country_n and_o while_o nabuchadneze_a enjoy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o chaldean_n the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v publish_v and_o spread_v abroad_o among_o the_o gentile_n under_o the_o king_n of_o macedonia_n the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v translate_v out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n into_o the_o greek_a tongue_n while_o ptolomaèus_n do_v bear_v rule_n in_o egypt_n and_o thus_o shall_v thou_o evermore_o find_v that_o god_n very_o well_o know_v how_o to_o use_v a_o evil_a thing_n the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o part._n to_o god_n alone_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o honour_n praise_n glory_n and_o dominion_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n another_z collection_n of_o certain_a divine_a matter_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o m._n d._n peter_n martyr_n the_o title_n whereof_o appear_v in_o the_o page_n follow_v necessary_o add_v to_o this_o volume_n for_o the_o great_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n at_o the_o end_n be_v place_v a_o table_n of_o all_o the_o particular_n and_o the_o author_n life_n at_o large_a translate_v and_o partly_o gather_v by_o the_o say_v anthony_n marten_n meliora_fw-la spero_fw-la philipp_n 1_o verse_n 9_o i_o pray_v that_o your_o love_n may_v abound_v more_o and_o more_o in_o knowledge_n and_o in_o all_o judgement_n that_o you_o may_v discern_v thing_n that_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o see_v and_o allow_v according_a to_o the_o queen_n majesty_n injunction_n 1583._o the_o content_n common_a place_n of_o free_a will_n providence_n predestination_n the_o cause_n of_o sin_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n three_o confession_n touch_v the_o presence_n and_o participation_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n certain_a question_n and_o answer_n diverse_a proposition_n out_o of_o genesis_n exodus_fw-la leviticus_fw-la and_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n a_o disputation_n which_o d._n peter_n martyr_n have_v at_o oxford_n with_o tresham_n chadse_n and_o morgan_n sundry_a sermon_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n a_o place_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o john_n reedifieng_v of_o christ_n church_n the_o profit_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n a_o praise_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n certain_a other_o oration_n diverse_a and_o sundry_a theological_a epistle_n the_o life_n of_o d._n peter_n martyr_n e_o r_z to_o her_o majesty_n when_o i_o have_v now_o by_o the_o special_a goodness_n of_o almighty_a god_n bring_v to_o a_o perfect_a end_n the_o four_o part_n of_o m._n d._n peter_n martyr_n common_a place_n and_o perceive_v that_o in_o
with_o one_o word_n as_o he_o make_v the_o world_n he_o may_v have_v redeem_v we_o but_o he_o will_v not_o to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v understande_v his_o love_n he_o forget_v the_o evil_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o crucify_v he_o that_o be_v he_o pray_v for_o we_o which_o through_o our_o sin_n crucify_v he_o forgive_v they_o for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v 34._o luk._n 23._o 34._o without_o doubt_v this_o be_v a_o unspeakable_a love_n but_o herewithal_o the_o will_n of_o his_o son_n spring_v of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n he_o in_o so_o love_v we_o obey_v his_o father_n now_o may_v we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o father_n love_v we_o for_o he_o so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n 16._o john_n 3._o 16._o this_o be_v to_o be_v draw_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n this_o be_v to_o see_v the_o sun_n not_o in_o the_o east_n but_o in_o the_o west_n when_o it_o shine_v upon_o the_o wale_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n shine_v upon_o us._n he_o that_o in_o behold_v of_o these_o thing_n enter_v into_o the_o bath_n of_o this_o heat_n and_o charity_n do_v afterward_o great_o abhor_v cold_a and_o do_v not_o easy_o abide_v to_o sin_n he_o see_v christ_n to_o have_v die_v for_o he_o and_o the_o father_n to_o have_v deliver_v he_o to_o death_n not_o that_o the_o father_n be_v bitter_a or_o cruel_a he_o delight_v not_o in_o evil_a as_o it_o be_v evil_a he_o deliver_v one_o member_n for_o all_o the_o rest_n further_o he_o so_o deliver_v the_o same_o as_o it_o shall_v not_o perish_v for_o evermore_o but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o excellent_a state_n that_o theruppon_o may_v follow_v a_o pacification_n and_o that_o we_o when_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v sure_a of_o salvation_n shall_v then_o have_v example_n of_o all_o virtue_n here_o there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a society_n between_o christ_n and_o us._n he_o unto_o we_o give_v his_o righteousness_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o sin_n he_o in_o very_a truth_n suffer_v our_o infirmity_n &_o he_o himself_o bear_v our_o grief_n he_o put_v in_o he_o all_o our_o offence_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n have_v i_o strike_v he_o he_o become_v subject_a to_o the_o law_n that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o law_n he_o become_v accurse_v that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n more_o be_v we_o behold_v unto_o he_o than_o unto_o the_o physician_n for_o he_o cure_v the_o sickness_n without_o take_v the_o disease_n upon_o he_o but_o christ_n so_o heal_v we_o as_o he_o take_v our_o evil_n upon_o he_o unless_o we_o shall_v make_v so_o great_a a_o account_n of_o this_o benefit_n that_o the_o same_o be_v perceive_v in_o we_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n we_o shall_v be_v reproove_v as_o guilty_a of_o his_o blood_n and_o death_n as_o have_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n christ_n give_v a_o great_a price_n for_o we_o i_o beseech_v you_o with_o how_o great_a usury_n and_o gain_n will_v he_o require_v the_o same_o again_o at_o our_o hand_n since_o he_o have_v buy_v we_o so_o dear_a let_v we_o cease_v i_o beseech_v you_o to_o be_v vile_a in_o our_o own_o sight_n and_o let_v we_o serve_v sin_n no_o long_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n and_o bitter_a sorrow_n of_o christ_n but_o do_v we_o think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v finish_v no_o very_o he_o even_o at_o this_o day_n suffer_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n in_o his_o member_n and_o in_o his_o church_n he_o be_v there_o forsake_v because_o faith_n fail_v and_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v do_v you_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v find_v faith_n the_o charity_n of_o many_o wax_v cold_a the_o dangerous_a time_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o man_n be_v lover_n of_o themselves_o christ_n in_o some_o of_o his_o member_n that_o remain_v be_v call_v a_o seducer_n a_o heretic_n be_v communicate_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n about_o he_o there_o stand_v dog_n calf_n fat_a bull_n lion_n and_o elephant_n as_o it_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o 27._o psalm_n pope_n cardinal_n 13._o verse_n 13._o false_a bishop_n our_o master_n these_o be_v they_o which_o afflict_v he_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v the_o bone_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v vex_v blood_n be_v shed_v like_o water_n the_o soul_n almost_o in_o no_o place_n be_v heal_v the_o tongue_n of_o christ_n wax_v dry_a in_o a_o manner_n like_o a_o potsharde_n for_o few_o do_v preach_v his_o gospel_n pure_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o teach_v great_a be_v the_o number_n of_o dog_n which_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v bark_v and_o these_o be_v most_o impudent_a and_o unsatiable_a the_o head_n be_v prick_v with_o thorn_n for_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v load_v with_o riches_n &_o such_o kind_n of_o care_n do_v press_v christ_n but_o further_o he_o not_o they_o live_v to_o their_o belly_n and_o to_o their_o glory_n they_o only_o give_v their_o mind_n to_o the_o care_n of_o this_o life_n and_o be_v unmeete_a to_o handle_v divine_a thing_n he_o be_v clothe_v in_o purple_a because_o in_o their_o great_a power_n he_o be_v marvellous_o delude_v a_o reed_n be_v give_v he_o in_o his_o hand_n the_o vanity_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o divine_n subtle_a shift_n of_o sophister_n which_o savour_v more_o of_o aristotle_n than_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o kneel_v they_o perpetual_o invent_v feign_v worshipping_n for_o they_o build_v huge_a temple_n within_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o idol_n sign_n perfume_n wax_v light_n bleat_v and_o such_o like_a so_o that_o the_o altar_n of_o damascus_n be_v translate_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o yéerelie_o obite_n and_o of_o mass_n they_o smite_v christ_n on_o the_o head_n for_o they_o make_v decree_n that_o one_o kind_n do_v suffice_v that_o transubstantiation_n shall_v be_v beléeve_v that_o matrimony_n shall_v be_v pluck_v away_o from_o clergy_n man_n and_o other_o thing_n of_o like_a sort_n they_o crucify_v christ_n among_o thief_n when_o they_o account_v all_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o thief_n they_o torment_v he_o in_o his_o whole_a body_n when_o by_o their_o wicked_a decree_n they_o strayten_v bind_v and_o rend_v in_o sunder_o the_o conscience_n they_o will_v have_v man_n to_o have_v no_o part_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n unless_o he_o will_v confess_v all_o his_o sin_n the_o garment_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n wherein_o he_o be_v clothe_v they_o divide_v into_o many_o sense_n historical_a allegorical_a tropological_a and_o understanding_n and_o high_a and_o of_o subtle_a understanding_n anagogical_a so_o that_o they_o now_o contemn_v the_o literal_a sense_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v deceive_v by_o man_n dream_n and_o through_o the_o liberty_n of_o gloss_v and_o divide_v they_o so_o rend_v in_o sunder_o and_o dismember_v all_o thing_n as_o there_o be_v nothing_o whole_a remain_v they_o cast_v lot_n upon_o christ_n garment_n for_o the_o pope_n answer_n must_v be_v attend_v before_o the_o matter_n be_v define_v a_o determination_n must_v be_v expect_v from_o the_o secrecy_n of_o his_o breast_n neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o decree_v without_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o this_o to_o deal_v by_o lot_n for_o the_o answer_n of_o a_o devilish_a breast_n do_v disagree_v hereof_o it_o come_v that_o in_o the_o school_n and_o in_o the_o university_n nothing_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v entreat_v of_o but_o by_o the_o way_n of_o question_n for_o disputation_n sake_n and_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n but_o not_o definitive_o nor_o determinate_o they_o all_o protest_v that_o they_o will_v say_v nothing_o against_o the_o church_n which_o be_v that_o church_n the_o romish_a church_n which_o romish_a church_n the_o pope_n oh_o good_a christ_n when_o shall_v thy_o people_n be_v deliver_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n oh_o god_n be_v thou_o angry_a for_o ever_o we_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o thy_o pasture_n we_o be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n will_v thou_o have_v thy_o church_n thus_o to_o live_v under_o the_o cross_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n oh_o howsoever_o it_o be_v give_v it_o constancy_n and_o in_o death_n forsake_v it_o not_o for_o the_o which_o also_o god_n exalt_v he_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o triumphant_a chariot_n wherein_o he_o be_v carry_v unto_o the_o capitol_n of_o god_n kingdom_n he_o be_v god_n take_v the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n tyrant_n dare_v never_o lie_v aside_o their_o kingly_a pomp_n and_o principal_a guard_n of_o their_o body_n for_o
life_n behold_v the_o bird_n of_o the_o air_n and_o lilly_n of_o the_o field_n which_o though_o they_o be_v idle_a and_o labour_v not_o in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o forsake_v of_o the_o father_n and_o shall_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v destitute_a of_o thing_n necessary_a to_o their_o live_n 33._o matt._n 6._o 33._o first_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o then_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v minister_v unto_o you_o let_v not_o your_o heavenly_a mind_n my_o dear_a brethren_n be_v trouble_v for_o these_o vile_a and_o base_a good_n all_o these_o thing_n do_v the_o gentile_n seek_v after_o if_o they_o do_v not_o so_o large_o abound_v every_o where_n as_o the_o flesh_n desire_v shall_v the_o church_n therefore_o be_v forsake_v certain_o thus_o have_v not_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n use_v to_o do_v but_o the_o false_a prophet_n which_o always_o prophesy_v for_o meat_n and_o money_n they_o pour_v cold_a thing_n upon_o cold_a they_o corrupt_v divine_a thing_n with_o humane_a the_o least_o point_n they_o say_v be_v matter_n of_o salvation_n this_o one_o thing_n they_o regard_v and_o with_o great_a care_n provide_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v speak_v that_o which_o be_v plausible_a when_o meat_n seem_v in_o man_n reason_n to_o fail_v helias_n be_v feed_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o a_o raven._n wherefore_o give_v over_o this_o care_n let_v we_o be_v move_v with_o compassion_n towards_o the_o church_n on_o every_o side_n trouble_v and_o miserable_o afflict_v i_o speak_v not_o now_o of_o outward_a temple_n which_o be_v make_v of_o wood_n and_o stone_n but_o of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v our_o mother_n the_o spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o for_o the_o which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n give_v his_o life_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n o_o good_a god_n o_o bring_v thou_o to_o pass_v in_o thy_o heavenly_a good_a will_n that_o the_o wall_n of_o jerusalem_n may_v be_v build_v up_o the_o time_n come_v to_o take_v pity_n upon_o she_o o_o god_n the_o time_n be_v come_v she_o be_v tear_v in_o sunder_o and_o scatter_v so_o that_o no_o one_o bone_n cleave_v to_o another_o neither_o be_v one_o sinow_v knit_v with_o another_o true_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o thou_o send_v a_o most_o wise_a physician_n unto_o she_o such_o a_o one_o as_o the_o poet_n feign_v esculapius_n to_o have_v be_v who_o may_v restore_v again_o the_o body_n hew_v in_o piece_n and_o rent_n in_o sunder_o but_o it_o be_v more_o needful_a that_o thou_o thyself_o come_v for_o unless_o the_o lord_n build_v the_o house_n they_o labour_v in_o vain_a which_o build_v it_o stir_v up_o we_o beseech_v thou_o the_o endeavour_n of_o godly_a man_n that_o they_o may_v meet_v with_o all_o inconvenience_n and_o further_o thy_o holy_a temple_n and_o help_v bezeleel_n solomon_n esdras_n nehemias_n and_o such_o like_a which_o in_o these_o dangerous_a day_n endeavour_n with_o all_o their_o might_n to_o build_v this_o do_v i_o desire_v of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v see_v in_o ourselves_o this_o so_o great_a sloth_n and_o idleness_n that_o we_o can_v find_v opportunity_n in_o all_o thing_n except_o it_o be_v to_o the_o build_n of_o god_n house_n time_n to_o eat_v to_o drink_v to_o dine_v to_o sup_v to_o sleep_v to_o marry_v to_o buy_v and_o sell_v and_o final_o to_o all_o manner_n of_o action_n but_o only_o to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n we_o can_v apply_v no_o time_n at_o al._n neither_o be_v our_o heart_n pierce_v be_v freeze_a and_o benumb_a on_o every_o side_n with_o frost_n and_o cold_a nor_o yet_o be_v our_o bowel_n move_v and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n some_o man_n do_v promise_v that_o one_o day_n the_o house_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v erect_v there_o appear_v no_o effect_n of_o man_n promise_n wherefore_o except_o the_o lord_n help_v from_o above_o we_o be_v no_o less_o to_o be_v accuse_v than_o the_o jew_n be_v now_o blame_v by_o the_o prophet_n hagge_n because_o intend_v to_o their_o own_o private_a building_n they_o leave_v the_o holy_a building_n neglect_v but_o now_o how_o great_a the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v in_o this_o kind_n of_o offence_n it_o may_v be_v learn_v by_o the_o second_o proposition_n of_o this_o prophet_n when_o we_o shall_v hear_v the_o cause_n whereby_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v withdraw_v from_o the_o lord_n work_n consider_v your_o own_o way_n in_o your_o heart_n the_o jew_n live_v in_o great_a distress_n of_o thing_n the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v that_o this_o come_v because_o they_o suffer_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n to_o lie_v ruinate_v and_o that_o unless_o they_o will_v endeavour_v themselves_o to_o a_o godly_a building_n thereof_o he_o threaten_v that_o he_o will_v yet_o bring_v most_o gréevous_a plague_n upon_o they_o he_o first_o of_o all_o warn_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v unconstant_a weigh_v you_o diligent_o with_o yourselves_o say_v he_o what_o misfortune_n have_v oftentimes_o happen_v unto_o you_o and_o inquire_v &_o search_v out_o the_o cause_n thereof_o do_v not_o think_v that_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v do_v by_o chance_n for_o since_o that_o this_o life_n be_v maintain_v in_o the_o world_n by_o a_o perpetual_a and_o steadfast_a order_n we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o man_n affair_n be_v by_o god_n commit_v unto_o fortune_n and_o hap_n hazard_v if_o any_o man_n persuade_v himself_o that_o this_o be_v the_o course_n of_o the_o world_n let_v he_o weigh_v with_o himself_o that_o nature_n be_v lead_v by_o a_o guide_n and_o captain_n and_o against_o they_o which_o affirm_v that_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o star_n do_v bear_v a_o sway_n herein_o let_v he_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n which_o use_v the_o power_n of_o the_o star_n and_o motion_n of_o heaven_n at_o his_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n wherefore_o these_o man_n must_v find_v other_o cause_n of_o the_o present_a evil_n the_o harvest_n be_v small_a be_v the_o husband_n man_n in_o fault_n thereof_o no_o very_o they_o sow_v a_o great_a deal_n body_n be_v feeble_a and_o weak_a the_o number_n variety_n and_o naughtiness_n of_o disease_n increase_v do_v this_o come_v because_o little_a meat_n be_v eat_v or_o rather_o do_v we_o not_o eat_v till_o our_o gorge_n be_v full_a man_n go_v perpetuallie_o sad_a heavy_a and_o careful_a perhaps_o they_o never_o cheer_v up_o themselves_o with_o drink_n oh_o they_o drink_v &_o that_o very_o large_o but_o they_o shake_v not_o off_o their_o sadness_n they_o rather_o become_v drink_v and_o be_v bring_v asleep_a than_o put_v off_o their_o sorrow_n and_o care_n they_o seem_v perpetuallie_o to_o be_v a_o cold_a and_o the_o natural_a heat_n be_v daielie_o more_o and_o more_o weaken_a whence_o come_v so_o great_a a_o change_n of_o the_o natural_a heat_n true_o there_o be_v no_o want_n of_o garment_n but_o when_o they_o be_v put_v on_o and_o double_v they_o avail_n not_o artificer_n craft_n man_n all_o they_o that_o be_v needy_a do_v labour_n do_v get_v money_n and_o do_v set_v to_o sale_n what_o a_o mystery_n be_v this_o they_o which_o in_o a_o break_a bag_n do_v lay_v up_o money_n or_o wage_n that_o they_o have_v get_v do_v gain_n much_o indeed_o but_o the_o expense_n be_v chargeable_a the_o money_n be_v not_o pure_a and_o it_o have_v lose_v his_o first_o goodness_n beside_o this_o they_o be_v give_v to_o riot_n to_o gluttony_n to_o die_n and_o to_o harlot_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v worthy_o call_v break_a vessel_n final_o so_o great_a be_v their_o lust_n and_o covetousness_n as_o they_o be_v never_o satisfy_v &_o albeit_o they_o gain_v much_o yet_o as_o though_o they_o have_v get_v nothing_o they_o never_o say_v ho_o and_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o their_o money_n be_v put_v into_o a_o break_a bag_n again_o thou_o must_v consider_v with_o thyself_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n create_v be_v so_o order_v that_o what_o soever_o profit_n or_o utility_n they_o bring_v unto_o man_n all_o that_o come_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o lie_v hide_v within_o they_o so_o as_o if_o thou_o withdraw_v that_o from_o they_o thou_o shall_v not_o enjoy_v they_o you_o look_v for_o much_o but_o behold_v it_o come_v to_o little_a it_o oftentimes_o happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o harvest_n that_o husbandman_n make_v account_n of_o abundance_n of_o fruit_n which_o then_o even_o in_o the_o gather_n together_o seem_v to_o perish_v they_o think_v they_o have_v gather_v much_o into_o the_o barn_n little_o do_v they_o see_v what_o will_v befall_v in_o bake_v and_o brew_v whereof_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o these_o thing_n come_v the_o lord_n answer_v the_o prophet_n i_o even_o i_o i_o say_v do_v blow_n upon_o these_o thing_n the_o weapon_n of_o god_n wherewith_o he_o revenge_v
which_o cause_n basilius_n magnus_n gregory_n the_o divine_a and_o john_n chrysostome_n be_v by_o the_o church_n of_o those_o time_n bring_v to_o take_v bishoppricke_n upon_o they_o because_o they_o be_v more_o desirous_a of_o a_o solitary_a life_n than_o become_v true_a christian_a man_n to_o be_v as_o they_o which_o be_v not_o bear_v to_o themselves_o but_o unto_o other_o man_n and_o to_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o most_o of_o all_o to_o the_o spread_a far_o and_o wide_o of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n we_o all_o hold_v fast_o the_o purpose_n of_o our_o own_o will_n neither_o do_v we_o glad_o rest_v in_o other_o man_n judgement_n and_o advice_n in_o the_o second_o place_n be_v they_o to_o be_v reckon_v which_o for_o this_o cause_n stand_v against_o they_o which_o call_v they_o for_o that_o they_o think_v that_o their_o labour_n shall_v be_v superfluous_a since_o in_o that_o matter_n whereunto_o they_o be_v call_v to_o work_v many_o do_v very_o much_o labour_n if_o say_v they_o there_o be_v need_n of_o labour_n our_o study_n and_o endeavour_n shall_v not_o be_v want_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o those_o art_n be_v contemn_v by_o the_o more_o excellent_a sort_n of_o man_n wherein_o they_o shall_v perceive_v very_o many_o to_o exercise_v themselves_o last_o they_o when_o they_o be_v require_v to_o take_v upon_o they_o some_o excellent_a function_n therefore_o they_o will_v not_o because_o they_o feel_v not_o themselves_o able_a thereunto_o they_o say_v that_o they_o must_v choose_v such_o a_o matter_n as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v and_o that_o great_a regard_n be_v have_v that_o we_o faint_v not_o under_o our_o burden_n be_v it_o never_o so_o honourable_a for_o the_o more_o excellent_a it_o shall_v be_v the_o more_o notable_a also_o shall_v be_v our_o fall_n under_o it_o for_o this_o cause_n in_o very_a deed_n ●_o exod._n 3._o 11._o etc._n etc._n jerem._n 1_o ●_o do_v moses_n withdraw_v himself_o for_o a_o while_n from_o this_o call_n of_o god_n and_o jeremie_n pray_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o consideration_n have_v of_o his_o age_n those_o godly_a man_n do_v consider_v both_o how_o weak_a the_o strength_n of_o man_n be_v and_o of_o how_o great_a charge_n be_v the_o service_n set_v before_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o do_v not_o straightways_o obey_v when_o god_n command_v these_o thing_n my_o brethren_n be_v not_o recite_v of_o i_o at_o this_o present_a without_o great_a cause_n for_o whereas_o i_o have_v without_o deny_v avoid_v delay_v or_o any_o stay_n at_o all_o take_v upon_o i_o this_o weighty_a place_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n i_o will_v not_o be_v think_v that_o i_o have_v do_v this_o bold_o or_o unaduised_o i_o may_v in_o very_a deed_n have_v easy_o be_v call_v from_o so_o holy_a a_o ministry_n as_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v account_v if_o any_o of_o those_o reason_n which_o you_o have_v now_o hear_v can_v have_v draw_v my_o mind_n from_o it_o but_o because_o none_o of_o they_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n take_v any_o place_n in_o i_o therefore_o you_o see_v i_o to_o have_v come_v hither_o with_o so_o ready_a glad_a joyful_a and_o willing_a a_o mind_n which_o that_o i_o may_v persuade_v you_o by_o a_o profitable_a and_o very_a lively_a argument_n i_o will_v examine_v the_o cause_n now_o allege_v by_o i_o after_o the_o same_o order_n that_o i_o begin_v and_o i_o will_v not_o only_o show_v that_o no_o cause_n can_v just_o terrify_v i_o from_o my_o purpose_n but_o that_o notwithstanding_o every_o one_o of_o those_o cause_n my_o will_n be_v marvelous_o inflame_v héereunto_o but_o harken_v i_o beseech_v you_o that_o i_o may_v no_o less_o faithful_o than_o i_o have_v promise_v perform_v those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v as_o touch_v that_o which_o be_v allege_v first_o whereby_o man_n shall_v be_v terrify_v from_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o function_n whereunto_o they_o be_v call_v be_v this_o namely_o if_o that_o which_o be_v command_v be_v unwoonted_a and_o unlooked_a for_o but_o to_o i_o can_v the_o exercise_n of_o handle_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o this_o age_n be_v new_a unaccustomed_a and_o unlooked_v for_o for_o even_o from_o my_o youth_n when_o i_o yet_o live_v in_o italy_n divinity_n martyr_n timely_a enter_v into_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n this_o one_o thing_n i_o mind_v to_o follow_v above_o all_o art_n and_o ordinance_n of_o man_n even_o chief_o to_o learn_v and_o teach_v the_o holy_a scripture_n neither_o have_v i_o other_o success_n than_o i_o purpose_v for_o even_o i_o myself_o in_o very_a deed_n as_o the_o mist_n darkness_n obscureness_n and_o night_n of_o popery_n deceive_v many_o err_v for_o a_o time_n but_o yet_o do_v i_o not_o cease_v in_o that_o blind_a dungeon_n as_o the_o time_n will_v then_o suffer_v both_o to_o learn_v and_o teach_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o afterward_o when_o the_o heavenly_a father_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n have_v compassion_n upon_o i_o i_o begin_v to_o see_v through_o a_o cloud_n and_o as_o tree_n walk_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n neither_o can_v i_o keep_v silent_a that_o which_o as_o yet_o i_o understand_v but_o after_o a_o gross_a manner_n i_o communicate_v it_o unto_o other_o and_o the_o light_n be_v increase_v &_o the_o measure_n and_o mean_n be_v increase_v i_o teach_v more_o open_o and_o the_o matter_n be_v bring_v to_o such_o a_o pass_n as_o i_o may_v not_o now_o live_v in_o italy_n without_o extreme_a danger_n wherefore_o dear_a brethren_n i_o go_v into_o germany_n that_o from_o whence_o i_o have_v by_o letter_n taste_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o the_o reform_a truth_n i_o may_v there_o receive_v abundantlie_o a_o more_o fruitful_a and_o perfect_a doctrine_n i_o desire_v also_o in_o person_n to_o behold_v certain_a restore_v church_n lest_o i_o shall_v imagine_v of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o the_o commonweal_n of_o plato_n which_o may_v indeed_o be_v understand_v but_o have_v his_o be_v in_o no_o place_n which_o then_o indeed_o i_o earnest_o seek_v first_o at_o tigure_n to_o tigure_v i_o say_v i_o begin_v to_o take_v my_o way_n god_n not_o without_o most_o happy_a success_n direct_v my_o journey_n which_o i_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n for_o when_o i_o be_v come_v hither_o i_o perceive_v that_o godly_a and_o sincere_a divinity_n be_v here_o teach_v and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v reform_v with_o pure_a and_o apostolical_a ordinance_n wherefore_o if_o then_o mean_n have_v be_v offer_v whereby_o i_o may_v have_v defend_v my_o banishment_n i_o have_v most_o willing_o receive_v the_o same_o and_o not_o a_o little_a do_v this_o bountiful_a courtesy_n increase_v this_o my_o mind_n and_o desire_v now_o stir_v up_o in_o i_o for_o those_o two_o day_n wherein_o i_o tarry_v here_o with_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o i_o i_o be_v so_o delight_v with_o the_o godly_a learned_a and_o sweet_a communication_n which_o i_o have_v with_o doctor_n bullinger_n bibliander_n gualther_n and_o pelican_n of_o happy_a memory_n and_o of_o other_o who_o i_o can_v now_o rehearse_v by_o name_n that_o i_o think_v they_o most_o happy_a which_o may_v live_v with_o such_o man_n and_o i_o reioyse_v with_o myself_o for_o my_o present_a banishment_n by_o mean_n whereof_o i_o be_v bring_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o that_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n and_o to_o the_o knowledge_n and_o speech_n of_o such_o excellent_a man_n that_o believe_v i_o i_o can_v never_o afterward_o forget_v this_o church_n those_o two_o day_n and_o that_o entertainment_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o i_o be_v take_v from_o hence_o against_o my_o will_n and_o when_o at_o that_o time_n there_o happen_v no_o occasion_n of_o tarry_v it_o behoove_v i_o to_o make_v a_o other_o determination_n although_o not_o more_o acceptable_a yet_o more_o necessary_a afterward_o i_o be_v call_v to_o strasbrough_n where_o after_o the_o death_n of_o that_o worthy_a capitol_n strasborough_n bucer_n at_o strasborough_n i_o succéede_v in_o the_o divinity_n lecture_n &_o receive_v no_o small_a courtesy_n of_o the_o senate_n of_o that_o most_o noble_a city_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n &_o especial_o of_o bucer_n a_o man_n of_o godly_a memory_n and_o of_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o school_n which_o courtesy_n unless_o i_o will_v be_v most_o ungrateful_a i_o ought_v hearty_o to_o commend_v and_o faithful_o to_o confess_v england_n mercy_n send_v 〈◊〉_d england_n six_o year_n therefore_o in_o a_o manner_n continual_o i_o live_v there_o interpret_n the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o long_o have_v i_o tarry_v have_v i_o not_o be_v send_v both_o by_o the_o magistrate_n &_o by_o the_o church_n into_o england_n whither_o i_o be_v call_v aswell_o by_o the_o king_n as_o by_o the_o archbishop_n primate_n of_o that_o
take_v of_o you_o than_o i_o have_v write_v they_o for_o that_o which_o i_o speak_v with_o a_o sincere_a faith_n i_o will_v also_o to_o be_v take_v in_o good_a part_n i_o know_v how_o tender_a be_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n howbeit_o as_o touch_v you_o i_o have_v a_o very_a great_a hope_n since_o you_o be_v of_o christ_n not_o of_o this_o world_n wherefore_o set_v aside_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o ethnic_n i_o will_v lead_v you_o a_o while_n to_o the_o singular_a and_o notable_a example_n of_o david_n for_o he_o while_o he_o live_v be_v both_o famous_a in_o princely_a power_n and_o great_o renown_v in_o excellent_a holiness_n god_n the_o example_n of_o david_n in_o restore_v the_o religion_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o i_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v you_o become_v such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o be_v i_o desire_v nothing_o contrary_a either_o to_o your_o dignity_n or_o godliness_n he_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v appoint_v to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o israel_n before_o he_o can_v attain_v to_o the_o same_o suffer_v even_o as_o you_o have_v do_v most_o gréevous_a trouble_n but_o when_o he_o be_v come_v thereunto_o he_o think_v nothing_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v before_o he_o have_v restore_v religion_n now_o ruin_v whereof_o the_o principal_a point_n and_o sum_n in_o that_o age_n herein_o consist_v that_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenaunt_n be_v the_o principal_a token_n of_o god_n may_v be_v reduce_v unto_o the_o former_a estimation_n which_o by_o the_o negligence_n of_o king_n saul_n lie_v without_o regard_n have_v thereunto_o in_o the_o private_a house_n of_o one_o aminadab_n in_o gibea_n 6._o 1._o sam._n 2._o 6._o this_o the_o godly_a king_n can_v not_o suffer_v wherefore_o he_o determine_v to_o convey_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o king_n court._n howbeit_o in_o that_o wherein_o he_o endeavour_v to_o deal_v godly_a the_o priest_n do_v not_o right_o exercise_v their_o office_n wherefore_o the_o godly_a king_n in_o a_o manner_n despair_v of_o that_o he_o look_v for_o howbeit_o he_o within_o a_o while_n after_o gather_v his_o wit_n together_o both_o drive_v they_o to_o do_v their_o office_n right_o and_o he_o himself_o also_o with_o incredible_a joy_n and_o with_o singular_a gladness_n of_o the_o people_n most_o happy_o bring_v home_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o mighty_a god_n into_o zion_n even_o this_o same_o work_n most_o noble_a queen_n elizabeth_n be_v together_o with_o your_o kingdom_n commit_v to_o your_o trust_n for_o it_o behoove_v that_o you_o restore_v again_o into_o his_o place_n the_o holy_a gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o through_o injury_n of_o the_o time_n and_o importunity_n of_o the_o adversary_n have_v lie_v some_o year_n pass_v neglect_v i_o will_v not_o say_v tread_v under_o foot_n this_o if_o you_o shall_v perform_v all_o thing_n shall_v happen_v prosper_v ouslie_o unto_o you_o no_o less_o than_o they_o do_v unto_o most_o godly_a king_n david_n for_o if_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o every_o christian_a man_n that_o he_o shall_v first_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n than_o other_o thing_n shall_v easy_o be_v supply_v 33._o matt._n 6._o 33._o shall_v we_o not_o think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v command_v unto_o king_n certes_o if_o it_o be_v command_v all_o man_n to_o worship_n god_n most_o sincere_o king_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o that_o precept_n nay_o rather_o the_o great_a estate_n they_o bear_v among_o man_n the_o more_o be_v they_o bind_v to_o that_o law_n of_o god_n howbeit_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o admonish_v your_o majesty_n in_o many_o word_n who_o the_o heavenly_a father_n have_v inspire_v with_o a_o principal_a spirit_n as_o he_o do_v david_n pastor_n a_o danger_n in_o the_o church_n as_o concern_v pastor_n but_o this_o danger_n be_v like_a to_o happen_v namely_o lest_o those_o which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v call_v priest_n shall_v err_v in_o the_o work_n of_o restore_v the_o church_n even_o as_o it_o come_v then_o to_o pass_v not_o without_o great_a trouble_n when_o the_o lord_n smite_v oza_n 7._o 2._o sam._n 6._o 7._o for_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v carry_v in_o a_o cart_n but_o bear_v upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o the_o priest_n even_o as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v prescribe_v wherefore_o we_o must_v now_o take_v special_a care_n and_o heed_n lest_o such_o thing_n do_v happen_v that_o while_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n either_o be_v deceive_v by_o error_n or_o indevor_n to_o shun_v labour_n and_o just_a discipline_n they_o go_v about_o to_o bear_v the_o ark_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o example_n of_o a_o more_o pure_a life_n but_o upon_o the_o cart_n of_o unprofitable_a ceremony_n and_o foul_a labour_n of_o hire_a servant_n this_o if_o you_o shall_v consider_v most_o noble_a queen_n that_o it_o come_v so_o to_o pass_v you_o shall_v not_o as_o david_n be_v be_v move_v more_o than_o be_v requisite_a neither_o will_v you_o intermit_v the_o work_n begin_v as_o he_o for_o a_o time_n do_v but_o will_v do_v the_o same_o out_o of_o hand_n as_o we_o read_v that_o he_o a_o while_n after_o do_v afterward_o 1._o par._n 23._o &_o afterward_o he_o correct_v the_o error_n of_o the_o priest_n he_o dispose_v the_o levite_n into_o certain_a order_n &_o command_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o strict_a rule_n of_o the_o law_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o all_o godly_a man_n most_o bless_a queen_n do_v expect_v of_o you_o hitherunto_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v very_o great_o to_o be_v lament_v agree_v together_o and_o withstand_v god_n and_o his_o anointed_n 2._o psal_n 2._o 2._o from_o who_o society_n even_o as_o your_o majesty_n be_v a_o stranger_n so_o must_v you_o hear_v what_o be_v say_v unto_o you_o and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o king_n 10._o ib._n ver_fw-la 10._o understand_v now_o o_o you_o king_n be_v learned_a o_o you_o that_o judge_v the_o earth_n serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n but_o you_o will_v say_v show_v i_o what_o religious_a worship_n that_o shall_v be_v which_o be_v require_v towards_o god_n very_o no_o other_o but_o with_o godly_a severity_n to_o prohibit_v and_o correct_v especial_o in_o worship_v of_o he_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v commit_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o king_n serve_v god_n two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n by_o faithful_a beléeve_v and_o live_v then_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o king_n which_o govern_v the_o people_n by_o establish_v in_o force_n convenient_a such_o law_n as_o command_v just_a and_o godly_a thing_n and_o forbid_v the_o contrary_n this_o do_v ezechias_n when_o he_o destroy_v the_o grove_n idol_n temple_n king_n 2._o king_n 18._o 4._o the_o example_n of_o godly_a king_n and_o those_o high_a place_n which_o be_v erect_v against_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n although_o that_o sometime_o they_o do_v not_o sacrifice_v amiss_o in_o they_o the_o self-same_a thing_n do_v godly_a josias_n bring_v to_o pass_v with_o great_a diligence_n 4._o 2._o king_n 23._o verse_n 4._o zeal_n and_o incredible_a godliness_n 7._o jonas_n 3._o 7._o this_o do_v the_o king_n of_o the_o ninivites_fw-la not_o foreslowe_v to_o do_v which_o compel_v the_o whole_a city_n to_o pacify_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n this_o do_v darius_n perform_v unto_o the_o true_a god_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o daniel_n 26._o dan._n 6._o 26._o this_o also_o do_v nabucadnezer_n fulfil_v when_o by_o a_o most_o severe_a law_n he_o bridle_v the_o tongue_n of_o they_o that_o dwell_v in_o his_o kingdom_n from_o blaspheme_v the_o live_a god_n 95._o dan._n 3._o 95._o i_o may_v easy_o show_v of_o very_a many_o king_n and_o mighty_a emperor_n after_o christ_n that_o do_v the_o same_o i_o mean_v constantine_n theodosius_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o many_o other_o but_o because_o i_o will_v not_o go_v either_o from_o the_o memory_n of_o our_o time_n or_o from_o your_o own_o most_o honourable_a progeny_n this_o do_v your_o most_o noble_a brother_n edward_n king_n of_o england_n endeavour_n to_o his_o power_n and_o more_o than_o his_o age_n will_v give_v leave_n who_o reign_n our_o sin_n and_o intolerable_a ingratitude_n suffer_v not_o any_o long_a to_o be_v continue_v only_a god_n will_v show_v unto_o the_o world_n the_o singular_a virtue_n and_o pass_a godliness_n of_o that_o imp_n secondlie_o that_o he_o may_v somewhat_o chasten_v we_o according_a as_o our_o ill_a desert_n require_v he_o the_o soon_o call_v he_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n unto_o he_o howbeit_o the_o case_n go_v well_o because_o he_o after_o a_o certain_a fatherly_a correction_n use_v have_v take_v pity_n upon_o we_o see_v he_o have_v at_o this_o time_n place_v you_o
use_v it_o be_v only_o know_v by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o sometime_o move_v to_o one_o kind_n of_o confession_n and_o sometime_o to_o a_o other_o according_a to_o that_o which_o both_o the_o place_n &_o time_n &_o condition_n of_o person_n &_o strength_n require_v moreover_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o paul_n in_o this_o place_n speak_v particular_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n for_o first_o he_o say_v 6._o 2._o tim._n 1._o 6._o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n whereunto_o he_o straight_o way_n join_v those_o word_n which_o be_v now_o object_v for_o god_n have_v not_o give_v unto_o we_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n etc._n etc._n by_o these_o word_n doubtless_o he_o will_v teach_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o office_n of_o minister_n which_o be_v weighty_a full_a of_o labour_n &_o danger_n strike_v a_o great_a terror_n into_o carnal_a affection_n shall_v be_v valiant_o undertake_v for_o the_o spirit_n that_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o they_o which_o be_v now_o promote_v to_o the_o ministry_n be_v proper_o the_o spirit_n of_o fortitude_n of_o love_n and_o of_o temperance_n for_o erudition_n good_a manner_n and_o other_o good_a quality_n be_v require_v in_o a_o man_n before_o he_o be_v choose_v into_o the_o ministry_n see_v he_o that_o be_v destitute_a of_o such_o kind_n of_o quality_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v choose_v but_o that_o spirit_n by_o who_o guide_n every_o function_n be_v do_v with_o a_o courageous_a mind_n with_o much_o love_n and_o with_o singular_a modesty_n to_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n the_o christian_a people_n desire_n of_o god_n and_o do_v then_o obtain_v it_o when_o the_o minister_n be_v already_o choose_v and_o invest_v into_o the_o ministry_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n 12._o how_o far_o forth_o fly_v may_v be_v lawful_a unto_o pastor_n joh._n 10._o 12._o therefore_o if_o we_o speak_v as_o paul_n do_v particular_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o man_n the_o answer_n may_v be_v easy_o make_v for_o i_o may_v say_v as_o christ_n also_o say_v that_o they_o be_v heirlinge_n not_o pastor_n which_o forsake_v their_o flock_n unless_o they_o have_v many_o pastor_n let_v only_o one_o of_o they_o hazard_v himself_o since_o in_o this_o case_n when_o the_o church_n may_v be_v without_o he_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o fly_v away_o for_o so_o i_o think_v paul_n flee_v away_o out_o of_o the_o city_n of_o damascus_n 30._o acts._n 9_o 30._o not_o leave_v that_o church_n without_o pastor_n but_o yet_o this_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o he_o perhaps_o be_v not_o such_o a_o notable_a man_n in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n seem_v to_o depend_v chéefelie_o of_o he_o and_o that_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o after_o his_o departure_n all_o thing_n will_v be_v full_a of_o trouble_n for_o if_o thing_n be_v in_o that_o state_n he_o must_v tarry_v still_o and_o must_v as_o become_v a_o good_a pastor_n lie_v down_o his_o life_n for_o his_o sheep_n beside_o further_a augustine_n teach_v in_o his_o 180._o epistle_n unto_o honoratus_n that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v furnish_v with_o many_o minister_n it_o stand_v with_o the_o profit_n thereof_o that_o when_o persecution_n be_v at_o hand_n a_o part_n of_o they_o shall_v hide_v themselves_o lest_o they_o shall_v altogether_o in_o one_o moment_n be_v take_v away_o for_o if_o a_o first_o sort_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o they_o which_o lie_v hide_v may_v succeed_v in_o the_o place_n of_o other_o and_o for_o this_o very_a cause_n have_v i_o think_v that_o abdias_n the_o prophet_n in_o the_o time_n of_o achab_n and_o jezabell_n 13._o 1._o king_n 18_o 13._o hide_v many_o prophet_n in_o den_n that_o if_o those_o first_o have_v be_v slay_v there_o shall_v yet_o have_v remain_v other_o prophet_n by_o who_o help_n the_o people_n in_o due_a time_n may_v have_v be_v reléeve_v this_o place_n therefore_o of_o paul_n we_o have_v expound_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o that_o fly_v away_o as_o it_o be_v describe_v by_o we_o be_v a_o work_n of_o fortitude_n secondlie_o that_o the_o author_n speak_v particular_o of_o the_o pastor_n and_o minister_n it_o be_v object_v moreover_o that_o they_o which_o fly_v away_o they_o fly_v for_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n which_o thing_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n for_o we_o be_v command_v not_o to_o be_v any_o thing_n afraid_a of_o they_o which_o kill_v the_o body_n unto_o who_o i_o answer_v as_o before_o it_o be_v expound_v 28_o mat._n 10._o 28_o that_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n keep_v itself_o within_o just_a bond_n be_v not_o of_o itself_o faulty_a especial_o if_o he_o that_o fear_v do_v not_o only_o fear_v death_n but_o have_v most_o respect_n unto_o this_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n lest_o when_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o magistrate_n nor_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o spirit_n to_o tarry_v and_o to_o endure_v torment_n or_o death_n itself_o have_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n a_o occasion_n offer_v of_o depart_v he_o shall_v deny_v the_o truth_n and_o shall_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o faith_n once_o receive_v which_o otherwise_o may_v happen_v unto_o he_o he_o which_o after_o this_o manner_n fear_v death_n and_o direct_v this_o fear_n of_o he_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o the_o divine_a law_n in_o all_o thing_n command_v such_o a_o one_o do_v not_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o god_n nor_o yet_o do_v sin_n if_o a_o man_n say_v our_o adversary_n be_v weak_a in_o faith_n he_o must_v not_o straight_a way_n seek_v for_o remedy_n by_o fly_v away_o but_o must_v run_v unto_o prayer_n even_o as_o christ_n teach_v and_o must_v pray_v that_o he_o yield_v not_o unto_o temptation_n touch_v this_o we_o have_v a_o commandment_n which_o if_o we_o will_v follow_v we_o shall_v be_v hear_v but_o as_o concern_v fly_v away_o we_o be_v not_o instruct_v by_o any_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o which_o object_n these_o thing_n do_v evermore_o suppose_v a_o repeal_n of_o that_o commandment_n which_o be_v extant_a in_o matthew_n but_o we_o show_v 13._o mat._n 10._o 13._o that_o they_o do_v err_v neither_o do_v themselves_o prove_v that_o which_o they_o say_v by_o any_o effectual_a reason_n but_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a without_o reason_n to_o allege_v what_o a_o man_n will_v i_o also_o may_v say_v that_o the_o precept_n of_o not_o fear_v they_o which_o kill_v the_o body_n be_v abrogate_a because_o it_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o first_o embacie_n and_o write_v in_o the_o self_n same_o 10._o chap._n of_o matthew_n wherefore_o both_o the_o precept_n remain_v firm_a but_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o they_o be_v not_o wronglie_o understand_v so_o then_o he_o that_o fly_v away_o according_a to_o the_o rule_v prescribe_v be_v favour_v not_o only_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o of_o many_o of_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o of_o the_o martyr_n yea_o and_o of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n who_o though_o he_o flee_v not_o away_o through_o fear_n of_o sin_v yet_o nevertheless_o he_o flee_v that_o by_o his_o example_n he_o may_v teach_v what_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o so_o long_o as_o our_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v which_o must_v then_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v come_v when_o the_o spirit_n do_v inwardlie_o stir_v we_o up_o and_o provoke_v we_o to_o tarry_v or_o that_o necessity_n otherwise_o require_v that_o be_v to_o wit_n if_o we_o be_v already_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n if_o we_o be_v tie_v by_o any_o vocation_n that_o we_o may_v not_o depart_v even_o as_o a_o little_a before_o it_o be_v say_v of_o pastor_n as_o concern_v prayer_n those_o we_o do_v not_o reject_v but_o we_o very_o much_o allow_v and_o therefore_o we_o warn_v before_o that_o they_o which_o intend_v to_o escape_v through_o fly_v away_o must_v commend_v themselves_o by_o most_o earnest_a prayer_n unto_o god_n that_o they_o in_o no_o wise_a may_v err_v but_o if_o pour_v out_o their_o prayer_n the_o spirit_n do_v still_o solicit_v they_o to_o fly_v and_o do_v not_o minister_v more_o strength_n and_o boldness_n they_o ought_v to_o use_v that_o remedy_n which_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n do_v offer_v except_o they_o will_v tempt_v god_n and_o so_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o read_v that_o david_n himself_o flee_v from_o the_o face_n of_o his_o son_n absalon_n 16._o the_o flight_n of_o david_n 2._o sa._n 15._o 16._o in_o which_o flight_n he_o sing_v that_o excellent_a psalm_n which_o by_o order_n be_v the_o third_o in_o the_o book_n of_o psalm_n wherefore_o he_o flee_v and_o give_v place_n to_o the_o fury_n of_o
in_o the_o power_n of_o a_o other_o man_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o further_a way_n open_a of_o fly_v honest_o away_o but_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o law_n prescribe_v for_o if_o god_n shall_v bring_v thou_o out_o of_o prison_n as_o in_o old_a time_n he_o do_v peter_n by_o his_o angel_n 7._o acts._n 12._o 7._o that_o shall_v be_v a_o special_a act_n whereof_o we_o at_o this_o time_n speak_v not_o but_o all_o this_o disputation_n of_o we_o have_v respect_n unto_o this_o only_o to_o let_v thou_o understand_v that_o the_o fly_v which_o be_v contain_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o due_a mean_n and_o circumstance_n be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o charity_n but_o do_v rather_o very_a well_o agree_v therewith_o i_o have_v for_o this_o cause_n dispute_v so_o large_o of_o this_o matter_n because_o i_o see_v many_o good_n they_o that_o condemn_v flight_n do_v it_o for_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o good_n and_o especial_o in_o our_o country_n of_o italy_n which_o be_v endue_v with_o some_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v like_a unto_o contentious_a advocat_n for_o even_o as_o they_o if_o they_o defend_v a_o unjust_a cause_n search_v out_o with_o all_o diligence_n for_o some_o law_n which_o may_v any_o manner_n of_o way_n lean_a to_o their_o ill_a purpose_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v seem_v to_o defend_v their_o cause_n under_o the_o zeal_n of_o justice_n so_o those_o our_o man_n do_v tarry_v at_o home_n where_o they_o dare_v not_o come_v in_o sight_n for_o the_o faith_n and_o truth_n sake_n and_o whereas_o they_o first_o leave_v this_o undoone_v this_o other_o also_o do_v they_o omit_v to_o wit_n by_o not_o fly_v away_o which_o may_v be_v a_o clear_a testimony_n of_o their_o sincere_a faith_n which_o they_o do_v be_v detain_v by_o the_o link_n of_o commodity_n and_o benefit_n of_o this_o world_n unto_o who_o we_o can_v do_v a_o great_a pleasure_n than_o if_o by_o our_o writing_n and_o sermon_n we_o shall_v teach_v that_o fly_a away_o be_v not_o lawful_a unto_o christian_n that_o under_o this_o pretence_n they_o may_v commodiouslie_o enjoy_v their_o good_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o be_v the_o foolish_a sort_n which_o be_v sick_a affect_v who_o if_o they_o be_v sick_a either_o of_o a_o wound_n or_o imposthume_n when_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v either_o sear_a or_o lance_a they_o most_o love_n and_o give_v ear_n unto_o those_o physician_n which_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o excellent_a writer_n reproove_v such_o a_o way_n of_o heal_a that_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o refuse_v those_o remedy_n not_o because_o themselves_o be_v overnice_a but_o because_o the_o remedy_n agree_v not_o with_o their_o disease_n howbeit_o even_o as_o these_o sick_a man_n at_o the_o length_n miserable_o die_v and_o as_o those_o unjust_a advocate_n before_o a_o wise_a and_o prudent_a judge_n fall_v in_o their_o cause_n so_o these_o man_n of_o we_o refuse_v the_o best_a remedy_n for_o their_o grief_n do_v defile_v their_o conscience_n with_o dissimulation_n superstitious_a ceremony_n and_o deep_a silence_n or_o else_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o by_o detestable_a abjuration_n for_o all_o they_o which_o in_o the_o reform_a and_o godly_a church_n do_v right_o judge_v of_o thing_n understand_v that_o the_o unjust_a and_o unbridled_a desire_n of_o the_o good_n of_o this_o life_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n hereof_o wherefore_o since_o the_o intent_n of_o their_o mind_n be_v evil_a it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o they_o have_v a_o worse_a end_n he_o that_o will_v not_o deny_v himself_o certain_o he_o shall_v never_o live_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o that_o will_v live_v unto_o himself_o and_o retain_v christian_a profession_n be_v like_a unto_o he_o that_o will_v build_v without_o cost_n or_o make_v war_n without_o any_o army_n 28._o luk._n 14._o 28._o or_o overcome_v enemy_n without_o force_n he_o that_o be_v not_o dead_a to_o himself_o nor_o fly_v from_o himself_o shall_v never_o confirm_v the_o christian_a truth_n either_o by_o triumph_n of_o martyrdom_n or_o by_o laudable_a godly_a or_o christian_a fly_v away_o wherefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o my_o most_o dear_a brethren_n in_o the_o lord_n that_o at_o the_o length_n you_o will_v deal_v in_o good_a earnest_n dissimulation_n and_o faininge_n must_v be_v leave_v unto_o hypocrite_n and_o stage_n player_n if_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n which_o you_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n have_v both_o embrace_v and_o confess_v be_v a_o truth_n why_o do_v you_o execute_v his_o commandment_n so_o coldlie_o but_o if_o you_o judge_v it_o but_o a_o poet_n work_n or_o a_o fable_n why_o delay_v you_o it_o to_o speak_v it_o open_o why_o make_v you_o semblance_n to_o believe_v it_o god_n suffer_v not_o himself_o to_o be_v mock_v 24._o mal._n 6._o 7._o matt._n 6._o 24._o he_o require_v all_o the_o strength_n of_o man_n no_o man_n can_v serve_v he_o and_o mammon_n both_o together_o nor_o yet_o obey_v two_o lord_n command_v contrary_a thing_n if_o the_o gospel_n be_v true_a it_o must_v be_v prefer_v before_o life_n and_o other_o our_o worldly_a thing_n soldier_n dare_v jeopard_v their_o life_n for_o they_o who_o part_n they_o take_v a_o great_a many_o of_o merchant_n spend_v all_o their_o life_n long_o in_o strange_a country_n to_o make_v themselves_o rich_a they_o which_o sail_n by_o ship_n enter_v day_n and_o night_n into_o extreme_a peril_n of_o sea_n for_o purpose_n full_a of_o uncertainty_n and_o be_v we_o unto_o who_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n eternal_a life_n and_o true_a felicity_n be_v sure_o promise_v of_o god_n so_o dull_a slothful_a and_o slack_a in_o lay_v down_o this_o mortal_a life_n and_o these_o miserable_a good_n for_o his_o sake_n when_o occasion_n be_v offer_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o deny_v the_o truth_n the_o lord_n at_o the_o length_n take_v away_o so_o great_a offence_n reproach_n and_o contumely_n from_o his_o child_n &_o make_v they_o all_o faithful_a constant_a valiant_a prompt_a and_o ready_a and_o persuade_v that_o they_o which_o die_v for_o this_o truth_n sake_n do_v pass_v into_o eternal_a life_n and_o they_o which_o leave_v this_o their_o temporal_a country_n do_v fly_v from_o hell_n and_o do_v mount_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o the_o college_n of_o saint_n thomas_n in_o strasborough_n it_o will_v right_a reverend_a sir_n &_o dear_a belove_a brethren_n have_v be_v much_o more_o to_o my_o like_n to_o send_v you_o rather_o joyful_a than_o uncomfortable_a news_n but_o since_o it_o have_v thus_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n which_o be_v never_o to_o be_v accuse_v it_o behoove_v that_o i_o also_o do_v bear_v that_o which_o have_v happen_v with_o as_o good_a a_o mind_n as_o i_o can_v hitherto_o perhaps_o i_o may_v be_v suspect_v of_o negligence_n that_o i_o have_v not_o write_v unto_o you_o but_o because_o i_o know_v that_o this_o be_v diligent_o do_v by_o master_n bucer_n i_o think_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o my_o letter_n for_o that_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o do_v sometime_o understande_v what_o we_o both_o do_v and_o what_o expectation_n of_o thing_n may_v be_v look_v for_o but_o now_o be_v he_o depart_v in_o peace_n to_o he_o and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n even_o the_o last_o day_n of_o february_n to_o the_o great_a sorrow_n of_o all_o godly_a man_n and_o most_o of_o all_o to_o i_o neither_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o that_o you_o my_o reverend_a associate_n will_v take_v great_a grief_n since_o the_o church_n the_o school_n and_o our_o college_n have_v lose_v so_o worthy_a a_o man_n this_o man_n have_v now_o overcome_v the_o great_a difficulty_n and_o trouble_n which_o be_v wont_v to_o hinder_v beginning_n so_o that_o he_o be_v now_o accept_v in_o a_o manner_n of_o all_o the_o godly_a and_o learned_a sort_n of_o that_o university_n wherein_o he_o profess_v therefore_o god_n will_v that_o he_o shall_v now_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o labour_n and_o that_o his_o long_o tire_a warfare_n shall_v be_v adorn_v with_o the_o honour_n of_o triumph_n he_o be_v well_o provide_v for_o we_o be_v to_o be_v account_v miserable_a or_o rather_o unhappy_a who_o be_v yet_o toss_v in_o the_o storm_n of_o calamity_n wherefore_o i_o desire_v the_o immortal_a god_n who_o for_o his_o mercy_n sake_n have_v make_v he_o to_o rest_v in_o peace_n will_v also_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o scourge_n hang_v over_o our_o head_n and_o no_o less_o do_v i_o wish_v that_o our_o chapter_n may_v be_v provide_v of_o a_o dean_n and_o governor_n which_o may_v be_v compare_v in_o learning_n and_o godliness_n with_o his_o predecessor_n i_o bid_v you_o all_o farewell_n in_o the_o lord_n from_o oxford_n in_o england_n the_o 8._o of_o march_n 1551._o to_o the_o widow_n of_o d._n
i_o can_v otherwise_o do_v i_o desire_v you_o for_o christ_n his_o sake_n who_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o serve_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n that_o even_o as_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o life_n by_o he_o who_o we_o now_o lament_v we_o may_v fly_v unto_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o intent_n our_o sorrow_n may_v be_v so_o temper_v as_o it_o exceed_v not_o christian_a measure_n and_o the_o bound_n of_o godliness_n there_o shall_v we_o find_v a_o true_a medicine_n of_o the_o wound_n &_o assure_a remedy_n of_o our_o sorrow_n christ_n say_v unto_o the_o people_n the_o maiden_n be_v not_o dead_a 24._o matt._n 9_o 24._o but_o sleep_v and_o of_o lazarus_n which_o be_v already_o depart_v our_o friend_n lazarus_n sleep_v 13._o john_n 11._o 11_o 1._o thess_n 4._o 13._o paul_n also_o call_v they_o sléeper_n for_o who_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o in_o such_o sort_n to_o sorrow_n as_o do_v the_o ungodly_a which_o have_v cast_v away_o all_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n also_o job_n a_o most_o valiant_a captain_n of_o our_o warfare_n teach_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v say_v with_o he_o 21._o job._n 1._o 21._o the_o lord_n give_v and_o the_o lord_n have_v take_v away_o even_o as_o it_o have_v please_v the_o lord_n so_o be_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v if_o we_o have_v receive_v good_a thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n why_o can_v we_o not_o also_o endure_v evil_a thing_n this_o godliness_n and_o fortitude_n do_v the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o whereof_o since_o your_o husband_n breast_n be_v a_o most_o large_a liberarie_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o you_o so_o learned_a the_o same_o of_o he_o as_o you_o have_v no_o need_n of_o my_o admonishment_n howbeit_o while_o i_o rehearse_v these_o thing_n i_o teach_v you_o not_o but_o i_o stir_v you_o up_o together_o with_o myself_o to_o renew_v in_o our_o memory_n now_o when_o most_o need_n be_v those_o thing_n whereof_o through_o the_o mist_n of_o sorrow_n and_o tear_n we_o have_v sometime_o be_v small_o mindful_a they_o which_o be_v destitute_a of_o christian_a hope_n do_v bewail_v their_o dead_a without_o any_o consolation_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o perceive_v themselves_o to_o be_v perpetual_o divide_v from_o they_o but_o we_o for_o a_o most_o surety_n know_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o which_o be_v dead_a be_v not_o lose_v see_v we_o have_v send_v they_o before_o unto_o god_n and_o into_o the_o everlasting_a tabernacle_n we_o sorrow_n indeed_o that_o we_o be_v pluck_v away_o from_o so_o acceptable_a so_o profitable_a and_o wise_a a_o companion_n especial_o in_o the_o journey_n of_o this_o dark_a life_n but_o we_o must_v also_o rejoice_v and_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n that_o we_o have_v have_v he_o so_o long_o with_o us._n he_o die_v most_o constant_a and_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n he_o see_v not_o a_o multitude_n of_o evil_n which_o hang_v over_o our_o head_n and_o over_o the_o church_n because_o of_o our_o sin_n i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o we_o also_o may_v be_v loose_v from_o hence_o before_o the_o flood_n of_o calamity_n overslowe_v oh_o how_o great_o be_o i_o afraid_a of_o we_o wretch_n who_o perpetual_o preach_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n when_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o live_v a_o very_a ungodlie_a life_n our_o bucer_n be_v dead_a in_o peace_n he_o be_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n enemy_n &_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o he_o plentifullie_o sow_v in_o his_o life_n time_n he_o now_o reap_v with_o singular_a pleasure_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yet_o nevertheless_o do_v not_o you_o think_v but_o that_o i_o do_v oftentimes_o consider_v with_o myself_o that_o the_o severity_n of_o god_n may_v seem_v unto_o you_o to_o be_v very_o rigorous_a which_o so_o often_o exercise_v you_o with_o many_o funeral_n of_o you_o with_o exile_n with_o great_a charge_n of_o household_n &_o with_o no_o small_a disease_n of_o the_o body_n but_o yet_o i_o beseech_v you_o let_v it_o in_o like_a manner_n come_v to_o your_o remembrance_n that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o smit_v wherefore_o he_o be_v a_o excellent_a father_n will_v minister_v strength_n to_o bear_v the_o stroke_n not_o that_o he_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v at_o our_o calamity_n but_o that_o his_o infinite_a knowledge_n do_v providentlie_o understand_v how_o expedient_a it_o be_v otherwhile_o for_o we_o to_o be_v turmoil_v and_o press_v with_o adversity_n israel_n be_v not_o teach_v but_o by_o many_o stripe_n and_o sorrow_n and_o tribulation_n work_v patience_n patience_n 3._o rom._n 5._o 3._o trial_n trial_n hope_v and_o hope_n confound_v not_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v terrify_v the_o scripture_n forewarn_v we_o that_o we_o come_v unto_o bondage_n shall_v prepare_v our_o heart_n not_o unto_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n but_o unto_o temptation_n by_o these_o reason_n she_o be_v move_v which_o be_v a_o true_a widow_n to_o make_v earnest_a prayer_n unto_o her_o god_n day_n and_o night_n howbeit_o not_o to_o pass_v the_o measure_n and_o bound_n of_o a_o epistle_n this_o last_o i_o desire_v that_o you_o do_v not_o think_v yourself_o to_o be_v forsake_v or_o desolate_a see_v you_o have_v christ_n dwell_v in_o your_o heart_n by_o faith_n your_o husband_n which_o betroth_a himself_n unto_o you_o you_o have_v lose_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o christ_n unto_o who_o you_o be_v marry_v in_o godliness_n and_o sincere_a religion_n you_o shall_v never_o lose_v by_o any_o violence_n of_o death_n god_n who_o be_v the_o father_n and_o author_n of_o all_o consolation_n comfort_v you_o your_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n comfort_v you_o final_o let_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n comfort_v you_o who_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o be_v very_o plentiful_o pour_v into_o your_o heart_n and_o this_o special_o and_o above_o all_o other_o thing_n provide_v that_o your_o heart_n may_v evermore_o dwell_v in_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o lord_n my_o wife_n and_o julius_n be_v so_o great_o disquiet_v for_o this_o gréevous_a mishap_n as_o if_o they_o do_v not_o sorrow_n equal_o with_o you_o yet_o do_v they_o come_v very_o near_o thereunto_o and_o they_o pray_v with_o their_o whole_a heart_n that_o the_o abundant_a help_n of_o god_n may_v spéedilie_o relieve_v you_o and_o all_o this_o godly_a family_n and_o in_o no_o wise_n think_v that_o you_o be_v to_o make_v any_o less_o account_n of_o i_o than_o when_o your_o bucer_n and_o i_o live_v wherefore_o i_o pray_v you_o also_o that_o if_o my_o help_n may_v any_o way_n stand_v you_o in_o stead_n you_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o use_v the_o same_o for_o you_o shall_v evermore_o find_v it_o open_a and_o ready_a at_o your_o godly_a desire_n to_o ralph_n gualther_n if_o i_o shall_v give_v thanks_n unto_o you_o for_o the_o exceed_a great_a pain_n which_o you_o have_v take_v about_o the_o print_n of_o my_o book_n neither_o shall_v i_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v sufficient_o to_o your_o desert_n nor_o yet_o can_v i_o declare_v what_o great_a account_n i_o make_v of_o the_o pleasure_n which_o you_o show_v i_o wherefore_o i_o rather_o desire_v that_o some_o occasion_n may_v be_v offer_v unto_o i_o wherein_o i_o may_v show_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o deed_n what_o account_n i_o make_v of_o this_o your_o good_a will_n towards_o i_o true_o it_o grieve_v i_o very_o much_o that_o in_o the_o restore_n of_o these_o trifle_n of_o i_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o great_a pain_n take_v and_o i_o be_o great_o afraid_a lest_o the_o labour_n will_v exceed_v the_o matter_n i_o have_v oftentimes_o consider_v with_o myself_o that_o through_o my_o negligence_n it_o have_v happen_v that_o as_o good_a or_o better_a thing_n may_v have_v be_v compile_v by_o you_o with_o a_o small_a labour_n more_o than_o you_o can_v put_v in_o order_n my_o uncorrected_a copy_n but_o such_o be_v your_o good_a will_n as_o you_o be_v content_a to_o take_v every_o thing_n patient_o because_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v your_o travel_n to_o your_o friend_n assure_v yourself_o therefore_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o continual_a debtor_n unto_o you_o for_o this_o your_o favour_n which_o i_o doubt_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o requite_v but_o god_n which_o be_v a_o most_o just_a weigh_o of_o godly_a labour_n will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o bestow_v your_o labour_n in_o vain_a now_o see_v you_o in_o like_a manner_n most_o dear_a belove_a brother_n in_o christ_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n wherein_o you_o will_v have_v i_o to_o deal_v for_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v i_o no_o less_o forward_o in_o your_o business_n than_o you_o have_v show_v yourself_o painful_a and_o willing_a in_o i_o the_o young_a man_n which_o you_o commend_v unto_o i_o in_o your_o letter_n beside_o
building_n i_o beseech_v you_o take_v heed_n that_o you_o pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n naughty_a and_o false_a opinion_n which_o i_o therefore_o admonish_v you_o of_o out_o that_o superstition_n must_v not_o be_v pare_v away_o but_o root_v out_o because_o i_o have_v otherwhile_o see_v some_o which_o have_v only_o pare_v away_o the_o leaf_n flower_n and_o fruit_n of_o superstition_n but_o have_v spare_v the_o root_n which_o have_v afterward_o spring_v up_o again_o to_o the_o great_a detriment_n of_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n let_v the_o evil_a seed_n and_o rot_a root_n be_v cut_v off_o even_o at_o the_o very_a beginning_n for_o if_o they_o be_v neglect_v at_o the_o first_o i_o know_v what_o i_o say_v they_o be_v with_o much_o more_o difficulty_n take_v away_o afterward_o and_o it_o must_v be_v provide_v that_o this_o be_v most_o sincere_o do_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o there_o believe_v i_o there_o be_v most_o pestilent_a seed_n of_o idolatry_n which_o undoubted_o except_o they_o be_v take_v away_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v never_o be_v endue_v with_o pure_a and_o sincere_a woorship_v due_a neither_o more_o nor_o less_o must_v be_v attribute_v unto_o sacrament_n than_o be_v due_a let_v not_o sacrament_n be_v contemn_v as_o unprofitable_a and_o vain_a sign_n and_o again_o let_v not_o man_n attribute_v more_o unto_o they_o than_o the_o institution_n of_o they_o will_v suffer_v he_o that_o distinguish_v not_o the_o sacrament_n from_o the_o thing_n signify_v he_o shameful_o not_o without_o his_o own_o destruction_n cleave_v to_o the_o element_n of_o this_o world_n and_o do_v carnal_o profane_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n the_o whole_a dignity_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n be_v hereby_o to_o be_v measure_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v choose_v they_o unto_o himself_o as_o instrument_n whereby_o he_o may_v further_o our_o salvation_n and_o by_o this_o reason_n therefore_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o sign_n invent_v by_o the_o cogitation_n of_o man_n but_o they_o differ_v also_o from_o the_o thing_n signify_v see_v as_o the_o nature_n and_o definition_n of_o they_o require_v they_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o they_o for_o bread_n proper_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o his_o certain_a manner_n namely_o because_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o shall_v we_o deny_v especial_o that_o the_o faithful_a do_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n no_o very_o but_o with_o what_o mouth_n do_v they_o receive_v these_o thing_n with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n no._n for_o even_o as_o a_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o the_o sign_n and_o of_o the_o thing_n signify_v so_o he_o which_o receave_v the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n be_v also_o endue_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o even_o as_o the_o beléever_n do_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n eat_v &_o drink_v the_o bread_n &_o wine_n so_o their_o mind_n be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o outward_a sign_n be_v by_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n attain_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o faith_n even_o unto_o christ_n faith_n we_o receive_v whole_a christ_n in_o the_o supper_n yet_o by_o faith_n apprehend_v and_o receave_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n even_o as_o it_o be_v deliver_v upon_o the_o cross_n feed_v thereupon_o as_o upon_o wholesome_a and_o livelie_a meat_n and_o very_o have_v and_o possess_v christ_n all_o whole_o with_o all_o his_o fruit_n merit_n and_o gift_n neither_o be_v the_o profit_n of_o this_o meat_n only_o shut_v up_o in_o the_o mind_n but_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n also_o it_o redownd_v to_o the_o body_n and_o make_v it_o capable_a of_o the_o bless_a immortality_n and_o a_o fit_a instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o work_v well_o and_o godly_a this_o be_v the_o property_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o god_n that_o by_o they_o he_o may_v give_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o promise_v but_o yet_o after_o such_o a_o way_n and_o manner_n as_o may_v be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o thing_n promise_v for_o it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n yea_o rather_o in_o infinite_a place_n and_o much_o less_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v include_v in_o that_o sacramental_a bread_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v tear_v and_o eat_v with_o the_o tooth_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v receive_v of_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v altogether_o without_o faith_n neither_o be_o i_o mind_v at_o this_o time_n to_o rehearse_v all_o thing_n which_o serve_v to_o this_o purpose_n you_o be_v wise_a i_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o that_o corporal_a fleshlie_o or_o as_o they_o term_v it_o natural_a presence_n neither_o must_v we_o for_o the_o right_n confirm_v of_o any_o opinion_n or_o doctrine_n be_v content_v with_o four_o bare_a word_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o we_o ought_v also_o to_o weigh_v diligent_o many_o other_o place_n which_o have_v relation_n unto_o this_o no_o less_o than_o we_o do_v those_o four_o word_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v the_o place_n now_o serve_v not_o together_o many_o place_n that_o have_v relation_n to_o one_o thing_n must_v be_v compare_v together_o to_o handle_v and_o expound_v this_o matter_n at_o large_a this_o one_o thing_n i_o desire_v that_o you_o will_v most_o diligent_o try_v all_o thing_n for_o so_o i_o hope_v it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o you_o will_v retain_v that_o which_o be_v good_a this_o nevertheless_o i_o will_v not_o omit_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o repeat_v that_o hereof_o i_o be_o most_o assure_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v never_o have_v a_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a consent_n of_o doctrine_n eucharist_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v much_o upon_o a_o pure_a communicate_v of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o a_o sure_a peace_n between_o the_o brethren_n and_o a_o sincere_a pureness_n from_o superstition_n unless_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v deliver_v after_o this_o or_o the_o like_a manner_n and_o what_o sure_a reason_n i_o have_v for_o this_o foresight_n i_o will_v not_o now_o stand_v to_o declare_v be_v the_o plain_a that_o rite_n be_v in_o sacrament_n the_o better_a they_o be_v but_o in_o the_o rite_n of_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n that_o manner_n be_v most_o to_o be_v embrace_v which_o shall_v be_v most_o plain_a and_o most_o remoove_v from_o the_o papistical_a trifle_n and_o ceremony_n and_o which_o shall_v come_v near_a to_o the_o pureness_n which_o christ_n use_v with_o his_o apostle_n christian_n mind_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v occupy_v much_o in_o outward_a rite_n &_o ceremony_n but_o to_o be_v feed_v by_o the_o word_n to_o be_v instruct_v by_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v inflame_v unto_o prayer_n to_o be_v confirm_v in_o good_a work_n and_o excellent_a example_n of_o life_n be_v how_o necessary_a a_o thing_n discipline_n be_v moreover_o i_o counsel_v you_o that_o in_o any_o wise_a you_o bring_v in_o discipline_n into_o your_o church_n so_o soon_o as_o possible_o you_o can_v for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v at_o the_o beginning_n when_o man_n be_v very_o desirous_a of_o the_o gospel_n it_o will_v not_o soon_o be_v admit_v afterward_o when_o as_o it_o happen_v some_o coldness_n shall_v creep_v in_o and_o how_o vain_o you_o shall_v labour_v without_o it_o very_o many_o church_n may_v be_v a_o example_n unto_o you_o who_o since_o they_o will_v not_o at_o their_o very_a first_o reformation_n take_v upon_o they_o this_o healthful_a yoke_n can_v never_o afterward_o as_o touch_v manner_n and_o life_n be_v bring_v into_o order_n by_o any_o just_a rule_n whereof_o it_o happen_v which_o i_o speak_v with_o great_a grief_n that_o all_o thing_n in_o a_o manner_n have_v small_a assurance_n and_o do_v threaten_v ruin_n on_o every_o side_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o grievous_a loss_n and_o a_o certain_a destruction_n of_o church_n to_o want_v strength_n of_o discipline_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v true_o &_o sound_o say_v that_o they_o have_v and_o do_v profess_v the_o gospel_n which_o either_o be_v without_o discipline_n or_o do_v contemn_v it_o or_o be_v not_o delight_v therewith_o certain_o since_o in_o the_o evangelist_n and_o in_o the_o apostolical_a epistle_n it_o be_v teach_v with_o so_o great_a diligence_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v not_o to_o be_v the_o least_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o gospel_n seem_v to_o be_v despise_v of_o they_o which_o have_v banish_v from_o themselves_o so_o notable_a a_o portion_n thereof_o reject_v under_o what_o pretence_n
ecclesiastical_a discipline_n be_v reject_v but_o under_o what_o devise_n or_o colour_v it_o be_v reject_v at_o this_o day_n in_o many_o place_n be_v worth_a the_o hear_n they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o danger_n least_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o discipline_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v take_v upon_o they_o tyranny_n shall_v correct_v reproove_v and_o excommunicate_v for_o no_o just_a cause_n but_o at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n moreover_o they_o say_v that_o our_o magistrate_n at_o this_o day_n thanks_n be_v to_o god_n be_v christian_n and_o therefore_o see_v they_o punish_v the_o more_o grievous_a sort_n of_o crime_n this_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v superfluous_a neither_o do_v these_o good_a man_n perceive_v that_o there_o need_v not_o to_o be_v any_o fear_n of_o the_o minister_n where_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o touch_v brotherly_a correction_n be_v observe_v for_o this_o charge_n be_v not_o to_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o authority_n and_o will_n of_o one_o man_n but_o in_o the_o shut_n out_o from_o brotherly_a society_n they_o which_o will_v not_o be_v amend_v a_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v have_v by_o who_o authority_n if_o it_o be_v do_v no_o man_n can_v just_o complain_v of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o one_o or_o of_o a_o few_o and_o no_o less_o vain_a be_v that_o which_o be_v bring_v as_o touch_v the_o christian_a magistrate_n for_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o our_o world_n do_v obey_v the_o law_n of_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n and_o therefore_o be_v offend_v with_o the_o restore_v and_o reform_a church_n so_o far_o be_v it_o off_o that_o they_o will_v do_v any_o thing_n for_o their_o commodity_n further_o if_o in_o any_o place_n they_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o have_v evangelicall_a church_n within_o their_o dominion_n undoubted_o they_o use_v in_o other_o but_o temporal_a and_o civil_a law_n wherefore_o they_o pass_v over_o many_o vice_n and_o leave_v they_o unpunished_a which_o nevertheless_o as_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o be_v sharpelie_o reproove_v so_o do_v they_o not_o a_o little_a hurt_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n a_o example_n thereof_o may_v be_v fornication_n drunkenness_n riotousness_n &_o such_o like_a common_a mischief_n which_o in_o civil_a judgement_n be_v dissemble_v and_o of_o the_o ill_a people_n be_v laugh_v at_o further_o the_o politic_a magistrate_n punish_v very_o many_o crime_n either_o by_o temporal_a punishment_n or_o by_o a_o payment_n of_o money_n which_o when_o a_o man_n suffer_v either_o in_o body_n or_o in_o purse_n he_o be_v set_v free_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o further_a provision_n make_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o he_o that_o sin_v but_o the_o church_n so_o correct_v and_o otherwhile_o excommunicate_v as_o the_o soul_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n nor_o be_v he_o while_o he_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n chastise_v or_o make_v ashamed_a for_o a_o time_n account_v as_o a_o enemy_n but_o as_o a_o brother_n be_v profitable_o admonish_v of_o his_o salvation_n scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o discipline_n must_v be_v seek_v for_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o for_o the_o bring_n in_o and_o retain_v of_o this_o discipline_n whereof_o we_o now_o speak_v the_o continual_a handle_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o church_n do_v great_o further_a for_o place_n be_v there_o offer_v continual_o according_a to_o the_o precept_n whereof_o the_o life_n of_o christian_n must_v be_v direct_v doubtless_o many_o thing_n profitable_a enough_o be_v otherwhile_o take_v out_o of_o the_o father_n and_o canon_n of_o counsel_n as_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o yet_o those_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o very_a armoury_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v far_o more_o mighty_a and_o of_o more_o efficacy_n to_o move_v the_o mind_n and_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v and_o to_o be_v the_o more_o profitable_o do_v it_o behoove_v to_o institute_v school_n of_o divinity_n divinity_n school_n of_o divinity_n which_o may_v be_v certain_a storehouse_n and_o garner_n of_o your_o church_n who_o corn_n of_o the_o minister_n unless_o provision_n be_v make_v that_o it_o may_v be_v renew_a it_o will_v easy_o be_v consume_v within_o one_o or_o two_o age_n wherefore_o let_v child_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o who_o god_n have_v give_v a_o strong_a health_n and_o a_o wit_n not_o unapt_a for_o study_n be_v exercise_v in_o ecclesiastical_a school_n let_v they_o learn_v the_o tongue_n whereby_o they_o may_v the_o more_o near_o and_o familiar_o understand_v the_o new_a and_o old_a testament_n and_o how_o we_o ought_v with_o a_o religious_a sobriety_n and_o prudent_a dexterity_n to_o handle_v the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o christian_a school_n i_o will_v declare_v in_o many_o word_n and_o more_o at_o large_a save_v that_o we_o be_v already_o admonish_v thereof_o to_o our_o great_a harm_n by_o the_o wicked_a example_n of_o papistical_a school_n those_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o edify_v divinity_n what_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o school_n of_o divinity_n let_v they_o be_v there_o oftentimes_o rehearse_v and_o by_o read_v and_o over_o read_v the_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a bible_n let_v they_o that_o be_v teach_v from_o god_n not_o think_v it_o grievous_a to_o note_v with_o all_o diligence_n all_o the_o place_n that_o belong_v héereunto_o &_o those_o let_v they_o have_v in_o readiness_n distinguish_v i_o say_v into_o certain_a common_a place_n and_o order_n which_o may_v be_v so_o often_o and_o in_o a_o manner_n continual_o repete_v in_o the_o memory_n that_o final_o when_o need_n shall_v require_v they_o may_v offer_v themselves_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n reject_v tit._n 3._o 9_o that_o unprofitable_a question_n must_v be_v reject_v but_o as_o for_o superfluous_a question_n which_o always_o have_v contention_n join_v with_o they_o and_o as_o paul_n say_v unto_o titus_n be_v unprofitable_a and_o vain_a i_o judge_v must_v be_v altogether_o shun_v in_o a_o christian_a school_n for_o whatsoever_o time_n we_o bestow_v upon_o they_o all_o that_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o without_o doubt_n be_v most_o profitable_a and_o whereas_o this_o miserable_a life_n be_v very_o short_a &_o oftentimes_o with_o sundry_a occupation_n enféebled_a it_o be_v in_o my_o judgement_n no_o sound_a counsel_n but_o a_o mere_a madness_n to_o fall_v from_o the_o search_v out_o of_o necessary_a thing_n to_o seek_v out_o superfluous_a and_o other_o while_n pernicious_a thing_n choose_v what_o manner_n of_o ecclesiastical_a pastor_n must_v be_v choose_v but_o as_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v unto_o school_n expert_a teacher_n of_o this_o method_n and_o study_n so_o out_o of_o they_o afterward_o must_v be_v choose_v and_o promote_v to_o the_o ministry_n pastor_n which_o have_v be_v exercise_v in_o such_o holy_a school_n and_o have_v very_o much_o profit_v both_o in_o godliness_n and_o learning_n who_o part_n shall_v be_v so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v call_v to_o that_o office_n to_o be_v whole_o occupy_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o their_o heavenly_a father_n of_o which_o they_o must_v not_o yield_v any_o thing_n unto_o flesh_n blood_n parent_n kinfolke_n friend_n prince_n or_o king_n and_o because_o they_o be_v command_v to_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n not_o only_a forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o repentance_n therefore_o vice_n as_o they_o deserve_v must_v be_v reprehend_v not_o lessen_v or_o diminish_v as_o be_v do_v of_o they_o which_o serve_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o their_o belly_n 18._o ro._n 16._o 18._o but_o this_o will_v not_o they_o do_v which_o be_v not_o of_o a_o valiant_a and_o bold_a spirit_n but_o if_o for_o that_o they_o be_v man_n they_o shall_v perceive_v themselves_o to_o be_v strike_v with_o fear_n or_o to_o be_v move_v with_o any_o affection_n let_v they_o not_o forget_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unto_o jeremie_n behold_v i_o have_v give_v my_o word_n into_o thy_o mouth_n 10._o jer._n 1._o 10._o behold_v i_o have_v place_v thou_o this_o day_n over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v root_v out_o and_o destroy_v scatter_v &_o plant_v doubtless_o mighty_a and_o great_a be_v these_o work_n but_o of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v be_v do_v by_o arm_n sword_n or_o other_o outward_a power_n also_o they_o bring_v they_o not_o to_o pass_v by_o the_o small_a terrify_n or_o menace_v threat_n of_o humane_a word_n which_o be_v devise_v of_o a_o boldness_n without_o ability_n to_o persuade_v for_o you_o shall_v see_v many_o rash_a fellow_n thunder_n vain_o out_o of_o a_o pulpit_n but_o after_o their_o thunder-clappe_n follow_v lightning_n of_o tow_n or_o straw_n yea_o rather_o bubble_n which_o fasten_v no_o stroke_n
and_o especial_o chrysostome_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o paul_n unto_o timothy_n one_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n he_o define_v the_o lord_n to_o be_v a_o mediator_n because_o of_o both_o his_o nature_n 3_o i_o believe_v that_o christ_n by_o nature_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n man_n that_o christ_n be_v both_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o by_o nature_n the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o as_o he_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o have_v it_o of_o the_o godhead_n but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o have_v it_o of_o manhood_n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o divide_v christ_n for_o we_o embrace_v he_o most_o true_o to_o be_v one_o but_o when_o we_o attribute_v unto_o he_o diverse_a thing_n we_o do_v consider_v the_o reason_n and_o the_o cause_n whereby_o or_o for_o which_o those_o thing_n may_v be_v agreeable_a unto_o he_o therefore_o when_o he_o be_v say_v and_o beléeve_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o nature_n we_o consider_v with_o ourselves_o from_o whence_o this_o thing_n may_v come_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n or_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o we_o perceive_v that_o this_o be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n see_v that_o nature_n have_v derive_v no_o matter_n or_o essence_n as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v from_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n but_o the_o word_n itself_o of_o god_n what_o and_o how_o much_o soever_o it_o be_v have_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n beget_v by_o god_n the_o father_n therefore_o in_o respect_n that_o christ_n be_v god_n he_o be_v beléeve_v and_o say_v to_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n but_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v man_n he_o must_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o man_n undoubted_o if_o we_o will_v shun_v absurdity_n we_o must_v take_v special_a heed_n that_o we_o mingle_v not_o and_o confound_v the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n which_o if_o we_o shall_v not_o commit_v it_o will_v not_o be_v hard_o for_o we_o to_o understand_v the_o original_n of_o his_o property_n 4_o the_o essential_a justice_n which_o osiander_n devise_v we_o reject_v as_o strange_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n feign_v a_o essential_a justice_n of_o ozianders_n feign_v for_o we_o understande_v not_o any_o other_o way_n of_o justification_n than_o that_o which_o paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n and_o galathian_o teach_v 2._o rom._n 4._o 2._o when_o he_o purpose_o entreat_v thereof_o especial_o in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n that_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v unto_o we_o by_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n and_o most_o evident_a testimony_n of_o david_n it_o be_v so_o cléerelie_o prove_v that_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o purblind_a which_o will_v be_v blind_a in_o that_o matter_n furthermore_o if_o just_a man_n do_v live_v by_o their_o faith_n as_o habacuke_n have_v testify_v 4._o habac._n 2._o 4._o and_o that_o our_o righteousness_n be_v our_o life_n now_o have_v we_o no_o essential_a righteousness_n but_o righteousness_n impute_v by_o faith_n as_o the_o apostolical_a epistle_n have_v teach_v neither_o be_v that_o say_n of_o esaie_n otherwise_o to_o be_v understand_v with_o his_o knowledge_n he_o shall_v justify_v many_o 11._o esa_n 53._o 11._o furthermore_o if_o we_o shall_v be_v endue_v with_o essential_a justice_n we_o shall_v not_o want_v any_o point_n of_o true_a righteousness_n neither_o shall_v we_o make_v supplication_n before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n judgement_n which_o nevertheless_o we_o know_v that_o david_n earnest_o do_v when_o he_o pray_v 2._o psal_n 143._o verse_n 2._o enter_v not_o into_o judgement_n with_o thy_o servant_n because_o no_o man_n live_a shall_v be_v justify_v in_o thy_o sight_n neither_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o need_n to_o light_v a_o candle_n in_o this_o our_o time_n in_o the_o sunshine_n of_o so_o clear_a a_o truth_n if_o we_o will_v avoid_v as_o paul_n warn_v we_o profane_a and_o vain_a babbling_n and_o opposition_n of_o science_n false_o so_o call_v 20._o 1._o tim._n 6._o 20._o all_o these_o thing_n i_o confess_v might_n much_o more_o at_o large_a have_v be_v declare_v and_o confirm_v by_o more_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o of_o the_o father_n but_o because_o i_o know_v that_o i_o do_v not_o write_v unto_o the_o unlearned_a therefore_o i_o count_v it_o sufficient_a to_o show_v what_o my_o judgement_n be_v and_o as_o touch_v seruettus_n the_o spaniard_n spaniard_n the_o just_a punishment_n of_o seruettus_n the_o spaniard_n i_o have_v not_o aught_o else_o to_o say_v but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o devil_n own_o son_n who_o pestiferous_a and_o detestable_a doctrine_n must_v be_v banish_v in_o all_o place_n neither_o be_v the_o magistrate_n to_o be_v accuse_v that_o put_v he_o to_o death_n see_v there_o may_v be_v find_v in_o he_o no_o taken_v of_o amendment_n and_o his_o blasphemy_n be_v altogether_o intolerable_a but_o now_o will_v i_o make_v a_o end_n of_o my_o epistle_n which_o as_o it_o be_v large_a if_o so_o it_o shall_v be_v no_o slender_a &_o doubtful_a testimony_n of_o my_o most_o incline_v love_n towards_o you_o doubt_v less_o i_o shall_v think_v that_o you_o have_v deal_v very_o well_o with_o i_o live_v you_o happy_o in_o christ_n and_o love_v you_o i_o in_o he_o even_o as_o in_o he_o i_o most_o sincere_o love_v you_o from_o strasborough_n the_o 14._o of_o february_n 1556._o to_o master_n john_n caluin_n england_n peter_n martyr_n return_v out_o of_o england_n by_o what_o mean_n worthy_a sir_n god_n pluck_v i_o out_o of_o the_o lion_n mouth_n even_o i_o myself_o do_v not_o yet_o well_o know_v much_o less_o can_v i_o declare_v it_o unto_o you_o but_o as_o peter_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o prison_n by_o the_o angel_n think_v that_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v he_o have_v see_v but_o by_o a_o dream_n even_o so_o i_o as_o yet_o scarce_o think_v it_o true_a that_o i_o be_o escape_v howbeit_o i_o be_o safe_a and_o in_o health_n here_o at_o strasborough_n whereof_o i_o think_v good_a to_o certify_v you_o with_o speed_n that_o you_o together_o with_o i_o and_o other_o good_a brethren_n may_v give_v thanks_n to_o god_n &_o i_o earnest_o beseech_v your_o godly_a church_n that_o they_o by_o their_o hearty_a prayer_n will_v endeavour_v to_o obtain_v the_o assistance_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o calamity_n that_o oppress_v the_o english_a church_n may_v be_v mitigate_v religion_n the_o bishop_n of_o england_n in_o peril_n of_o life_n for_o religion_n there_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o york_n the_o bishop_n of_o worcester_n and_o oxford_n with_o many_o other_o learned_a and_o godly_a preacher_n be_v fast_o in_o hold_n and_o together_o with_o many_o other_o holy_a man_n stand_v in_o extreme_a danger_n i_o know_v that_o these_o thing_n according_a to_o your_o godliness_n will_v be_v grievous_a unto_o your_o ear_n but_o now_o i_o show_v you_o of_o two_o thing_n that_o may_v somewhat_o mitigate_v your_o sorrow_n first_o that_o although_o the_o infirmity_n of_o some_o bewray_v itself_o yet_o be_v there_o a_o great_a constancy_n of_o many_o more_o than_o we_o have_v think_v so_o as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o we_o shall_v have_v many_o famous_a martyr_n if_o winchester_n which_o now_o bear_v all_o the_o sway_n shall_v begin_v to_o show_v his_o cruelty_n england_n a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o short_a continuance_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n in_o england_n secondlie_o that_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n in_o a_o manner_n of_o all_o man_n that_o this_o calamity_n will_v not_o long_o endure_v who_o as_o they_o be_v wise_a have_v good_a conjecture_n of_o this_o their_o opinion_n wherefore_o let_v we_o also_o desire_n god_n that_o he_o will_v quick_o tread_v down_o satan_n under_o the_o foot_n of_o his_o church_n as_o for_o i_o i_o be_o uncertain_a whether_o i_o shall_v still_o abide_v here_o at_o strasborough_n perhaps_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o eucharist_n will_v somewhat_o let_v i_o howbeit_o i_o do_v not_o much_o force_n but_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n that_o the_o better_a and_o learnede_a sort_n be_v desirous_a to_o keep_v i_o still_o whither_o soever_o the_o lord_n shall_v call_v i_o thither_o be_o i_o willing_a to_o go_v yet_o this_o do_v not_o a_o little_a gréeve_v i_o that_o james_n sturmius_fw-la to_o who_o both_o the_o common_a weal_n and_o the_o school_n be_v great_o behold_v depart_v from_o hence_o the_o very_a same_o day_n that_o i_o come_v into_o this_o city_n to_o wit_v the_o 30._o day_n of_o october_n and_o it_o be_v think_v that_o his_o brother_n peter_n sturmius_fw-la shall_v be_v choose_v in_o his_o steed_n among_o the_o order_n of_o the_o school_n but_o john_n sturmius_fw-la the_o governor_n of_o the_o school_n labour_v by_o
that_o of_o a_o dangerous_a disease_n neither_o do_v it_o now_o any_o less_o grieve_v i_o when_o i_o perceive_v that_o your_o sickness_n which_o trouble_v you_o be_v a_o quarten_v ague_n i_o for_o my_o part_n be_o able_a to_o say_v much_o of_o the_o untowardness_n and_o as_o it_o be_v rebellious_a obstinacy_n of_o this_o disease_n against_o medicine_n and_o physician_n as_o he_o that_o have_v two_o sundry_a time_n strive_v therewith_o the_o chief_a thing_n be_v that_o they_o which_o be_v in_o this_o state_n must_v use_v great_a &_o long_a patience_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o be_v not_o to_o seek_v in_o matter_n without_o see_v it_o be_v abundant_o enough_o plant_v within_o your_o mind_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n but_o i_o together_o with_o many_o other_o have_v two_o cause_n to_o sorrow_n for_o this_o your_o sickness_n the_o one_o be_v because_o you_o yourself_o be_v break_v and_o weaken_v which_o can_v otherwise_o be_v especial_o in_o a_o slender_a body_n now_o in_o a_o manner_n dry_v up_o with_o labour_n and_o the_o other_o cause_n be_v that_o your_o labour_n in_o preach_v and_o write_v be_v discontinue_v to_o the_o great_a detriment_n of_o all_o christian_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o much_o enemy_n unto_o this_o disease_n as_o be_v study_n and_o care_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o disquiet_v not_o only_o i_o but_o all_o that_o be_v true_a godly_a man_n howbeit_o since_o the_o case_n so_o stand_v it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o pray_v as_o earnest_o as_o we_o can_v that_o you_o may_v spéedilie_o be_v restore_v to_o your_o former_a health_n and_o it_o be_v your_o part_n with_o all_o diligence_n to_o forbear_v from_o all_o thing_n that_o may_v do_v you_o hurt_v especial_o from_o earnest_a study_n and_o care_n of_o weighty_a matter_n whereby_o the_o humour_n of_o melancholy_n from_o whence_o this_o fever_n be_v stir_v up_o be_v so_o force_a and_o strike_v as_o it_o settle_v even_o into_o the_o marrow_n of_o the_o bone_n very_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o since_o it_o have_v so_o seem_v good_a unto_o god_n you_o shall_v much_o rather_o quiet_v yourself_o for_o certain_a day_n or_o month_n than_o either_o to_o die_v which_o god_n forbid_v to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o the_o godly_a or_o else_o to_o the_o incredible_a hindrance_n of_o the_o church_n to_o live_v the_o rest_n of_o your_o life_n altogether_o with_o a_o feeble_a and_o consume_v body_n and_o mind_n wherefore_o take_v heed_n you_o offend_v not_o either_o against_o yourself_o or_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yesterday_o there_o come_v hither_o certain_a messenger_n send_v from_o the_o english_a gentleman_n which_o live_v at_o strasborough_n which_o do_v certify_v that_o their_o queen_n die_v the_o 16._o day_n of_o november_n marie_n the_o death_n of_o queen_n marie_n and_o that_o the_o most_o noble_a elizabeth_n be_v succéede_v in_o the_o kingdom_n &_o that_o with_o a_o full_a consent_n of_o all_o state_n for_o by_o chance_n they_o be_v gather_v together_o at_o this_o time_n from_o all_o the_o part_n of_o england_n to_o the_o assembly_n which_o they_o common_o call_v the_o parliament_n now_o must_v we_o desire_v god_n that_o this_o alteration_n of_o the_o state_n may_v turn_v happy_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a gospel_n i_o know_v that_o you_o and_o your_o godly_a church_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o do_v what_o in_o you_o lie_v perhaps_o the_o time_n be_v now_o wherein_o the_o wall_n of_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v build_v up_o again_o in_o that_o kingdom_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o martyr_n may_v seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v spend_v in_o vain_a other_o news_n than_o this_o i_o have_v not_o save_v that_o my_o book_n be_v under_o the_o press_n martyr_n gardiner_n book_n confute_v by_o peter_n martyr_n wherein_o i_o have_v discover_v and_o confute_v all_o the_o false_a argument_n and_o shift_n of_o stephen_n gardiner_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n touch_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o as_o i_o hope_v have_v happen_v in_o very_o good_a season_n for_o it_o will_v be_v profitable_a especial_o at_o this_o time_n that_o the_o english_a papist_n may_v understande_v that_o that_o book_n be_v not_o invincible_a as_o hitherto_o they_o have_v brag_v fare_v you_o well_o and_o long_o may_v you_o live_v unto_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o church_n i_o salute_v all_o the_o minister_n and_o also_o beza_n and_o the_o marquis_n from_o zuricke_n the_o first_o of_o december_n to_o a_o certain_a friend_n it_o be_v even_o in_o deed_n as_o you_o write_v right_o worthy_a man_n and_o dear_a belove_a friend_n in_o christ_n and_o i_o be_o every_o day_n teach_v more_o and_o more_o by_o experience_n itself_o that_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n of_o that_o most_o godly_a young_a man_n edward_n king_n of_o england_n belong_v unto_o many_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bring_v great_a harm_n than_o many_o do_v now_o perceive_v but_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n grant_v that_o within_o a_o while_n they_o feel_v it_o not_o to_o their_o great_a sorrow_n but_o i_o which_o after_o some_o sort_n have_v be_v partaker_n of_o these_o matter_n if_o i_o shall_v not_o bitter_o lament_v for_o the_o miserable_a case_n of_o our_o excellent_a brethren_n and_o for_o their_o most_o constant_a danger_n aswell_o of_o mind_n as_o of_o body_n and_o shall_v not_o every_o day_n shed_v just_a tear_n for_o the_o mishap_n of_o that_o people_n very_o i_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o stone_n and_o piece_n of_o lead_n while_o they_o be_v now_o grievous_o afflict_v lay_v open_a on_o every_o side_n to_o offence_n burn_v every_o hour_n with_o the_o fire_n of_o temptation_n while_o with_o extreme_a ungodliness_n of_o hypocrite_n that_o church_n be_v suppress_v and_o tread_v under_o foot_n how_o may_v it_o be_v that_o i_o and_o such_o as_o i_o be_o can_v sorrow_n temperate_o and_o moderate_o while_o i_o teach_v in_o that_o country_n there_o be_v very_o many_o learner_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o very_o towards_o scholar_n in_o divinity_n who_o harvest_n be_v welnéere_o ripe_a who_o now_o against_o their_o will_n i_o see_v either_o miserable_a wander_a in_o uncertain_a habitation_n or_o else_o most_o unhappilie_o subvert_v if_o they_o tarry_v there_o be_v in_o that_o kingdom_n a_o great_a sort_n of_o most_o sincere_a and_o learned_a bishop_n who_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o most_o straight_a prison_n even_o now_o ready_a to_o be_v pluck_v away_o as_o thief_n unto_o death_n in_o that_o nation_n be_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o a_o noble_a church_n and_o with_o a_o few_o year_n labour_v the_o holy_a building_n be_v in_o good_a forwardness_n and_o better_a and_o better_a be_v every_o day_n hope_v for_o but_o now_o final_o unless_o god_n put_v to_o his_o help_a hand_n it_o be_v like_a to_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o step_n of_o godliness_n in_o outward_a profession_n will_v be_v leave_v these_o and_o other_o thing_n suffer_v not_o my_o heart_n to_o be_v at_o rest_n nor_o my_o mind_n at_o quiet_a wherefore_o i_o beseech_v god_n with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o he_o will_v remit_v some_o part_n of_o the_o punishment_n and_o for_o jesus_n christ_n his_o sake_n will_v forbear_v to_o pour_v out_o his_o great_a wrath_n otherwise_o we_o shall_v be_v oppress_v with_o the_o heap_n of_o infinite_a evil_n and_o that_o which_o i_o do_v so_o earnest_o wish_v i_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o in_o like_a manner_n will_v desire_v of_o god_n that_o yet_o at_o the_o length_n he_o will_v take_v pity_n of_o afflict_a england_n which_o i_o very_o well_o know_v do_v before_o this_o calamity_n very_o much_o favour_v you_o and_o other_o godly_a man_n and_o good_a learning_n and_o whereas_o you_o admonish_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v here_o seek_v and_o maintain_v concord_n with_o they_o that_o teach_v i_o judge_v that_o you_o speak_v the_o same_o of_o love_n and_o good_a will_n and_o i_o assure_v you_o in_o deed_n that_o so_o much_o as_o in_o i_o lie_v peace_n and_o charity_n shall_v remain_v inviolate_a i_o have_v be_v always_o of_o mild_a nature_n and_o have_v very_o much_o love_v peace_n and_o tranquillity_n wherefore_o i_o mind_n not_o especial_o now_o in_o my_o old_a age_n to_o change_v my_o nature_n welnéere_o all_o the_o professor_n of_o good_a art_n and_o learning_n do_v make_v much_o of_o i_o and_o i_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v love_n they_o in_o the_o same_o wise_a do_v the_o case_n stand_v towards_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n save_v that_o i_o perceive_v some_o of_o they_o bear_v i_o not_o so_o good_a will_n yet_o nevertheless_o i_o cease_v not_o to_o have_v they_o in_o the_o same_o estimation_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o the_o holy_a
the_o apostle_n foot_n i_o confess_v even_o as_o you_o do_v that_o those_o garment_n be_v the_o devise_n of_o man_n and_o that_o of_o themselves_o they_o edify_v not_o but_o it_o will_v be_v think_v of_o some_o that_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o have_v they_o suffer_v for_o a_o time_n because_o this_o perhaps_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o these_o contention_n shall_v be_v avoid_v whereby_o great_a fruit_n and_o more_o ample_a commodity_n be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v hinder_v and_o leave_v as_o we_o see_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n shall_v straightway_o be_v turn_v from_o the_o gospel_n i_o pass_v over_o that_o they_o which_o defend_v these_o thing_n may_v pretend_v some_o honest_a and_o due_a signification_n not_o strange_a from_o the_o scripture_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v angel_n and_o messenger_n of_o god_n as_o malachi_n testify_v 1._o malac._n 3._o 1._o and_o angel_n have_v in_o a_o manner_n always_o show_v themselves_o clothe_v in_o white_a garment_n retain_v that_o not_o only_o the_o thing_n but_o the_o sign_n also_o be_v to_o be_v retain_v how_o can_v we_o deprive_v the_o church_n of_o this_o liberty_n that_o it_o may_v not_o signify_v some_o thing_n by_o her_o action_n and_o rite_n the_o same_o be_v do_v without_o place_v any_o worship_n of_o god_n therein_o modest_o and_o in_o few_o thing_n so_o as_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o burden_a with_o ceremony_n and_o that_o better_a thing_n be_v not_o let_v but_o you_o will_v say_v let_v they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v angel_n let_v they_o not_o signify_v it_o i_o hear_v what_o you_o say_v but_o the_o self_n same_o may_v have_v be_v answer_v unto_o paul_n 5_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 5_o when_o he_o decree_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n that_o the_o woman_n shall_v have_v her_o head_n cover_v and_o the_o man_n uncover_v for_o he_o only_o urge_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o signification_n for_o any_o man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n may_v have_v answer_v let_v the_o man_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o let_v the_o woman_n in_o her_o deed_n and_o life_n show_v herself_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o man_n let_v they_o not_o contend_v to_o show_v this_o by_o sign_n but_o the_o apostle_n see_v this_o also_o to_o be_v a_o profitable_a thing_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o live_v well_o but_o that_o also_o we_o shall_v by_o word_n and_o token_n be_v admonish_v of_o our_o duty_n but_o and_o if_o hereby_o there_o be_v give_v a_o occasion_n of_o error_n unto_o the_o weak_a let_v they_o be_v warn_v how_o they_o shall_v believe_v these_o indifferent_a thing_n let_v they_o be_v teach_v by_o sermon_n that_o they_o judge_v not_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n to_o consist_v herein_o but_o whether_o the_o eye_n of_o they_o that_o stand_v by_o be_v withdraw_v through_o the_o diversity_n of_o garment_n from_o the_o cogitation_n of_o weighty_a matter_n perhaps_o all_o man_n will_v not_o judge_v it_o so_o to_o be_v for_o first_o our_o adversary_n may_v answer_v that_o this_o will_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v if_o those_o garment_n which_o have_v be_v use_v be_v without_o excess_n and_o be_v very_o plain_a and_o such_o as_o have_v be_v hitherto_o use_v about_o holy_a service_n for_o use_v and_o cheapenesse_n take_v away_o admiration_n yea_o and_o perhaps_o they_o will_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o they_o be_v thorough_o move_v by_o that_o admiration_n will_v the_o more_o attentive_o think_v upon_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v earnest_a unto_o which_o end_n the_o sign_n of_o the_o sacrament_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v devise_v that_o even_o by_o the_o very_a sight_n and_o sense_n we_o may_v be_v ravish_v to_o think_v of_o divine_a thing_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o tyranny_n be_v straight_o way_n bring_v in_o if_o any_o indifferent_a thing_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v constant_o keep_v of_o many_o at_o this_o day_n we_o so_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o morning_n time_n as_o in_o the_o after_o noon_n we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o communion_n in_o the_o church_n but_o who_o will_v say_v that_o this_o be_v tyrannical_a because_o we_o do_v it_o with_o the_o like_a will_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o man_n undoubted_o it_o will_v like_v i_o best_o as_o i_o have_v always_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v do_v only_o that_o which_o christ_n do_v and_o deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n but_o yet_o if_o any_o thing_n indifferent_a be_v add_v i_o will_v not_o now_o therefore_o sharpelie_o contend_v especial_o see_v we_o perceive_v that_o they_o by_o who_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v great_o advance_v in_o england_n and_o may_v yet_o be_v advance_v more_o be_v against_o us._n i_o acknowledge_v indeed_o with_o you_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n 23._o ro._n 14._o 23._o be_v sin_n but_o yet_o that_o in_o our_o action_n we_o may_v have_v a_o quiet_a conscience_n that_o seem_v special_o to_o further_a which_o in_o the_o apostle_n be_v write_v unto_o titus_n unto_o the_o clean_a all_o thing_n be_v clean_o 44_o titus_n 1._o 15_o 1._o tim._n 44_o and_o unto_o timothy_n every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o particular_a thing_n which_o we_o use_v this_o general_o be_v enough_o to_o know_v by_o faith_n that_o thing_n indifferent_a can_v defile_v they_o which_o live_v with_o a_o pure_a &_o sincere_a mind_n and_o conscience_n these_o thing_n have_v i_o short_o abridge_v as_o touch_v the_o controversy_n which_o you_o propound_v unto_o i_o out_o of_o which_o i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o you_o may_v happy_o unwind_v yourself_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v write_v i_o pray_v you_o to_o take_v in_o good_a part_n for_o if_o i_o can_v have_v write_v either_o better_a or_o more_o plain_o perhaps_o i_o may_v more_o have_v satisfy_v your_o request_n howbeit_o because_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o all_o man_n to_o writ_n apt_o and_o ready_o hereof_o you_o must_v pardon_v i_o further_o you_o shall_v find_v i_o always_o ready_a to_o give_v place_n unto_o the_o truth_n if_o i_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o persuade_v neither_o be_o i_o late_o persuade_v in_o my_o mind_n of_o this_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v now_o declare_v but_o i_o judge_v even_o from_o the_o first_o that_o i_o apply_v my_o mind_n unto_o the_o gospel_n that_o these_o diversity_n of_o garment_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v but_o yet_o think_v that_o the_o use_n of_o they_o if_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v remain_v sound_a be_v neither_o ungodlie_a nor_o pernicious_a of_o themselves_o or_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n i_o beseech_v almighty_a god_n preserve_v you_o safe_a and_o sound_o with_o all_o your_o household_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n my_o wife_n and_o i_o salute_v you_o hearty_o and_o your_o good_a wife_n fare_v you_o well_o from_o oxford_n the_o 4._o of_o november_n 1550._o as_o touch_v divorce_n i_o do_v not_o write_v unto_o you_o partly_o because_o you_o yourself_o differ_v the_o matter_n unto_o a_o other_o time_n and_o partly_o because_o i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o you_o understande_v of_o what_o mind_n i_o be_o together_o with_o the_o church_n of_o strasborough_n and_o all_o other_o brethren_n in_o christ_n to_o a_o certain_a friend_n of_o he_o into_o england_n 38._o my_o good_a friend_n i_o see_v in_o your_o letter_n you_o be_v afraid_a on_o both_o side_n for_o if_o you_o reject_v the_o ministry_n you_o seem_v to_o break_v off_o a_o occasion_n of_o well_o do_v but_o if_o you_o shall_v take_v upon_o you_o the_o function_n offer_v you_o justly_o and_o for_o good_a cause_n fear_v least_o you_o shall_v seem_v to_o agree_v unto_o those_o ordinance_n which_o not_o only_o diminish_v and_o deface_v the_o pure_a worship_v of_o god_n but_o do_v also_o corrupt_v it_o and_o maruellouslie_o make_v it_o to_o decay_n although_o that_o unto_o man_n which_o be_v not_o well_o conform_v towards_o the_o gospel_n they_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v but_o small_a weight_n and_o importance_n for_o they_o account_v all_o thing_n as_o indifferent_a crucifix_n of_o garment_n in_o the_o divine_a service_n and_o of_o the_o crucifix_n howbeit_o a_o man_n that_o be_v somewhat_o better_o instruct_v in_o religion_n see_v you_o be_v a_o messenger_n of_o christ_n a_o &_o earnest_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v apparel_v with_o garment_n at_o the_o altar_n to_o pray_v before_o the_o image_n of_o the_o crucifix_n to_o recite_v holy_a word_n and_o to_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n will_v he_o not_o
the_o mean_a time_n they_o shall_v not_o for_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n break_v brotherlie_a charity_n nor_o call_v one_o another_o heretic_n the_o counsel_n which_o i_o give_v she_o very_o much_o allow_v i_o add_v further_o but_o for_o because_o the_o church_n man_n as_o it_o manifest_o appear_v be_v only_o for_o this_o cause_n against_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v uphold_v riches_n and_o defend_v their_o power_n your_o majesty_n may_v make_v they_o certain_a and_o sure_a that_o all_o thing_n shall_v remain_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o in_o peaceable_a possession_n during_o their_o life_n of_o this_o if_o they_o can_v persuade_v themselves_o they_o will_v become_v much_o more_o tractable_a and_o this_o she_o also_o allow_v when_o these_o thing_n be_v say_v she_o go_v to_o the_o fire_n side_n where_o beza_n be_v with_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o condie_n &_o the_o admyrall_a and_o she_o pray_v he_o together_o with_o i_o to_o apply_v all_o our_o iudevour_n and_o diligence_n that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a there_o may_v be_v make_v a_o agreement_n which_o thing_n we_o promise_v to_o do_v so_o far_o as_o shall_v be_v lawful_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n some_o of_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v of_o the_o better_a judgement_n will_v have_v we_o to_o agree_v to_o the_o consubstantiation_n of_o luther_n and_o brentius_n we_o deny_v that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v and_o herein_o do_v we_o constant_o persist_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n &_o not_o elsewhere_o but_o we_o do_v grant_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a supper_n the_o godly_a communicant_n do_v receive_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o yet_o by_o faith_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o the_o distance_n of_o place_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o conjunction_n itself_o see_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n altogether_o spiritual_a they_o say_v moreover_o that_o they_o wish_v that_o the_o same_o consubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v speak_v of_o when_o we_o shall_v confer_v together_o there_o we_o say_v that_o if_o they_o will_v urge_v it_o we_o will_v not_o hold_v our_o peace_n they_o say_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v urge_v and_o they_o think_v that_o this_o article_n will_v easy_o be_v leave_v free_a unto_o the_o church_n what_o will_v follow_v i_o know_v not_o the_o day_n be_v not_o yet_o set_v down_o nor_o the_o collocutor_n appoint_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n our_o ambassador_n behave_v himself_o very_o curteouslie_o towards_o we_o he_o salute_v i_o and_o oftentimes_o come_v to_o seem_v and_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o our_o horse_n be_v not_o here_o well_o use_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o incredible_a multitude_n of_o horse_n and_o in_o a_o manner_n the_o infinite_a covetousness_n of_o the_o host_n he_o mean_v to_o have_v they_o bring_v to_o his_o own_o house_n out_o of_o paris_n where_o he_o have_v his_o own_o horse_n there_o they_o shall_v be_v no_o less_o well_o and_o diligent_o look_v unto_o than_o his_o own_o true_o he_o pretend_v great_a courtesy_n unto_o our_o senate_n assist_v we_o as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v with_o your_o prayer_n beza_n together_o with_o the_o other_o brethren_n do_v hearty_o salute_v you_o and_o the_o residue_n of_o our_o fellow_n minister_n which_o thing_n also_o do_v my_o julius_n and_o stuccius_n and_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o salute_v in_o my_o name_n every_o one_o of_o you_o and_o also_o my_o very_a dear_a brethren_n and_o fellow_n minister_n since_o i_o do_v write_v somewhat_o brief_o unto_o our_o most_o honourable_a magistrate_n you_o may_v by_o your_o wisdom_n supply_n with_o your_o advertisment_n those_o thing_n that_o you_o shall_v think_v good_a farewell_n right_a reverend_a and_o most_o dear_a gossip_n the_o 19_o of_o september_n 1561._o in_o s._n germane_a now_o be_v come_v the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n in_o most_o great_a pomp_n among_o other_o he_o have_v bring_v with_o he_o as_o they_o brag_v most_o learned_a man_n who_o have_v determine_v in_o this_o disputation_n to_o devour_v we_o like_o a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n among_o they_o be_v paulus_n sadoletus_n bishop_n of_o carpenthoratum_n there_o be_v also_o a_o greek_a bishop_n who_o they_o affirm_v to_o be_v a_o most_o learned_a man_n in_o that_o tongue_n and_o in_o the_o greek_a father_n there_o be_v also_o a_o dominican_n friar_n be_v a_o principal_a rabbin_z of_o the_o school_n divinity_n the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n i_o know_v not_o save_v that_o they_o boast_v that_o there_o be_v also_o in_o his_o company_n a_o great_a captain_n of_o the_o jesuite_n pray_v you_o that_o god_n who_o be_v a_o mighty_a man_n of_o war_n will_v vouchsafe_v of_o his_o divine_a power_n to_o scatter_v this_o main_a battle_n of_o the_o roman_a goliath_n to_o the_o same_o man_n 54._o unto_o your_o letter_n right_o excellent_a man_n and_o most_o love_a gossip_n which_o i_o receive_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o my_o l._n ambassador_n i_o answer_v somewhat_o slow_o because_o i_o can_v not_o before_o have_v any_o carrier_n but_o now_o will_v i_o have_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o we_o be_v all_o in_o good_a health_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o matter_n the_o 24._o day_n of_o december_n i_o come_v to_o poyssi_n there_o beza_n in_o many_o thing_n confute_v the_o cardinal_n oration_n first_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o church_n and_o show_v that_o we_o affirm_v it_o not_o to_o be_v invisible_a as_o we_o be_v accuse_v moreover_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o church_n be_v handle_v and_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o because_o the_o cardinal_n have_v lay_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o our_o ministry_n that_o we_o have_v no_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o just_a succession_n many_o thing_n be_v bring_v of_o that_o matter_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o eucharist_n say_v beza_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o deed_n true_o eat_v but_o yet_o spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n further_o it_o be_v declare_v out_o of_o the_o say_n of_o augustine_n that_o counsel_n may_v err_v the_o cardinal_n stand_v much_o and_o in_o a_o manner_n whole_o upon_o the_o write_a word_n and_o unwritten_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o as_o touch_v the_o article_n of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o protest_v he_o will_v no_o further_o proceed_v to_o deal_v with_o we_o unless_o we_o will_v agree_v together_o with_o he_o as_o touch_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o do_v he_o cease_v to_o obtrude_v unto_o we_o the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n albeit_o that_o he_o and_o his_o sort_n do_v mislike_v of_o the_o same_o wherefore_o our_o man_n demand_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o himself_o will_v receive_v the_o same_o he_o say_v no_o but_o that_o he_o will_v stand_v unto_o it_o as_o touch_v the_o article_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n then_o be_v lay_v forth_o a_o just_a complaint_n &_o expostulation_n that_o they_o will_v drive_v we_o unto_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o themselves_o will_v not_o undertake_v but_o the_o confession_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o affirm_v be_v send_v he_o by_o certain_a prince_n of_o germany_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o gather_v this_o brief_a sentence_n that_o in_o the_o most_o excellent_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v present_a the_o flesh_n of_o the_o lord_n corporal_o substantial_o and_o real_o and_o so_o it_o be_v give_v and_o receive_v and_o he_o will_v we_o that_o either_o we_o shall_v assent_v thereunto_o or_o else_o that_o we_o shall_v proceed_v to_o confer_v no_o further_o but_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o this_o may_v not_o be_v do_v this_o imperious_a speech_n of_o the_o cardinal_n both_o the_o queen_n the_o prince_n of_o condie_n and_o the_o admiral_n take_v in_o ill_a part_n for_o they_o see_v that_o they_o delay_v the_o conference_n and_o that_o they_o seek_v a_o ready_a occasion_n to_o have_v it_o break_v off_o &_o therefore_o mean_v to_o begin_v with_o this_o article_n wherein_o they_o know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o we_o will_v not_o agree_v with_o they_o also_o beza_n complain_v that_o they_o will_v with_o that_o article_n begin_v the_o conference_n appoint_v the_o cardinal_n thereunto_o answer_v that_o for_o good_a cause_n it_o be_v so_o do_v see_v he_o in_o his_o first_o oration_n cast_v the_o first_o stone_n of_o offence_n say_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v more_o distant_a from_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n than_o heaven_n be_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o therefore_o he_o will_v with_o all_o speed_n that_o the_o people_n and_o flock_n commit_v unto_o he_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o such_o a_o cogitation_n all_o these_o
very_o great_a thanks_n and_o i_o answer_v that_o as_o the_o cause_n stand_v i_o be_o not_o now_o mind_v to_o labour_n or_o seek_v for_o the_o same_o have_v thanks_n be_v to_o god_n food_n and_o clothing_n competent_a enough_o wherewith_o i_o content_v my_o and_z seek_v for_o nothing_o else_o but_o when_o it_o shall_v happen_v otherwise_o i_o will_v not_o refuse_v your_o honour_n help_v to_o who_o i_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v injury_n if_o i_o shall_v change_v you_o for_o a_o other_o since_o you_o give_v a_o very_a manifest_a testimony_n that_o you_o love_v i_o exceed_v much_o aswell_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n sake_n as_o for_o the_o affection_n that_o i_o have_v always_o bear_v to_o that_o godly_a and_o glorious_a kingdom_n whereupon_o i_o rejoice_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o the_o cause_n so_o stand_v with_o the_o same_o as_o it_o now_o do_v for_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v that_o the_o love_n thereof_o towards_o i_o will_v grow_v every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o see_v the_o good_a will_n that_o i_o bear_v to_o the_o english_a nation_n do_v continual_o wax_v great_a &_o great_a now_o as_o touch_v leave_n to_o see_v you_o again_o safe_a and_o sound_o in_o person_n for_o the_o commodity_n as_o you_o write_v both_o of_o your_o country_n and_o my_o own_o comfort_n i_o be_o very_o sorry_a that_o i_o can_v answer_v you_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o may_v satisfy_v both_o you_o and_o myself_o true_o if_o i_o may_v have_v my_o own_o will_v i_o will_v no_o less_o serve_v the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o before_o time_n i_o have_v do_v howbeit_o neither_o my_o age_n nor_o the_o strength_n of_o my_o body_n will_v any_o long_o endure_v the_o same_o be_v not_o able_a to_o endure_v a_o voyage_n so_o long_o so_o diverse_a and_o not_o altogether_o easy_a wherein_o also_o for_o one_o of_o my_o age_n and_o féeblenesse_n there_o be_v many_o danger_n and_o the_o labour_n there_o will_v be_v more_o gréevous_a unto_o i_o than_o those_o that_o we_o have_v here_o wherefore_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o i_o become_v not_o unprofitable_a both_o unto_o you_o and_o also_o to_o they_o that_o be_v here_o it_o seem_v better_a for_o i_o that_o i_o remain_v where_o i_o be_o and_o this_o do_v not_o only_o i_o judge_v but_o so_o likewise_o do_v the_o magistrate_n together_o with_o the_o minister_n of_o this_o church_n who_o otherwise_o will_v be_v most_o ready_a to_o pleasure_v your_o excellent_a lordship_n as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o their_o power_n especial_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o the_o spread_a and_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n nevertheless_o my_o good_a lord_n wheresoever_o i_o shall_v be_v i_o be_o ready_a at_o your_o commandment_n and_o to_o do_v you_o any_o service_n desire_v you_o that_o for_o god_n cause_n you_o will_v continual_o grow_v up_o in_o all_o goodness_n especial_o in_o the_o endeavour_n of_o confirm_v and_o enlarge_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god._n final_o if_o as_o you_o write_v unto_o i_o you_o have_v be_v great_o satisfy_v by_o my_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n julius_n thereby_o do_v i_o receive_v very_o great_a comfort_n for_o i_o love_v he_o very_o much_o as_o i_o do_v both_o for_o the_o zeal_n that_o he_o have_v unto_o godliness_n and_o sound_a religion_n and_o also_o for_o other_o good_a part_n that_o be_v in_o he_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a contentation_n unto_o i_o than_o to_o see_v he_o well_o accept_v of_o such_o a_o one_o as_o your_o honour_n be_v who_o service_n i_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o recompense_v you_o in_o some_o part_n may_v help_v he_o when_o need_n shall_v require_v again_o if_o as_o you_o write_v you_o accept_v well_o of_o his_o friendship_n undoubted_o to_o serve_v you_o will_v always_o be_v most_o acceptable_a unto_o he_o the_o lord_n god_n long_o preserve_v you_o in_o health_n to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o commonweal_n from_o zuricke_n 1561._o the_o end_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o god_n alone_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o honour_n praise_n glory_n and_o dominion_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n a_o oration_n wherein_o be_v set_v forth_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o the_o most_o famous_a man_n and_o excellent_a divine_a d._n peter_n martyr_n vermillius_fw-la professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o school_n of_o tygure_n make_v there_o by_o josias_n simlerus_n one_o of_o zuricke_n to_o the_o reverend_n father_n in_o christ_n john_n jewel_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n his_o very_a good_a lord_n whereas_o late_o at_o the_o death_n of_o that_o most_o godly_a and_o grave_a divine_a p._n martyr_n vermillius_fw-la i_o make_v a_o oration_n open_o in_o our_o school_n wherein_o i_o comprehend_v brief_o the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n many_o of_o peter_n martyr_n friend_n and_o my_o desire_a of_o i_o that_o i_o will_v recognise_v the_o same_o and_o augment_v it_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o so_o to_o put_v forth_o the_o same_o into_o light_n which_o thing_n i_o can_v not_o deny_v they_o aswell_o for_o their_o love_n towards_o i_o as_o also_o for_o other_o great_a cause_n for_o albeit_o that_o my_o oration_n be_v not_o so_o well_o furnish_v and_o compose_v as_o it_o can_v extol_v martyr_n with_o deserve_a praise_n yet_o do_v i_o think_v that_o the_o same_o for_o the_o true_a and_o sincere_a commemoration_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o wilnot_v be_v altogether_o unwelcome_a unto_o such_o as_o bare_a good_a will_n unto_o peter_n martyr_n for_o i_o have_v declare_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o either_o i_o myself_o have_v see_v or_o have_v learn_v of_o witness_n worthy_a of_o credit_n for_o i_o have_v indevor_v earnest_o herein_o to_o know_v even_o as_o perfect_o as_o may_v be_v all_o the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n of_o those_o which_o be_v conversant_a with_o he_o wherein_o i_o be_v holpen_v by_o other_o but_o especial_o of_o julius_n terentianus_n who_o both_o be_v martyr_n scholar_n in_o italy_n and_o in_o his_o banishment_n and_o all_o his_o peregrination_n can_v never_o be_v separate_v from_o he_o until_o his_o death_n many_o thing_n also_o do_v i_o understand_v by_o diverse_a of_o martyr_n own_o writing_n and_o by_o his_o letter_n unto_o his_o friend_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o his_o friend_n unto_o he_o the_o which_o i_o diligent_o peruse_v and_o by_o the_o good_a will_n and_o request_n of_o his_o heir_n gather_v they_o into_o order_n wherefore_o this_o oration_n of_o i_o such_o as_o it_o be_v for_o i_o know_v well_o and_o confess_v willing_o that_o all_o my_o work_n be_v but_o slender_a and_o bare_a i_o think_v good_a to_o send_v unto_o you_o reverend_a father_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v pass_v forth_o open_o under_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o honourable_a name_n for_o since_o you_o both_o love_v and_o honour_a martyr_n while_o he_o live_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o he_o will_v be_v to_o your_o joy_n and_o like_n and_o i_o judge_v that_o the_o incredible_a sorrow_n which_o i_o think_v you_o have_v take_v for_o his_o death_n can_v be_v better_a relive_v by_o any_o mean_n than_o by_o the_o continual_a memory_n and_o consideration_n of_o the_o divine_a virtue_n which_o shine_v in_o he_o and_o because_o the_o life_n of_o martyr_n be_v through_o well_o see_v and_o know_v unto_o you_o you_o may_v very_o well_o also_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o my_o discourse_n you_o live_v in_o england_n with_o he_o under_o king_n edward_n of_o happy_a and_o godly_a memory_n but_o the_o state_n be_v change_v when_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o imminent_a peril_n and_o the_o persecution_n which_o then_o wax_v hot_a many_o good_a man_n go_v out_o of_o their_o country_n you_o in_o your_o banishment_n arrive_v again_o at_o your_o martyr_n as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o certain_a port_n of_o your_o study_n and_o so_o live_v with_o he_o both_o first_o at_o strasborough_n and_o then_o after_o with_o we_o at_o zuricke_n and_o be_v a_o perpetual_a companion_n and_o assistant_n of_o his_o study_n and_o labour_n which_o be_v very_o great_a and_o now_o after_o that_o by_o the_o singular_a benefit_n of_o god_n through_o the_o endeavour_n good_a will_n and_o diligence_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a queen_n elizabeth_n the_o true_a religion_n begin_v to_o be_v perfect_o restore_v amongst_o you_o and_o that_o you_o together_o with_o many_o other_o godly_a and_o learned_a man_n be_v restore_v to_o your_o country_n and_o that_o you_o be_v advance_v to_o great_a honour_n according_a as_o your_o excellent_a virtue_n deserve_v you_o be_v absent_a do_v always_o through_o continual_a letter_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o duty_n careful_o and_o diligent_o maintain_v your_o ancient_a friendship_n
in_o he_o a_o great_a promptness_n of_o wit_n in_o perceive_v and_o understand_v and_o so_o great_a a_o force_n of_o memory_n in_o retain_v as_o he_o can_v both_o comprehend_v and_o keep_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v learned_a moreover_o he_o have_v so_o fervent_a a_o desire_n of_o learning_n as_o there_o never_o appear_v to_o be_v in_o he_o any_o weariness_n of_o hear_v or_o read_v over_o this_o shamefastness_n which_o do_v great_o commend_v that_o age_n be_v always_o wonder_a in_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o both_o honour_a ancient_a man_n as_o parent_n and_o albeit_o he_o excel_v most_o of_o his_o equal_n in_o wit_n yet_o he_o so_o love_v they_o and_o by_o his_o modesty_n so_o win_v they_o unto_o he_o that_o there_o arise_v no_o manner_n of_o emulation_n at_o all_o among_o they_o yea_o and_o those_o who_o the_o conversation_n and_o familiarity_n of_o childhood_n have_v join_v unto_o he_o he_o hold_v always_o most_o friendly_a during_o the_o time_n that_o he_o live_v in_o his_o country_n and_o in_o italy_n and_o now_o because_o in_o the_o dangerous_a time_n of_o his_o youth_n he_o be_v mind_v not_o only_o for_o the_o present_a time_n to_o temper_v himself_o from_o the_o allurement_n of_o pleasure_n which_o a_o rich_a and_o abundant_a city_n do_v minister_v but_o also_o to_o avoid_v they_o in_o the_o time_n to_o come_v he_o abandon_v all_o delight_n determine_v to_o give_v himself_o to_o a_o monastical_a life_n which_o then_o alone_o be_v count_v holy_a and_o because_o in_o that_o age_n the_o household_n of_o the_o regular_a canon_n of_o s._n augustine_n bear_v the_o chief_a name_n throughout_o all_o italy_n for_o that_o they_o use_v a_o more_o severe_a discipline_n than_o other_o monk_n and_o do_v more_o diligent_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o think_v it_o good_a to_o join_v himself_o unto_o that_o society_n wherefore_o in_o the_o 16._o year_n of_o his_o age_n he_o be_v choose_v into_o the_o fesulane_n college_n which_o be_v build_v in_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o old_a city_n of_o fesula_n a_o stone_n cast_v from_o florence_n with_o a_o full_a consent_n and_o rejoice_n of_o the_o fellow_n of_o that_o college_n unto_o who_o the_o excellent_a disposition_n of_o his_o nature_n be_v know_v also_o his_o sister_n felicitas_n follow_v the_o intent_n of_o her_o brother_n and_o be_v make_v a_o sister_n of_o those_o virgin_n which_o inhabit_v the_o monastery_n of_o saint_n peter_n the_o martyr_n this_o fact_n of_o they_o both_o be_v mislike_v &_o grievous_a unto_o the_o father_n either_o because_o he_o will_v have_v the_o vermilian_n family_n wherein_o beside_o themselves_o there_o be_v none_o remain_v alive_a to_o be_v increase_v by_o his_o son_n through_o the_o marriage_n of_o a_o wife_n or_o else_o for_o that_o the_o grave_a man_n mislike_v the_o superstition_n of_o the_o common_a sort_n and_o the_o feign_a holiness_n of_o the_o monk_n for_o now_o a_o great_a while_n since_o dant_fw-la and_o petrarch_n have_v reprehend_v many_o abuse_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n be_v do_v a_o few_o year_n since_o by_o hieronymus_n savonarola_n who_o sermon_n no_o doubt_n but_o the_o elder_a vermilius_n have_v hear_v and_o that_o undoubted_o the_o monastical_a life_n be_v not_o altogether_o allow_v by_o he_o we_o thereby_o gather_v that_o that_o ready_a money_n which_o he_o have_v he_o bequeath_v by_o testament_n to_o the_o next_o wise_n which_o he_o have_v after_o the_o death_n of_o fumantina_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o good_n he_o will_v to_o be_v give_v to_o a_o hospital_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o poor_a upon_o this_o condition_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v pay_v year_o to_o his_o son_n so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v 50_o crown_n which_o we_o name_v to_o be_v of_o the_o shield_n mark_n and_o whereas_o his_o child_n lead_v their_o life_n in_o monastery_n yet_o choose_v he_o rather_o to_o dispose_v his_o good_n to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o poor_a than_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v spend_v upon_o idle_a monk_n who_o shall_v mumble_v up_o certain_a prayer_n they_o know_v not_o what_o but_o whatsoever_o his_o mind_n be_v in_o this_o matter_n the_o earnest_a desire_n which_o as_o it_o be_v think_v the_o son_n have_v to_o obey_v god_n overcome_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n very_o i_o think_v there_o be_v many_o which_o think_v that_o this_o his_o determination_n of_o enter_v into_o a_o monastical_a life_n be_v to_o be_v reproove_v and_o these_o shall_v have_v not_o only_o i_o to_o agree_v with_o they_o but_o even_o himself_o which_o follow_v this_o course_n for_o this_o act_n displease_v no_o man_n so_o much_o as_o it_o do_v himself_o who_o so_o soon_o as_o ever_o he_o perceive_v his_o error_n he_o also_o correct_v the_o same_o albeit_o if_o we_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o condition_n of_o time_n his_o judgement_n indeed_o may_v be_v blame_v but_o his_o will_n deserve_v praise_n for_o in_o that_o superstitious_a and_o unprofitable_a life_n of_o the_o monk_n there_o be_v yet_o in_o old_a time_n many_o thing_n which_o allure_v thereto_o a_o mind_n desirous_a of_o godliness_n and_o learning_n first_o the_o great_a name_n of_o most_o godly_a man_n which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v monk_n to_o wit_n basil_n nazianzene_n chrysostome_n epiphanius_n jerom_n augustine_n &_o other_o who_o life_n who_o desire_v not_o to_o imitate_v &_o to_o tread_v in_o their_o step_n and_o again_o the_o name_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o holiness_n which_o be_v common_o spread_v among_o all_o man_n a_o false_a opinion_n i_o confess_v but_o who_o can_v then_o have_v see_v this_o in_o so_o great_a darkness_n and_o who_o if_o he_o have_v see_v it_o dare_v have_v reproove_v it_o of_o falsehood_n all_o man_n be_v of_o a_o other_o mind_n especial_o a_o young_a man_n who_o otherwise_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v but_o of_o weak_a judgement_n herewithal_o add_v those_o thing_n which_o most_o of_o all_o draw_v martyr_n to_o this_o kind_n of_o life_n namely_o vocation_n not_o such_o as_o be_v idle_a but_o give_v to_o study_n and_o further_o a_o great_a abundance_n of_o excellent_a book_n for_o even_o the_o most_o of_o the_o college_n of_o this_o family_n have_v notable_a library_n but_o especial_o the_o college_n of_o fesula_n for_o this_o do_v the_o ancient_a name_n of_o medicies_n build_v who_o with_o their_o great_a charge_n gather_v book_n not_o only_o out_o of_o italy_n but_o also_o out_o of_o greece_n asia_n and_o egypt_n and_o adorn_v the_o house_n with_o a_o excellent_a library_n through_o which_o abundance_n of_o book_n since_o our_o martyr_n be_v as_o it_o be_v allure_v unto_o monastical_a life_n together_o with_o a_o opinion_n of_o worship_v god_n we_o remit_v the_o error_n of_o his_o judgement_n unto_o those_o time_n but_o we_o commend_v his_o will_n namely_o that_o he_o will_v immediate_o from_o his_o childhood_n pass_v his_o life_n in_o the_o study_n of_o good_a literature_n in_o this_o college_n he_o live_v three_o year_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o fellow_n of_o that_o college_n allow_v his_o modesty_n like_v the_o gentleness_n of_o his_o behaviour_n and_o his_o desire_n of_o concord_n but_o his_o wit_n they_o praise_v and_o woonder_v at_o in_o those_o day_n he_o exercise_v himself_o not_o only_o in_o the_o precept_n of_o learning_n the_o art_n which_o be_v diligent_o teach_v to_o the_o young_a fellow_n in_o this_o fellowship_n but_o also_o in_o the_o reading_z of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o it_o be_v a_o laudable_a custom_n of_o this_o society_n that_o the_o young_a man_n which_o excel_v in_o memory_n shall_v accustom_v themselves_o to_o commit_v unto_o their_o memory_n many_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o therefore_o some_o recite_v by_o heart_n all_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n other_o the_o book_n of_o the_o preverbe_n of_o solomon_n some_o the_o history_n of_o tobias_n or_o some_o other_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n when_o martyr_n have_v finish_v three_o year_n in_o this_o discipline_n he_o make_v such_o proof_n of_o his_o learning_n and_o diligence_n to_o the_o fellow_n of_o his_o college_n as_o they_o a_o i_o judge_v he_o meet_v to_o be_v send_v unto_o more_o excellent_a teacher_n wherefore_o he_o be_v send_v to_o padwaie_o that_o in_o the_o famous_a university_n of_o that_o city_n he_o may_v have_v a_o great_a exercise_n of_o his_o wit_n and_o there_o in_o that_o city_n be_v the_o monastery_n of_o s._n john_n of_o verdara_n of_o the_o same_o society_n of_o regular_n canon_n wherein_o he_o live_v wellnear_o eight_o year_n with_o albertus_n the_o abbot_n a_o man_n not_o unlearned_a and_o who_o glad_o further_v other_o man_n study_n wherefore_o at_o that_o time_n martyr_n whole_o addict_v himself_o to_o the_o study_n of_o philosophy_n and_o
belief_n ought_v to_o be_v prove_v 3_o 233_o b_o whether_o purgatory_n be_v a_o article_n thereof_o 3_o 243_o b_o we_o must_v not_o speak_v doubtful_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 234a_n who_o have_v no_o true_a and_o certain_a belief_n 3_o 105_o b_o whether_o the_o true_a and_o right_a belief_n be_v to_o be_v yield_v to_o the_o persecuter_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 33_o b_o ¶_o look_v faith_n believe_v what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v 2_o 612_o a_o 3_o 69_o b_o 70_o a_o 92_o a_o of_o such_o as_o believe_v but_o for_o a_o time_n 3_o 64_o a_o how_o he_o which_o do_v believe_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n 3_o 63_o b_o what_o the_o turk_n believe_v together_o with_o us._n 3_o 73_o b_o whether_o to_o believe_v only_o suffice_v to_o the_o obtain_n of_o adoption_n 3_o 73_o a_o to_o believe_v well_o have_v two_o extremity_n 3_o 388_o a_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o the_o devil_n do_v believe_v 3_o 62_o b_o whether_o we_o must_v believe_v with_o judgement_n or_o without_o judgement_n 3_o 63_o a_o admonition_n to_o such_o as_o believe_v 3_o 63_o b_o whether_o we_o shall_v believe_v miracle_n 3_o 62_o b_o these_o sign_n shall_v follow_v they_o that_o believe_v &c_n &c_n expound_v 4_o 130b_n a_o analogy_n between_o the_o two_o word_n to_o believe_v and_o to_o justify_v 3_o 89_o b_o 90_o a_o believer_n how_o believer_n may_v have_v power_n to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 3_o 73_o a_o the_o difference_n of_o believer_n and_o unbeléever_n depend_v of_o call_v 3_o 18_o b_o place_n do_v not_o separate_v believer_n 4_o 2_o b_o ¶_o look_v faithful_n and_o regenerate_v bell_n how_o much_o the_o papist_n attribute_v unto_o bell_n 4_o 126_o a_o baptize_v 4_o 125_o b_o benefit_n what_o be_v the_o high_a benefit_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n 2_o 596_o a_o benefit_n that_o the_o benefit_n which_o we_o receive_v of_o man_n do_v come_v from_o god_n 2_o 524_o a_o the_o heap_n of_o they_o do_v add_v more_o weight_n unto_o sin_n 2_o 554_o a_o four_o degree_n of_o man_n who_o in_o bestow_v thereof_o have_v diverse_a respect_n 2_o 523_o b_o two_o kind_n of_o they_o from_o god_n some_o principal_n and_o othersome_a common_a 2_o 524_o a.b_fw-mi certain_a tend_v to_o their_o destruction_n that_o have_v they_o 2_o 596_o a_o whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v withdraw_v from_o the_o unthankful_a 2_o 524_o a.b_fw-la god_n common_a benfite_n be_v extend_v both_o to_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a 3_o 30_o b_o bi._n birth_n of_o nobleness_n and_o baseness_n of_o birth_n 4_o 3●…_n b_o 312._o 313._o ¶_o look_v kindred_n and_o nobility_n birthday_n of_o celebrate_v a_o man_n birthday_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a 2_o 377_o a_o the_o profane_a solemnity_n that_o herod_n use_v in_o the_o celebrate_n of_o his_o birthday_n 2_o 377_o a_o bishop_n what_o he_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n shall_v consider_v 4_o 10_o b_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o must_v be_v no_o smiter_n 4_o 265_o a_o none_o may_v be_v call_v universal_a 4_o 80_o a_o 36_o b_o his_o house_n have_v the_o power_n of_o a_o sanctuary_n 4_o 268_o b_o whether_o he_o may_v depose_v a_o king_n in_o a_o case_n of_o offence_n 4_o 232_o a.b_fw-la when_o one_o alone_o may_v excommunicate_v 4_o 61_o a_o ambrose_n choose_a bishop_n of_o milan_n when_o he_o be_v a_o novice_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o why_o 1_n 98_o a.b_fw-la bishop_n of_o what_o thing_n bishop_n ought_v to_o have_v a_o care_n 4_o 231_o b_o whether_o they_o may_v make_v law_n 4_o 41_o b_o 42_o ab_fw-la they_o and_o counsel_n do_v err_v 4_o 72_o b_o 73_o a_o their_o office_n and_o charge_n 4_o 79_o a_o they_o be_v to_o choose_v minister_n 4_o 36_o b_o they_o have_v oftentimes_o erce_v in_o doctrine_n and_o why_o 4_o 4_o a_o why_o king_n be_v consecrate_v by_o they_o 4_o 236_o b_o in_o election_n of_o they_o what_o be_v to_o be_v respect_v 4_o 40_o a.b_fw-mi what_o be_v signify_v by_o anoint_v of_o their_o head_n 4_o 15_o a_o whether_o they_o or_o king_n be_v superior_a 4_o 229_o b_o 230_o a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o apostles_n 4_o 3_o b_o 4_o a._n of_o the_o anoint_v they_o 4_o 14_o b_o 15a_o b_o their_o userie_n practice_v 4_o 61_o b_o 62_o a_o d._n latimers_n exhortation_n unto_o they_o to_o follow_v the_o devil_n 2_o 481_o a_o whether_o they_o have_v the_o rule_n of_o both_o sword_n 4_o 287_o b_o of_o some_o who_o be_v sensual_a be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v as_o judge_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n 1_n 43_o b_o bishop_n in_o germany_n have_v the_o sword_n and_o gather_v tribute_n 4_o 239_o a_o what_o we_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n 4_o 80_o b_o of_o evil_a bishop_n in_o cyprian_n time_n 4_o 62_o b_o ¶_o look_v clergiemen_n bl._n blasphemy_n nothing_o will_v force_v job_n to_o commit_v blasphemy_n against_o god_n 2_o 292_o a_o bless_a to_o be_v bless_v what_o it_o signify_v in_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n 3_o 128_o b_o the_o difference_n that_o some_o have_v make_v between_o bless_a and_o happy_a 1_o 164_o a.b_fw-la ¶_o look_v felicity_n blessedness_n of_o the_o blessedness_n of_o man_n in_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 1_n 5_o b_o according_a to_o aristotle_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 1_n 132_o ab_fw-la why_o the_o blessedness_n which_o we_o wait_v for_o be_v not_o reveal_v in_o this_o life_n 3_o 276_o b_o ¶_o look_v chief_a good_a and_o felicity_n blessing_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o god_n blessing_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n 2_o 374_o b_o blindness_n blindness_n be_v a_o privation_n of_o sight_n which_o stick_v in_o the_o eye_n 1_n 180_o b_o blood_n how_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n as_o be_v avouch_v in_o geneas_n 1_n 123_o a.b_fw-la why_o some_o have_v think_v it_o be_v decree_v that_o man_n shall_v refrain_v eat_v of_o blood_n 1_n 123_o b_o bo._n body_n the_o word_n bodie_n be_v of_o large_a signification_n and_o how_o 3_o 78_o b_o the_o frame_n thereof_o be_v a_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n 3_o 317_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o evil_n 3_o 317_o b_o 318_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v troublesome_a to_o the_o understanding_n 3_o 316_o b_o 317_o a_o it_o be_v not_o give_v we_o to_o be_v any_o hindrance_n unto_o b_n to_o our_o knowledge_n of_o god_n 1_o 31_o b_o 32_o a_o how_o all_o the_o part_n thereof_o do_v serve_v one_o another_o 2_o 422_o b_o the_o place_n and_o it_o be_v join_v together_o 3_o 364_o a_o a_o proper_a analogy_n between_o it_o and_o the_o earth_n 2_o 605_o b_o what_o kind_n of_o instrument_n it_o be_v to_o the_o soul_n 3_o 335_o a_o a_o distinction_n of_o the_o flesh_n from_o the_o same_o ●_o 361_o b_o ●_o 116_o a_o to_o what_o end_n the_o part_n thereof_o shall_v remain_v in_o heaven_n their_o use_n be_v take_v away_o 3_o 360_o b_o whether_o a_o carcase_n be_v the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n 3_o 135_o a_o why_o it_o be_v call_v spiritual_a 4_o 186_o a_o 3_o 359b_n two_o 623_o a_o how_o the_o shadow_n do_v not_o accompany_v it_o always_o after_o one_o manner_n 1_o 142_o b_o 143_o a_o a_o reason_n of_o the_o father_n why_o it_o be_v make_v before_o the_o soul_n 1_o 122_o b_o at_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o soul_n as_o a_o prison_n as_o some_o do_v fable_n 2_o 251_o a_o the_o platonist_n opinion_n touch_v the_o heavy_a mass_n thereof_o 1_o 31_o b_o the_o order_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o 4_o 321_o a_o a_o similitude_n show_v how_o adam_n body_n may_v die_v and_o not_o die_v 2_o 246_o a_o it_o be_v make_v before_o the_o soul_n 1_o 121_o b_o it_o be_v mortal_a but_o not_o of_o necessity_n to_o die_v 2_o 246_o a_o what_o tertullian_n term_v to_o be_v a_o body_n and_o his_o opinion_n that_o angel_n and_o god_n himself_o have_v body_n 1_n 113_o a_o how_o he_o proove_v every_o kind_n of_o creature_n to_o be_v a_o body_n 1_n 28_o b_o the_o anthropomorphits_n fond_a reason_n whereby_o they_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o god_n have_v a_o body_n 1_o 29_o ab_fw-la he_o be_v without_o one_o and_o how_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v 1_n 28_o b_o 29_o a_o in_o what_o sort_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n enter_v in_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v ●_o ●17_n a_o after_o his_o resurrection_n it_o be_v both_o a_o spiritual_a and_o very_a body_n 1_o 116_o b_o 1●7_n a_o 113_o b_o what_o it_o have_v respect_n unto_o 3_o 78b_n whether_o it_o come_v out_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n the_o same_o be_v shut_v 1_n 117_o a_o body_n a_o distinction_n of_o body_n 3_o 361_o b_o 362_o a_o 4_o 91_o b_o the_o necessary_a conjunction_n of_o
1_n 98_o b_o in_o thing_n indifferent_a and_o not_o much_o weighty_a it_o may_v be_v retain_v as_o how_o 1_n 97_o b_o many_o lead_v thereby_o to_o do_v good_a and_o whether_o the_o same_o be_v certain_a 1_n 52_o b_o a_o custom_n of_o tthe_a soldier_n in_o a_o case_n of_o offence_n 2_o 365_o a_o of_o what_o thing_n payinge_n of_o custom_n consist_v 4_o 239_o b_o curse_n of_o the_o vow_n cherem_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o curse_n &_o whereto_o apply_v 2_o 403_o ab_fw-la 404_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o curse_n tyrant_n 2_o 405_o a_o whether_o no_o man_n must_v be_v punish_v with_o a_o curse_n 59_o b_o how_o all_o creature_n be_v subject_a thereunto_o for_o man_n sake_n 2_o 251_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a always_o to_o curse_n enemy_n 1_n 402_o a_o why_o a_o priest_n of_o athens_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v move_v to_o curse_n alcibiades_n 2_o 398_o b_o the_o curse_n of_o cham_n transfer_v to_o chanaan_n his_o son_n 2_o 363_o b_o 366_o a_o if_o we_o may_v not_o curse_v our_o enemy_n much_o less_o other_o 2_o 401_o b_o whether_o in_o god_n cause_n or_o our_o own_o cause_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o curse_n 2_o 398_o b_o curse_n from_o what_o affection_n the_o curse_n of_o the_o godly_a do_v proceed_v as_o say_v gregory_n 2_o 399_o b_o curse_n in_o the_o prophet_n be_v prophecy_n 2_o 397_o b_o curse_v the_o auncientnesse_n of_o curse_v and_o who_o first_o use_v the_o same_o 2_o 397_o a_o example_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o such_o as_o use_v it_o 2_o 399_o b_o augustine_n opinion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a 2_o 397b_n admonition_n touch_v the_o use_n thereof_o 2_o 40●_n a_o use_v among_o the_o ethnike_n example_n 2_o 397_o b_o dae_n daemon_n what_o daemon_n be_v and_o whereof_o they_o take_v their_o name_n 1_n 77_o a_o they_o have_v no_o body_n but_o be_v spirit_n only_o prove_v 1_n 81_o a_o they_o signify_v spirit_n both_o good_a and_o bad_a 1_n 77_o a_o some_o will_v that_o they_o be_v in_o this_o life_n and_o why_o 1_n 78_o a_o of_o some_o which_o think_v that_o soul_n become_v daemon_n 1._o 77_o a_o of_o some_o that_o say_v they_o be_v spirit_n in_o comparison_n of_o we_o &_o how_o 1_n 81_o a_o of_o some_o which_o think_v there_o be_v none_o 1_o 77_o a_o of_o who_o they_o which_v walk_v about_o the_o earth_n to_o our_o great_a harm_n be_v beget_v as_o say_v lactantius_n and_o other_o ●_o 128_o b_o 129_o a_o ¶_o look_n spirit_n dam_fw-la damnation_n the_o cause_n of_o our_o damnation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o god_n 3_o 20_o b_o it_o extend_v even_o to_o very_a infant_n 3_o 96_o b_o original_a sin_n go_v before_o every_o man_n birth_n &_o damnation_n 3_o 24_o b_o how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o some_o christian_n be_v judge_v to_o damnation_n and_o some_o to_o salvation_n 2_o 626_o b_o daniel_n daniel_n dissemble_v not_o the_o worship_v of_o nabuchadnezars_n image_n 2_o 320_o a_o danger_n all_o thing_n that_o bring_v danger_n through_o our_o own_o default_n must_v not_o be_v shun_v 3_o 177_o a_o dance_v what_o the_o ethnike_v think_v of_o wanton_a dance_a 2_o 906_o b_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 505_o b_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n together_o be_v evil_a 2_o 502_o b_o the_o hurt_n thereof_o 2_o 514_o b_o or_o it_o own_o nature_n not_o evil_a two_o 50●_n ab_fw-la against_o their_o reason_n which_o maintain_v it_o 2_o 504_o b_o 505_o a_o diverse_a opinion_n touch_v the_o original_a thereof_o 2_o 503_o b_o when_o it_o be_v institute_v 2_o 504_o a_o honest_a dance_a use_v and_o therefore_o lawful_a 2_o 505_o ab_fw-la in_o old_a time_n not_o against_o religion_n 2_o 503_o b_o use_v of_o christian_n in_o syria_n on_o holy_a day_n 2_o 506_o b_o in_o armour_n and_o why_o it_o be_v ordain_v two_o 503_o b_o 504a_o of_o the_o mimicall_a dance_a whereat_o demetrius_n woonder_v 2_o 504_o a_o the_o opinion_n of_o father_n and_o decree_n of_o counsel_n touch_v the_o lascivious_a kind_n of_o dance_a 2_o 505_o b_o 506_o a_o darkness_n whether_o darkness_n be_v make_v by_o god_n 3_o 370b_n 371_o a_o 1_n 188_o a_o how_o the_o sun_n after_o some_o manner_n may_v be_v lay_v to_o make_v it_o 1_n 181_o ab_fw-la david_n by_o who_o david_n rule_v the_o common_a weal_n 4_o 247b_n notable_a point_n for_o we_o to_o learn_v by_o his_o combat_n with_o goliath_n 3_o 284_o b_o 285_o a_o day_n how_o some_o understande_v the_o aduerbe_n hodie_fw-la today_o and_o of_o augustine_n interpretation_n thereof_o 1_n 73_o a_o diverslie_o take_v in_o respect_n of_o time_n 3_o 324_o b_o what_o paul_n understand_v by_o these_o word_n the_o day_n 3_o 240_o b_o it_o signify_v tryal●_n 241_o a_o what_o and_o when_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n be_v 3_o 388_o b_o christ_n yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n how_o it_o be_v expound_v 3_o 325a_n day_n when_o day_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o year_n the_o scripture_n teach_v 3_o 324_o b_o 325_o a_o de._n deacon_n the_o office_n of_o deacon_n in_o the_o church_n 4_o 8_o a_o ¶_o look_v church_n &_o minister●_n dead_a the_o dead_a be_v partaker_n of_o the_o good_a and_o evil_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n and_o how_o 1_o 159_o b_o they_o know_v not_o what_o be_v do_v in_o this_o life_n 1_n 75_o ab_fw-la 3_o 320_o ab_fw-la appearing_n of_o they_o prove_v partly_o by_o reason_n and_o example_n 1_n 75_o ab_fw-la of_o pray_v for_o they_o speak_v to_o and_o fro_o 3_o 244b_v 245_o a_o 322_o b_o what_o arrius_n think_v of_o oblation_n for_o they_o 3_o 251_o b_o why_o bury_v of_o they_o must_v not_o be_v neglect_v 3_o 322a_o b_o how_o they_o be_v say_v to_o live_v unto_o god_n 3_o 338_o b_o 339_o ab_fw-la how_o be_v ●ust_z be_v affect_v towards_o they_o 3_o 244_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o mourn_v for_o they_o 3_o 315_o a_o 179a_n whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o they_o to_o be_v bury_v 3_o 319_o b_o how_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v god_n both_o of_o live_v and_o dead_a 3_o 338_o b_o 339_o ab_fw-la why_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o they_o do_v sleep_n 3_o 326_o b_o how_o they_o praise_v the_o lord_n 3_o 367_o b_o whether_o their_o spirit_n wander_v up_o and_o down_o 3_o 326_o b_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n belong_v not_o to_o they_o &_o why_o 1_n 160_o a_o what_o we_o have_v to_o judge_v of_o apollonius_n thyancus_n his_o raise_n up_o of_o the_o dead_a maid_n 1_n 72_o b_o of_o a_o dead_a bishop_n that_o appear_v alive_a 1_n 75_o b_o the_o dead_a have_v be_v raise_v up_o and_o by_o who_o 3_o 336_o a_o 1_n 72_o b_o whether_o the_o first_o parent_n be_v dead_a straightway_o after_o sin_n 3_o 325_o a_o death_n death_n in_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v evil_a and_o why_o 2_o 391_o a_o therein_o be_v a_o feel_v of_o god_n wrath_n 2_o 247_o a_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v compare_v together_o as_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o effect_n 2_o 244_o a_o in_o what_o respect_n god_n make_v it_o not_o 3_o 44_o a_o 43_o a_o it_o come_v of_o the_o original_n of_o nature_n 2_o 216_o a_o two_o sort_n of_o life_n both_o which_o it_o take_v away_o 2_o 247_o b_o chrysostom_n similitude_n that_o our_o first_o parent_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v sin_v be_v subject_a thereunto_o 2_o 247_o a_o bring_v in_o by_o sin_n can_v be_v allegoricallie_o understand_v as_o the_o pelagian_o say_v 2_o 246_o b_o how_o soon_o after_o sin_n have_v enter_v it_o take_v place_n 2_o 247_o a_o pighius_fw-la and_o other_o confute_v for_o say_v that_o it_o come_v unto_o man_n by_o nature_n 2_o 239_o a_o 247_o a_o it_o have_v no_o right_a where_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n 2_o 217_o a_o the_o pelagian_n and_o anabaptist_n say_v that_o it_o come_v not_o of_o sin_n but_o of_o natural_a cause_n 2_o 214_o a_o how_o and_o in_o what_o respect_v it_o be_v call_v a_o end_n 1_n 5_o a_o 580_o a_o three_o kind_n thereof_o appoint_v in_o god_n law_n for_o offender_n 2_o 414_o b_o how_o it_o be_v conquer_v since_o it_o strike_v all_o man_n still_o 3_o 318_o a_o see_v we_o be_v justify_v wherefore_o be_v we_o subject_a thereunto_o 3_o 315_o a_o death_n of_o the_o godly_a count_v but_o a_o sleep_n 3_o 348_o a_o how_o sleep_n be_v the_o image_n thereof_o 3_o 335_o b_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o be_v limit_v 2_o 636_o b_o in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v good_a 3_o 28_n b_o a_o necessary_a evil_n 3_o 316_o a_o why_o be_v evil_a it_o be_v wish_v as_o if_o it_o be_v good_a 2_o ●91_n ab_fw-la the_o fruit_n or_o benefit_n that_o it_o bring_v 3_o 318_o b_o what_o detestable_a thing_n be_v and_o
metaphorical_o ascribe_v unto_o god_n 2_o 413_o a_o visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n great_a mercy_n and_o how_o 2_o 366_o a_o judgement_n without_o mercy_n remain_v to_o he_o that_o have_v not_o show_v mercy_n expound_v 4_o 254_o b_o merit_n the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o merit_n 3_o 52_o b_o of_o congruity_n quite_o take_v away_o from_o man_n 3_o 142_o b_o 143_o a_o 130_o a_o 4_o 5_o b_o all_o respect_n thereof_o exclude_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n 3_o 52_o b_o not_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n 3_o 56_o a_o how_o the_o father_n be_v qualify_v it_o 3_o 56_o a_o it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v leave_v 3_o 56_o a_o the_o merit_n of_o a_o work_n wrought_v 4_o 194_o b_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o congruity_n and_o condignity_n 2_o 257_o b_o assign_v to_o work_n 3_o 55_o b_o 56_o a_o exclude_v from_o adoption_n 3_o 153_o b_o merit_n merit_n of_o congruity_n &_o condignity_n allow_v 3_o 221_o a_o exclude_v 4_o 306_o a_o two_o 264_o a_o 275_o a_o 3_o 108_o a_o 302b_n 105_o b_o unto_o what_o work_v they_o of_o congruity_n be_v due_a 3_o 119_o b_o 120_o a_o all_o quite_o abolish_v 3_o 144_o a_o whether_o hope_n spring_v thereof_o 3_o 82_o ab_fw-la 86_o a_o they_o breed_v despair_v 2_o 54_o a_o exclude_v from_o justification_n 2_o 584a_o they_o have_v no_o place_n in_o our_o call_n and_o salvation_n 3_o 18_o b_o what_o they_o that_o defend_v they_o do_v think_v of_o good_a work_n 3_o 54_o a_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o parent_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n why_o god_n promise_v good_a unto_o their_o child_n 2_o 240_o b_o work_n can_v proper_o be_v call_v merit_n 3_o 52_o b_o 53_o a_o messiah_n the_o jew_n appoint_v two_o messiase_n 3_o 346_o b_o ¶_o look_v christ_n and_o saviour_n metaphor_n the_o nature_n of_o a_o similitude_n and_o metaphor_n 3_o 351_o a_o mi._n mighty_a why_o god_n execute_v by_o weak_a man_n and_o not_o by_o mighty_a 1_n 131_o b_o why_o mighty_a man_n and_o prince_n do_v resist_v god_n 1_o 131_o b_o ¶_o look_v princess_n mind_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o how_o the_o affect_n be_v place_v in_o they_o 2_o 409_o ab_fw-la the_o base_a part_n thereof_o and_o the_o noble_a also_o be_v corrupt_v &_o how_o 2_o 225._o all_o 226._o all_o quality_n thereof_o say_v the_o school_n man_n pass_v not_o from_o the_o parent_n to_o the_o child_n 2_o 239._o be_v disproove_v 2_o 241_o a_o unto_o what_o inconvenience_n the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v subject_a 1_n 1_o b_o altogether_o corrupt_v 2_o 564_o ab_fw-la how_o it_o be_v carry_v and_o move_v too_o and_o fro_o 2_o 565a_o b_o the_o infirmity_n thereof_o and_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o same_o describe_v 1_n 158a_o in_o what_o respect_v it_o do_v and_o do_v not_o true_o express_v god_n 1_o 123_o b_o the_o excellency_n thereof_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o soul_n 1_n 134_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o body_n 3_o 316_o ab_fw-la god_n have_v the_o same_o place_n in_o the_o world_n that_o the_o mind_n have_v in_o man_n 1_o 170_o b_o the_o scripture_n against_o aristotle_n who_o say_v that_o the_o mind_n desire_v the_o best_a thing_n 2_o 564_o ab_fw-la mind_n in_o what_o respect_n devil_n can_v see_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n 1_n 83_o b_o minister_n the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o minister_n 4_o 286_o b_o 3_o 162_o a_o 4_o 19_o a_o 21_o b_o ●27b_n he_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 224_o ab_fw-la what_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o he_o 4_o 233_o ab_fw-la three_o thing_n require_v in_o he_o that_o be_v lawful_a 4_o 20_o b_o 21_o a_o the_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o a_o magistrate_n 4_o 226_o a_o whether_o one_o have_v care_n of_o soul_n may_v flit_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n 3_o 288_o ab_fw-la his_o public_a prayer_n be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 224_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o minister_n 4_o 25_o a_o in_o what_o respect_n they_o be_v subject_a unto_o magistrate_n 4_o 232_o a_o their_o authority_n most_o ample_a and_o excellent_a 4_o 230_o b_o from_o what_o burden_n and_o charge_n they_o be_v exempt_v 4_o 239_o b_o 240_o ab_fw-la god_n use_v their_o adversary_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o counsel_n 2_o 386_o a_o the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n utter_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o they_o 2_o 386_o a_o they_o may_v lawful_o receive_v gift_n and_o reward_n 4_o 28._o 29._o 30._o whether_o they_o have_v wherewithal_o to_o live_v otherwise_o may_v take_v stipend_n 4_o 29_o b_o they_o be_v call_v angel_n 2_o 358_o a_o unto_o who_o the_o choose_n of_o they_o belong_v 4_o 36_o b_o degree_n of_o they_o allow_v in_o the_o church_n 4_o 25_o a_o observation_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o make_n or_o choose_v of_o they_o 4_o 10_o a_o they_o must_v be_v consecrate_v of_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n 4_o 24_o a_o that_o sometime_o attribute_v unto_o they_o which_o belong_v unto_o god_n 4_o 24_o a_o whether_o their_o lewd_a life_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n 4_o 35_o b_o what_o they_o have_v in_o common_a with_o all_o creature_n 4_o 24_o b_o few_o in_o ambroses_n time_n 3_o 195_o b_o 196_o b_o whether_o they_o may_v have_v wife_n 3_o 192._o 193._o 194._o 195._o 196._o they_o may_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o canon_n 4_o 55_o a_o not_o to_o be_v count_v private_a man_n 1_n 445_o ab_fw-la subject_a unto_o magistrate_n two_o manner_n of_o way_n 4_o 38_o a_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v more_o than_o be_v now_o 3_o 194_o a_o their_o excellent_a office_n and_o charge_n 4_o 17_o ab_fw-la 18_o ab_fw-la whether_o ill_a man_n may_v be_v make_v such_o 4_o 13_o a_o of_o the_o contempt_n and_o authority_n of_o minister_n 4_o 15_o b_o etc._n etc._n of_o their_o consecration_n 4_o 13_o b_o they_o have_v have_v the_o charge_n of_o civil_a government_n 4_o 327_o a_o caution_n in_o their_o election_n 4_o 13_o ab_fw-la their_o lewdness_n defile_v not_o the_o sacrament_n 4_o 101_o a_o they_o may_v lawful_o reproove_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o magistrate_n 4_o 324a_o they_o have_v a_o pattern_n of_o duty_n in_o elias_n 4_o 319_o ab_fw-la 320a_fw-la they_o ought_v to_o remedy_v two_o impediment_n touch_v god_n promise_n 3_o 49_o b_o whether_o the_o make_n of_o they_o be_v a_o sacrament_n 3_o 210_o b_o they_o be_v mock_v 4_o 16_o a_o when_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o receive_v stipend_n 4_o 30_o b_o 31_o a_o to_o what_o intent_n they_o must_v be_v in_o the_o camp_n 4_o 287_o a_o 328_o a_o decree_v of_o counsel_n against_o the_o adulterous_a sort_n 2_o 489_o a_o whether_o novice_n be_v to_o be_v choose_v 4_o 13_o b_o whether_o they_o may_v flee_v in_o persecution_n 4_o 2_o a_o 60_o a_o minister_n among_o the_o gentile_n before_o the_o apostles_n 4_o 4_o b_o 5_o a_o they_o must_v be_v hospital_n 4_o 17_o b_o their_o charge_n touch_v doctrine_n in_o four_o point_n 4_o 48_o b_o why_o god_n will_v not_o govern_v his_o church_n without_o they_o 4_o 23_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o war_n 4_o 186_o b_o 287a_o 327_o a_o excessivelie_o honour_v 4_o 24_o b_o how_o they_o swerve_v from_o the_o faithfulness_n require_v in_o they_o 4_o 19_o 20_o what_o prayer_n they_o shall_v daily_a make_v 4_o 24a_o their_o laboursome_a life_n describe_v 4_o 29_o b_o 30_o a_o they_o must_v not_o be_v ambitious_a 4_o 24_o ab_fw-la whether_o they_o be_v deny_v their_o due_a stipend_n 4_o ●0_n a_o they_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o 43_o a_o sin_n commit_v against_o they_o be_v horrible_a 2_o 554_o b_o whether_o they_o may_v use_v their_o weapon_n 4_o 327_o b_o when_o they_o may_v be_v in_o place_n of_o soldier_n 4_o 328_o a_o they_o must_v not_o procure_v sect_n 4_o 21_o b_o what_o be_v their_o sacrifice_n 4_o 18_o b_o they_o must_v not_o meddle_v with_o many_o vocation_n 4_o 18a_o no_o where_o in_o scripture_n call_v priest_n 4_o 222_o a_o they_o and_o magistrate_n have_v their_o function_n join_v together_o 4_o 22_o a_o 232_o a_o 233_o ab_fw-la how_o they_o both_o shall_v behave_v themselves_o one_o to_o a_o other_o 1_n 10_o a_o caution_n for_o they_o when_o they_o be_v to_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n 4_o 19_o b_o 20_o a_o wherein_o their_o dignity_n consist_v 4_o 222_o b_o canonical_a purgation_n in_o the_o case_n of_o adultery_n suspect_v in_o they_o 2_o 489_o a_o christ_n revenge_v the_o inviry_n do_v to_o they_o 4_o 21_o a_o whether_o they_o may_v be_v exempt_v from_o the_o ordinary_a power_n 4_o 229_o a_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o god_n only_o
to_o choose_v they_o and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n 1_n 104_o b_o of_o too_o much_o and_o too_o little_o attribute_v unto_o they_o 4_o 22_o a_o a_o admontion_n to_o the_o weak_a sort_n of_o they_o 4_o 27_o b_o of_o their_o sole_a life_n that_o it_o be_v force_v and_o what_o hos●ensis_n faith_n of_o the_o same_o 1_n 97_o b_o in_o what_o case_n obedience_n to_o they_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o obedience_n to_o parent_n 2_o 380_o a_o they_o be_v public_a person_n 4_o 19_o b_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n perpetual_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v maintenance_n 2_o 375_o b_o in_o what_o sense_n conversion_n of_o heart_n be_v attribute_v unto_o they_o 3_o 383_o a_o against_o minister_n non_fw-la residentes_fw-la 4_o 2d_o b_o ¶_o look_v clergy_n man_n pastor_n and_o preacher_n ministry_n the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o ministry_n 4_o 2_o b_o order_n therein_o acknowledge_v by_o scripture_n 4_o 55_o b_o why_o a_o continual_a outward_a ministry_n be_v needful_a in_o the_o church_n 3_o 49b_v a_o notable_a abuse_n in_o the_o ministry_n 4_o 24_o b_o what_o a_o tender_a care_n god_n have_v over_o it_o and_o how_o he_o revenge_v the_o wrong_n do_v unto_o it_o 2_o 386_o ab_fw-la the_o contempt_n thereof_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n why_o curssinge_n may_v be_v use_v 2_o 398_o b_o 399_o a_o whether_o bloudshede_v debar_v one_o from_o it_o 4_o 265_o a_o of_o the_o efficacy_n thereof_o 4_o 21_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o function_n for_o every_o man_n at_o his_o pleasure_n 4_o 10_o b_o 11_o 12._o of_o the_o mighty_a simpleness_n of_o the_o ministry_n 4_o 25_o b_o a_o calling_z ordinary_a and_o a_o call_v extraordinary_a lawful_a and_o unlawful_a 4_o 11_o b_o 12_o a_o 9_o b_o 10_o man_n of_o themselves_o be_v unwilling_a to_o receive_v it_o 4_o 23a_o whether_o we_o want_v a_o just_a succession_n therein_o 4_o 16_o b_o why_o they_o be_v exclude_v from_o it_o that_o have_v do_v solemn_a penance_n 3_o 308_o a_o whether_o bastard_n be_v admittable_a thereto_o 2_o 477_o b_o 478_o a_o it_o must_v not_o be_v obstinate_o refuse_v 4_o 23_o b_o how_o it_o work_v together_o with_o god_n for_o our_o salvation_n 3_o 50_o a_o ministery_n why_o the_o public_a ministery_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v free_a gift_n 4_o 8_o b_o miracle_n what_o it_o be_v to_o refuse_v a_o miracile_a offer_v by_o god_n 1_o 71_o a_o a_o miracle_n of_o a_o jew_n that_o come_v by_o night_n into_o the_o temple_n of_o a_o idol_n 2_o 349_o b_o miracle_n a_o full_a and_o absolute_a definition_n of_o true_a miracle_n 1_n 63_o a_o miracle_n must_v not_o be_v judge_v meet_a for_o to_o confirm_v faith_n &_o why_o 1_o 67_o b_o why_o and_o wherefore_o they_o do_v cause_n admiration_n 1_n 62_o b_o god_n oftentimes_o give_v they_o unto_o unbeléever_n 1_n 68_o b_o some_o do_v and_o yet_o neither_o by_o prayer_n nor_o by_o commandment_n how_o then_o 1_n 64_o a_o proof_n why_o we_o ought_v not_o light_o to_o give_v credit_n unto_o they_o 1_n 67_o b_o not_o do_v always_o for_o faith_n sake_n 3_o 134_o a_o what_o manner_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o they_o 1_n 61_o a_o diverse_a artificial_a make_v famous_a by_o writer_n 1_o 62b_v they_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n like_o unto_o sacrament_n 1_n 67_o b_o they_o were_z as_o trumpets_z whereby_o the_o gospel_n be_v commend_v 1_n 71_o b_o the_o difference_n between_o sign_n &_o they_o show_v out_o of_o diverse_a writer_n 1_n 71b_v why_o they_o be_v utter_o take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n 1_n 72_o a_o the_o power_n of_o do_v they_o make_v not_o man_n either_o better_a or_o worse_o 1_n 66_o b_o the_o diverse_a name_n whereby_o they_o be_v call_v in_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_a and_o why_o 1_n 62_o b_o with_o what_o faith_n those_o be_v endue_v by_o who_o god_n do_v they_o 1_n 69_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o godly_a man_n to_o ask_v they_o of_o god_n 1_o 69_o b_o two_o kind_n of_o instrument_n which_o god_n use_v to_o work_v they_o by_o 1_n 65_o a_o that_o they_o win_v credit_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o how_o 1_o 63_o b_o not_o always_o do_v at_o the_o prayer_n of_o evil_a man_n 1_n 69a_o to_o work_v they_o be_v grant_v both_o unto_o the_o good_a &_o the_o bad_a 1_o 65_o b_o 66_o ab_fw-la in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o be_v sign_n of_o faith_n 1_n 71_o b_o how_o god_n use_v angel_n and_o man_n to_o do_v they_o 1_o 65_o a_o caution_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o ask_n of_o they_o 1_n 70_o a_o some_o don_n neither_o by_o public_a justice_n nor_o the_o sign_n thereof_o but_o only_o of_o a_o certain_a private_a compact_n 1_n 64_o b_o two_o thing_n be_v special_o to_o be_v consider_v in_o they_o 1_o 62_o b_o of_o some_o that_o be_v miracle_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o mean_n that_o be_v use_v in_o the_o work_n of_o they_o 1_n 64_o a_o what_o reason_n some_o use_n to_o prove_v that_o for_o the_o work_n of_o they_o they_o may_v use_v the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n 1_n 66_o b_o of_o some_o which_o bring_v punishment_n and_o harm_n to_o offender_n 1_n 64a_o that_o they_o do_v confirm_v faith_n prove_v by_o scripture_n 1_n 63_o b_o whether_o god_n direct_o help_v man_n by_o the_o miracle_n of_o evil_a angel_n 1_n 65_o b_o they_o consist_v not_o in_o the_o greatness_n of_o work_n 1_n 63b_n 64_o a_o all_z that_o paul_n show_v be_v sign_n and_o whereof_o 1_n 71_o b_o of_o some_o that_o move_v admiration_n only_o 1_n 64_o a_o whether_o we_o shall_v believe_v they_o 3_o 62_o b_o by_o what_o mean_v they_o may_v be_v do_v by_o wicked_a man_n 1_n 68_o b_o 69_o a_o of_o some_o unto_o who_o they_o be_v offer_v and_o of_o they_o reject_v 1_n 70_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v prophecy_n or_o no._n 1_o 22_o b_o why_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1_n 23_o b_o 24_o a_o the_o ask_n of_o they_o reprehend_v in_o some_o &_o why_o 1_n 70_o a_o why_o christ_n charge_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v publish_v see_v they_o be_v so_o profitable_a to_o confirm_v faith_n 1_n 67_o b_o 68a_o for_o what_o cause_n they_o be_v desire_v of_o godly_a man_n at_o god_n 1_o 70_o a_o do_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o faith_n &_o how_o that_o be_v prove_v 1_n 67_o ab_fw-la 68_o b_o after_o what_o manner_n one_o may_v crave_v they_o &_o yet_o tempt_v not_o god_n 1_o 70_o b_o a_o general_a description_n of_o they_o &_o which_o be_v false_a and_o which_o true_a 1_n 62_o b_o some_z be_v obtain_v by_o prayer_n and_o some_o be_v wrought_v by_o commandment_n and_o authority_n 1_n 64a_o some_o do_v by_o public_a justice_n and_o other_o some_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o this_o justice_n as_o how_o 1_n 64_o b_o some_o wonderful_a in_o deed_n and_o why_o they_o be_v so_o 1_n 64_o a_o of_o some_o that_o beside_o their_o admiration_n do_v bring_v a_o present_a commodity_n unto_o man_n 1_n 64_o a_o their_o reason_n and_o proof_n which_o think_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a be_v ask_v but_o not_o refuse_v when_o god_n offer_v they_o 1_o 71_o a_o craftiness_n and_o false_a miracle_n wrought_v about_o image_n 2_o 336_o b_o why_o god_n suffer_v the_o devil_n to_o work_v they_o 2_o 349_o a_o diverse_a wrought_v by_o art_n magic_a 1_n 85_o a_o false_a miracle_n for_o the_o credit_n of_o ydolatrie_n may_v not_o be_v paint_v 2_o 341_o b_o they_o be_v not_o very_a miracle_n wherein_o the_o devil_n have_v deal_v 1_n 64_o b_o why_o they_o that_o be_v do_v by_o antichrist_n be_v call_v lie_n 1_n 65_o a_o false_a miracle_n may_v be_v do_v three_o manner_n of_o way_n 1_n 62_o b_o 63_o a_o of_o two_o cause_n for_o the_o which_o achaz_n consider_v that_o miracle_n be_v to_o be_v refuse_v 1_n 70_o b_o 71_o a_o wrought_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o two_o cause_n note_v in_o the_o scripture_n why_o god_n will_v have_v the_o devil_n and_o antichrist_n work_v wonder_n 2_o 308_o b_o 309_o a_o object_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o ydolatrie_n 2_o 348_o b_o they_o have_v be_v wrought_v by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 2_o 349_o a_o for_o how_o many_o cause_n they_o may_v be_v do_v about_o the_o eucharist_n 4_o 185_o ab_fw-la wrought_v by_o elias_n 2_o 387_o a_o why_o they_o have_v be_v wrought_v 4_o 160_o ab_fw-la of_o christ_n infancy_n paint_v of_o some_o whereof_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n 2_o 341_o b_o of_o the_o faith_n of_o miracle_n 3_o 132_o ab_fw-la 133_o a_o the_o saint_n to_o confirm_v it_o sometime_o require_v they_o 3_o 62_o a_o ¶_o look_n sign_n &_o wonder_n mirth_n at_o what_o time_n mirth_n be_v not_o convenient_a 2_o 499_o a_o god_n be_v desirous_a
fault_n 4_o 259_o b_o nemesis_n a_o definition_n of_o nemesis_n call_v of_o some_o indignation_n 2_o 413_o a_o a_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o cruelty_n 3_o 21_o b_o we_o must_v seldom_o give_v place_n thereto_o and_o why_o 2_o 413_o b_o the_o object_n of_o that_o affect_v 2_o 413_o b_o it_o be_v a_o mean_a between_o envy_n &_o mercy_n 2_o 413_o b_o the_o agreement_n &_o difference_n between_o mercy_n &_o nemesis_n 2_o 413_o b_o it_o be_v in_o the_o just_a &_o godly_a 2_o 413_o a_o ¶_o look_v affect_v ni._n night_n the_o night_n divide_v into_o four_o watch_n 3_o 256_o a_o ¶_o look_v watches_n nilus_n nilus_n thought_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o river_n of_o paradise_n 1_n 126_o a_o a_o very_a old_a ruier_n and_o of_o the_o uncerteine_a original_n thereof_o 1_n 126_o a_o nimbleness_n of_o the_o nimbleness_n of_o our_o body_n at_o our_o resurrection_n 3_o 359_o a_o ¶_o look_v resurrection_n no._n nobility_n wherein_o nobility_n consist_v 4_o 311_o b_o 312_o a_o 313a_o the_o lack_n thereof_o be_v no_o hindrance_n unto_o felicity_n 1_n 149_o a_o require_v thereto_o and_o why_o 1_n 148_o a_o in_o what_o estimation_n the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v their_o nobility_n 1_n 148_o b_o 4_o 312_o ab_fw-la argument_n against_o nobility_n by_o birth_n 4_o 312_o b_o 313_o a_o unto_o who_o christ_n nobility_n be_v communicate_v 4_o 313_o b_o number_n a_o number_n definite_a or_o certain_a put_v for_o a_o number_n indefinite_a or_o uncertein_a 3_o 358b_n 3●2b_fw-la 396_o b_o 2_o 237_o a_o of_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o and_o how_o the_o same_o comprise_v all_o former_a number_n 1_n 3_o a_o and_o betoken_v a_o complete_a number_n 2_o 362_o b_o number_n why_o error_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v commit_v in_o number_n 1_o 51_o b_o ob._n obedience_n obedience_n be_v the_o chief_a fruit_n of_o faith_n 1_o 70_o b_o in_o what_o respect_v it_o be_v to_o be_v do_v to_o prince_n 4_o 285_o a_o to_o god_n it_o be_v not_o condicionall_a but_o to_o man_n it_o be_v 2_o 342_o b_o why_o it_o be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n 4_o 44_o ab_fw-la 45_o a_o of_o obedience_n to_o a_o wicked_a king_n 4_o 35_o b_o obedience_n of_o two_o sort_n 3_o 175_o b_o whether_o we_o ought_v by_o reward_n to_o be_v move_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n 2_o 573_o a_o wherein_o the_o obedience_n of_o pope_n gregory_n to_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n be_v blame_v 2_o 327_o a_o a_o example_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o magistrate_n in_o the_o jew_n 4_o 226_o b_o how_o far_o forth_o it_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v of_o the_o inferior_a power_n to_o the_o superior_a power_n 2_o 326_o b_o proof_n that_o perfect_a obedience_n may_v be_v do_v unto_o god_n 2_o 562_o a_o by_o a_o obedience_n begin_v we_o obey_v god_n law_n 3_o 50_o a_o it_o be_v in_o the_o regenerate_a thereof_o read_v two_o 242_o a_o 562_o ab_fw-la 569_o a_o 570._o 3_o 47b_n 113._o 236_o b_o object_n of_o certainty_n as_o touch_v object_n and_o subject_n 3_o 84_o a_o in_o all_o art_n the_o object_n be_v before_o the_o science_n 4_o 246_o a_o how_o by_o object_n action_n be_v know_v 4_o 320_o b_o oblation_n three_o manner_n of_o use_n of_o the_o oblation_n of_o communicant_n 4_o 218._o what_o arrius_n think_v of_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a 3_o 251_o b_o ¶_o look_n offering_n and_o sacrifice_n oblivion_n plato_n opinion_n of_o oblivion_n and_o the_o hurt_n which_o it_o bring_v 1_n 53_o b_o ¶_o look_v forgetfulness_n oc._n occasion_n wherein_o cause_n and_o occasion_n do_v differ_v 2_o 516_o a_o 509_o b_o 510_o a_o two_o sort_n thereof_o the_o one_o give_v the_o other_o take_v 2_o 516_o a_o 1_o 185_o a_o occasion_n occasion_n be_v not_o remote_a cause_n but_o immediate_a which_o stir_v up_o our_o desire_n 1_n 196._o aeschylus_n the_o poet_n excuse_v in_o say_v that_o god_n if_o he_o will_v destroy_v and_o take_v away_o any_o give_v the_o cause_n and_o occasion_n 1_n 198_o a_o what_o the_o civil_a law_n determine_v touch_v they_o 2_o 515_o b_o 516_o a_o what_o great_a account_n god_n make_v of_o they_o 2_o 515b_fw-ge example_n of_o occasion_n of_o sin_v 1_o 185_o a_o how_o god_n offer_v such_o 1_n 184_o b_o 185_o a_o good_a thing_n unto_o the_o wicked_a be_v occasion_n of_o sin_v as_o how_o 1_n 185_o a_o of._n offend_v how_o to_o behave_v ourselves_o towards_o our_o brethren_n when_o they_o offend_v us._n 3_o 387_o a_o if_o thy_o eye_n offend_v thou_o etc._n etc._n expound_v 2_o 88_o a_o offender_n whether_o magistrate_n may_v let_v offender_n pass_v unpunished_a 4_o 248._o 249._o 250._o 251._o 252._o 353._o 254_o 255._o 256._o 257._o etc._n etc._n whether_o to_o be_v execute_v with_o death_n 4_o 291_o a_o release_v in_o the_o holy_a weak_a of_o easter_n 4_o 263_o b_o cause_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v not_o present_o to_o be_v execute_v 4_o 257_o b_o three_o kind_n of_o death_n appoint_v in_o god_n law_n for_o they_o 2_o 414._o try_v very_o strange_o in_o some_o place_n 4_o 309_o b_o how_o their_o repentance_n may_v be_v provide_v for_o 4_o 250_o b_o against_o what_o offender_n the_o church_n and_o civil_a power_n be_v to_o execute_v justice_n two_o 414ab_v offence_n what_o scandalum_fw-la or_o offence_n be_v 3_o 163_o a_o of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o give_v the_o other_o take_v 2_o 516_o a_o 1_o 185_o a_o 3_o 163_o b_o of_o life_n &_o of_o doctrine_n 3_o 163_o a_o do_v against_o the_o weak_a three_o manner_n of_o way_n against_o christ_n 3_o 16●a_v in_o what_o crime_n the_o will_n be_v est●…med_v as_o the_o offence_n 2_o 385_o b_o 386_o a_o in_o what_o thing_n we_o must_v pass_v &_o not_o pass_v for_o offence_n 3_o 166_o b_o 167_o a_o howe_n christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o work_n of_o offence_n 3_o 163_o b_o offence_n what_o offence_n must_v be_v avoid_v 3_o 163_o b_o two_o 321_o a_o offence_n compare_v and_o their_o difference_n and_o more_o or_o less_o heynousnesse_n 2_o 553_o ab_fw-la offering_n what_o offering_n we_o must_v bring_v unto_o god_n 3_o 176_o a_o doove_n at_o the_o lord_n supper_n 4_o 19_o a_o free_a will_n offering_n of_o the_o jew_n 4_o 220_o b_o what_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v observe_v therein_o 4_o 215_o a_o ¶_o look_n sacrifice_n office_n what_o we_o must_v have_v respect_n unto_o in_o commit_v a_o office_n unto_o any_o man_n 3_o 20_o b_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o christian_a godly_a man_n to_o bear_v office_n 4_o 276_o b_o office_n what_o personal_a office_n be_v 4_o 34_o a_o for_o three_o cause_n man_n be_v lead_v to_o take_v office_n say_v plato_n 4_o 23_o ab_fw-la whether_o two_o office_n may_v be_v excute_v by_o one_o man_n 4_o 327_o b_o why_o not_o 4_o 286_o b_o omnes_n omen_n of_o forespeaking_a or_o foretell_v call_v omen_n 1_n 61a_o omen_n be_v so_o call_v as_o it_o be_v oreman_n say_v festus_n and_o why_o 1_n 62_o a_o ¶_o look_v foretell_v oi_o oil_n the_o ceremony_n of_o oil_n use_v in_o election_n what_o it_o signify_v 4_o 14_o a_o of_o heal_v the_o sick_a 3_o 211_o ab_fw-la papistical_a and_o of_o their_o unction_n 2_o 606_o a_o solemnity_n use_v at_o the_o make_v thereof_o 4_o 139_o a_o two_o sort_n of_o the_o same_o in_o their_o popish_a religion_n 4_o 15_o a_o add_v to_o baptism_n and_o why_o 4_o 127_o a_o the_o superstitious_a use_n thereof_o to_o sundry_a purpose_n 4_o 15_o b_o of_o the_o holy_a oil_n of_o s._n remigins_n 4_o 15_o a_o on._n one_o in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n one_o signify_v the_o first_o proof_n 2_o 375_o b_o 376._o ●_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n these_o three_o be_v unto_o one_o make_v not_o for_o the_o arrian_n against_o the_o trinity_n 1_n 105_o b_o 106_o a_o only_a of_o the_o word_n only_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n &_o institution_n 3_o 154_o b_o 155_o a_o op._n opinion_n the_o nature_n of_o opinion_n 3_o 234_o b_o it_o be_v doubtful_a 3_o 57_o b_o the_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o faith_n 3_o 69_o b_o 2_o 296b_n what_o affect_n do_v accompany_v it_o 2_o 405_o b_o aristotle_n proof_n that_o it_o be_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o thing_n yea_o of_o thing_n eternal_a 2_o 296_o b_o wherein_o it_o and_o knowledge_n do_v differ_v 2._o 296_o a_o that_o no_o kind_n thereof_o be_v all_o one_o with_o choice_n two_o 297_o a_o define_v 2_o 296_o a_o it_o be_v a_o quality_n 2_o 297_o a_o neither_o evil_a nor_o good_a and_o why_o 2_o 296_o b_o 297_o a_o of_o what_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o neither_o have_v to_o do_v 2_o 296_o b_o a_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v choice_n and_o the_o same_o answer_v two_o 296_o b_o 297_o a_o no_o antiquity_n of_o opinion_n can_v prescribe_v against_o the_o truth_n 3_o 244_o a_o
whether_o they_o be_v miserable_a before_o god_n 3_o 55_o ab_fw-la whether_o they_o have_v good_a work_n by_o grace_n 3_o 54_o a_o they_o do_v work_v together_o with_o god._n 3_o 51_o ab_fw-la they_o do_v sometime_o most_o grievous_o offend_v 3_o 34_o a_o how_o they_o have_v power_n to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 3_o 73_o a_o what_o kind_n of_o grace_n be_v give_v to_o they_o 1_n 2b_v wherein_o the_o similitude_n that_o they_o have_v with_o god_n do_v stand_v two_o 612_o b_o 613a_o man_n distinguish_v into_o regenerate_v and_o not_o regenerate_v &_o which_o of_o their_o sin_n be_v punish_v to_o the_o three_o &_o four_o generation_n 2_o 362_o b_o why_o parent_n regenerate_v do_v beget_v child_n with_o original_a sin_n 4_o 117_o a_o why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pour_v into_o the_o heart_n when_o we_o be_v regenerate_v 4_o 114_o a_o not_o regenerate_v man_n not_o regenerate_v be_v draw_v perpetual_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o to_o sin_n 1_n 3_o b_o of_o their_o freedom_n two_o 270_o a_o 254a_o of_o a_o natural_a fault_n procure_v by_o adam_n and_o reign_v in_o they_o 1_n 3_o b_o they_o can_v do_v nothing_o that_o may_v please_v god_n 3_o 130_o a_o they_o be_v evil_a tree_n 3_o 101_o a_o their_o nature_n and_o why_o they_o can_v do_v no_o good_a work_n 2_o 267_o a_o 3_o 299_o a_o whether_o they_o be_v justify_v by_o their_o work_n 3_o 142_o ab_fw-la how_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v in_o man_n not_o regenerate_v 3_o 140_o b_o regeneration_n the_o state_n of_o man_n before_o regeneration_n 3_o 94_o ab_fw-la 96_o ab_fw-la 46_o a_o even_o in_o infant_n 3_o 10b_n we_o bring_v nothing_o thereunto_o prove_v 3_o 28_o b_o 2_o 258_o a_o of_o work_n before_o and_o after_o it_o 3_o 16_o b_o 118_o a_o two_o 257_o b_o 258_o a_o that_o which_o remain_v after_o it_o be_v sin_n but_o not_o impute_v unto_o we_o 2_o 233_o b_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o before_o it_o we_o be_v not_o free_a 2_o 255_o ab_fw-la the_o mean_n whereby_o it_o be_v wrought_v and_o not_o wrought_v 3_o 80_o ab_fw-la circumcision_n and_o baptism_n sacrament_n thereof_o 2_o 594_o a_o child_n have_v need_n of_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o 2_o 214_o b_o it_o argue_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v in_o us._n two_o 218_o a_o it_o need_v not_o if_o our_o first_o generation_n be_v faultless_a read_v the_o similitude_n 2_o 214_o b_o by_o who_o it_o be_v wrought_v two_o 627_o b_o 268a_o notable_a point_n to_o be_v mark_v about_o it_o two_o 226_o ab_fw-la it_o pertain_v not_o only_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n or_o grosser_n part_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o especial_o also_o unto_o the_o will_n and_o mind_n 2_o 225_o b_o 226_o a_o original_a sin_n be_v not_o utter_o rid_v away_o no_o not_o thereby_o 2_o 233_o b_o from_o whence_o it_o have_v original_a &_o that_o it_o be_v unperfect_a in_o this_o life_n two_o 564_o a_o of_o beginning_n &_o proceed_v therein_o 4_o 27_o a_o by_o what_o thing_n it_o be_v do_v 4_o 136_o b_o how_o it_o be_v and_o be_v not_o attain_v 4_o 36_o a_o the_o testimony_n thereof_o 4_o 113_o a_o what_o it_o be_v and_o whereto_o it_o tend_v 4_o 112_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v grant_v but_o by_o the_o word_n 4_o 136b_n signify_v by_o the_o thousand_o year_n of_o christ_n reign_v with_o his_o saint_n 3_o 358_o b_o begin_v in_o this_o life_n and_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v perfect_v 3_o 331_o b_o it_o argue_v that_o we_o have_v a_o carnal_a generation_n two_o 214_o b_o the_o two_o instrument_n that_o god_n use_v to_o the_o same_o 2_o 233_o a_o there_o be_v a_o change_n therein_o though_o pighin_n deny_v it_o 2_o 222_o a_o the_o pelagian_o upbraid_v the_o catholic_n of_o foolishness_n as_o though_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o by_o regeneration_n sin_n be_v not_o blot_v out_o but_o only_o race_v 2_o 274b_n rejoice_v whether_o we_o sorrow_n and_o rejoice_v both_o at_o once_o 3_o 212_o b_o religion_n in_o case_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v no_o dally_v or_o dissemble_v 3_o 265_o a_o plato_n allow_v no_o innovation_n in_o thing_n belong_v thereto_o 1_n 99_o b_o what_o affection_n and_o love_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v to_o the_o same_o read_v that_o place_n 4_o 88_o ab_fw-la by_o what_o rule_n controversy_n therein_o be_v to_o be_v decide_v 4_o 49._o 50._o 51._o 52_o 53_o slander_v with_o tumult_n &_o sedition_n 4_o 319_o ab_fw-la why_o chrysostome_n call_v it_o philosophy_n 2_o 42●_n a_o whether_o matter_n thereof_o belong_v to_o civil_a magistrate_n 4_o 243_o b_o 244a_o whether_o in_o reform_v thereof_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v expect_v 4_o 242a_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o prince_n to_o determine_v thereof_o 4_o 246_o b_o 247_o ab_fw-la p._n martyr_n opinion_n touch_v contention_n about_o it_o 2_o 391_o a_o the_o jew_n and_o ancient_a sibyl_n be_v a_o testimony_n thereunto_o two_o 329ab_n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n word_n touch_v constancy_n in_o religion_n 2_o 316_o a_o whether_o the_o love_n of_o child_n be_v less_o to_o be_v esteem_v than_o it_o 3_o 184_o a_o whether_o it_o pertain_v unto_o man_n to_o decree_v concern_v religion_n 3_o 172_o b_o 173_o a_o what_o be_v the_o two_o chief_a point_n thereof_o 2_o 607_o b_o 608_o b_o what_o be_v old_a and_o what_o be_v new_a as_o also_o why_o newness_n in_o religion_n must_v be_v avoid_v 1_n 99_o a_o pliny_n a_o perpetual_a enemy_n thereof_o 1_n 85_o b_o 86_o a_o what_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o do_v in_o their_o jurisdiction_n both_o to_o their_o own_o subject_n and_o stranger_n concern_v it_o 2_o 324._o 325._o 326._o to_o lie_v in_o a_o case_n of_o religion_n be_v a_o most_o heinous_a sin_n 2_o 544_o a_o remembrance_n remembrance_n do_v not_o proper_o accord_v with_o god_n and_o why_o 1_n 109_o a_o remission_n whether_o remission_n be_v have_v of_o sin_n to_o come_v 4_o 108a_o it_o consist_v not_o in_o baptism_n 4_o 134b_n 135_o a_o offer_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 4_o 113_o a_o it_o be_v to_o be_v put_v as_o well_o in_o circumcision_n as_o in_o baptism_n 4_o 108_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v certain_a 3_o 226_o b_o it_o be_v promise_v without_o condition_n 3_o 87_o a_o what_o circumcision_n be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v it_o 4_o 108_o a_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v touch_v it_o 2_o 634_o b_o unto_o what_o trifle_n some_o vain_a man_n ascribe_v it_o 3_o 102_o b_o no_o where_o to_o be_v hope_v for_o but_o in_o the_o church_n 2_o 634_o b_o how_o often_o it_o be_v assure_v unto_o us._n two_o 635_o b_o whether_o it_o can_v be_v deserve_v 3_o 114_o a_o after_o it_o follow_v life_n 2_o 636_o b_o it_o be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n 3_o 586_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v get_v by_o charity_n 3_o 148_o a_o by_o what_o faith_n it_o be_v obtain_v 3_o 150_o a_o it_o go_v before_o repentance_n 3_o 203_o b_o 204_o a_o free_o without_o exaction_n of_o punishment_n 3_o 237_o b_o whether_o it_o depend_v of_o the_o sacrament_n 4_o 104_o a_o 107_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v have_v any_o other_o way_n than_o by_o faith_n 4_o 194_o b_o two_o similitude_n of_o augustine_n which_o prove_v that_o we_o can_v unpart_v the_o remission_n of_o original_a sin_n unto_o our_o child_n 2_o 243_o b_o of_o what_o sin_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n 3_o 206_o b_o 207_o a_o remiss_a of_o sin_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n a_o phrase_n of_o the_o ancient_n 4_o 216_o b_o 217_o a_o repent_v how_o god_n be_v say_v to_o repent_v he_o 4_o 234_o a_o 1_n 207_o a_o 208_o a_o 209_o ab_fw-la repentance_n whether_o repentance_n be_v a_o sacrament_n 3_o 210_o b_o 211._o 312_o a_o 208_o b_o what_o be_v require_v thereunto_o 3_o 113_o b_o 114_o a_o it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n fréewill_n 3_o 28_o a_o 43_o b_o 15_o b_o not_o in_o all_o alike_o 3_o 109_o ab_fw-la token_n thereof_o 3_o 235_o b_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 203_o b_o two_o cause_n of_o the_o tear_n thereof_o 3_o 246b_n two_o part_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 213_o ab_fw-la in_o what_o place_n of_o the_o mind_n it_o be_v place_v 3_o 204_o b_o private_a public_a and_o solemn_a 3_o 207_o b_o the_o chief_a mean_n whereby_o we_o be_v call_v to_o it_o 3_o 226_o a_o 227_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o revenge_a justice_n 3_o 208_o b_o remission_n of_o sin_n go_v before_o it_o 3_o 203_o b_o 204_o a_o how_o it_o be_v not_o deem_v to_o they_o that_o be_v condemn_v 4_o 252_o ab_fw-la tear_n be_v not_o always_o the_o token_n thereof_o 3_o 245b_n how_o that_o of_o the_o guilty_a may_v be_v provide_v for_o 4_o 250_o b_o it_o do_v not_o always_o change_v god_n judgement_n no_o not_o
sufficient_a to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a 2_o 355_o a_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o have_v a_o everlasting_a continuance_n 1_n 40_o a_o se._n secret_n we_o must_v reverence_v the_o secret_n of_o god_n and_o not_o carp_v at_o they_o example_n of_o cato_n 2_o 221_o a_o why_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o secret_n of_o salvation_n be_v hide_v from_o man_n furnish_v with_o art_n 1_n 3_o b_o sect_n diverse_a sect_n among_o the_o jew_n 3_o 336_o b_o 337_o a_o sect_n of_o schoolman_n diverse_a 4_o 50_o a_o security_n security_n define_v and_o whence_o it_o spring_v 3_o 68_o a_o two_o kind_n thereof_o and_o of_o their_o difference_n 3_o 67_o b_o a_o good_a and_o a_o bad_a 3_o 68_o b_o the_o effect_n thereof_o 3_o 88_o a_o 68_o a_o whereunto_o it_o be_v contrary_a 3_o 68_o a_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o impiety_n 3_o 6●_n a_o what_o be_v the_o true_a &_o laudable_a security_n 3_o 69_o b_o sedition_n sedition_n define_v 4_o 320_o a_o 322_o a_o how_o great_a a_o crime_n it_o be_v 4_o 322_o b_o 323_o a_o the_o kind_n thereof_o 4_o 320_o b_o the_o ground_n thereof_o 4_o 322_o b_o what_o noble_a thing_n it_o take_v away_o 4_o 320b_n 321_o a_o cause_n thereof_o 4_o 321_o b_o 322a_o christ_n and_o his_o faithful_a one_o charge_v therewith_o 4_o 319_o a_o the_o crymon_n of_o the_o word_n 4_o 320_o a_o whether_o all_o that_o contend_v therein_o must_v be_v accuse_v 4_o 323_o a_o the_o end_n thereof_o 4_o 322_o a_o those_o that_o strive_v against_o the_o magistrate_n be_v guilty_a thereof_o 4_o 323_o b_o severe_a punishment_n for_o it_o 4_o 322_o b_o 323_o a_o ¶_o look_v trouble_n selfelove_n selfelove_n a_o common_a disease_n and_o how_o it_o deceive_v man_n 1_o 144_o a_o sense_n of_o the_o sense_n compound_v and_o the_o sense_n divide_v 3_o 35_o ab_fw-la what_o affect_v do_v follow_v the_o sense_n of_o touch_v 2_o 405_o b_o two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v touch_v the_o affect_n that_o follow_v the_o sense_n of_o feel_v 2_o 406_o b_o the_o scripture_n do_v often_o time_n feign_v sense_n &_o motion_n unto_o thing_n without_o life_n 2_o 251_o b_o sense_n of_o the_o illusion_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o how_o many_o way_n they_o may_v be_v deceive_v 1_n 88_o b_o 89_o a_o 114_o ab_fw-la the_o power_n of_o understanding_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o they_o and_o the_o similitude_n that_o we_o contemplate_v 1_n 147_o ab_fw-la how_o they_o be_v destroy_v and_o preserve_v by_o their_o object_n 2_o 407_o a_o they_o may_v take_v pleasure_n though_o they_o have_v not_o be_v offend_v or_o remove_v from_o their_o natural_a state_n as_o how_o 1_n 137_o a_o of_o the_o mean_n whereby_o they_o work_v and_o how_o 1_n 137_o a_o they_o be_v the_o gross_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o by_o it_o we_o communicate_v with_o beast_n 1_n 134_o b_o from_o whence_o the_o pleasure_n of_o they_o spring_v as_o plato_n think_v 1_n 135_o a_o of_o what_o thing_n they_o do_v judge_v and_o not_o judge_v 1_n 117_o a_o the_o sense_n of_o touch_v and_o taste_v be_v very_o near_a one_o another_o 2_o 412_o a_o galens_n opinion_n of_o grief_n and_o pleasure_n in_o they_o all_o and_o how_o 1_n 136_o b_o 137_o a_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o papist_n say_v 1_o 114_o ab_fw-la the_o quickenesse_n of_o they_o at_o our_o resurrection_n 3_o 359_o b_o christ_n prove_v it_o by_o they_o 4_o 153_o b_o lie_v sense_n minister_v to_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o body_n 3_o 3●6_n b_o separation_n cause_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o popish_a church_n 4_o 94_o ab_fw-la 95_o a_o 68_o 69._o 86._o 87._o 88_o 89._o 69_o ab_fw-la it_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o 4_o 90b_fw-ge whether_o the_o lewd_a life_n of_o minister_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n 4_o 85_o b_o a_o separation_n even_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n between_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a 4_o 89_o a_o what_o kind_n of_o separation_n be_v a_o confess_v of_o the_o evangelicall_a truth_n 4_o 88_o a_o whether_o any_o man_n have_v authority_n of_o himself_o to_o use_v separation_n from_o his_o neighbour_n 4_o 63_o a_o of_o separation_n from_o god_n &_o whether_o excommunication_n be_v a_o token_n thereof_o 4_o 60_o a_o ¶_o look_v excommunication_n sepulcher_n watch_n at_o dead_a man_n sepulcher_n to_o receive_v oracle_n from_o they_o 1_n 73_o b_o ¶_o look_v grave_n seraphim_n of_o seraphim_n the_o name_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o 1_n 111_o b_o come_v fly_v unto_o esaie_n 1_n 113_o a_o ¶_o look_v cherubin_n &_o seraphin_n sermon_n how_o it_o come_v that_o at_o one_o very_a sermon_n part_n of_o the_o hearer_n believe_v and_o part_v not_o 3_o 141_o a_o sermon_n the_o diverse_a hear_n of_o sermon_n &_o that_o therein_o paul_n rule_n must_v be_v follow_v 1_n 22_o a_o of_o vain_a and_o trifle_a sermon_n 2_o 633_o a_o ¶_o look_v preach_v servant_n a_o servant_n define_v 4_o 316_o a_o the_o property_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o servant_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la servant_n how_o servant_n must_v be_v handle_v of_o their_o master_n 4_o 314_o b_o what_o the_o law_n of_o god_n decree_v for_o they_o in_o the_o jew_n time_n 4_o 316_o b_o how_o they_o be_v equal_a and_o unequal_a to_o their_o master_n 4_o 314_o b_o child_n and_o they_o compare_v 3_o 143._o whether_o we_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la 163_o a_o a_o difference_n between_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o world_n 3_o 276_o b_o what_o kind_n of_o servant_n the_o father_n under_o the_o law_n be_v 2_o 595_o b_o service_n what_o be_v say_v too_o and_o fro_o of_o the_o service_n in_o the_o church_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n 3_o 309_o b_o 310._o 311._o 2_o 317_o b_o 318_o a_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v it_o in_o the_o mothertoong_a 3_o 310_o b_o no_o strange_a tongue_n use_v therein_o of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a 3_o 311_o a_o of_o comeliness_n require_v therein_o 4_o 65_o b_o how_o defective_a we_o be_v therein_o be_v show_v by_o a_o proper_a analogy_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la solomon_n make_v a_o division_n thereof_o and_o of_o his_o punishment_n of_o like_a for_o like_v 2_o 324_o a_o how_o all_o creature_n do_v service_n unto_o the_o godly_a 2_o 251_o b_o 252_o a_o servitude_n servitude_n distinguish_v 4_o 316_o a_o 3_o 163_o a_o the_o original_a and_o cause_n thereof_o 4_o 314_o a_o from_o whence_o the_o name_n spring_v 4_o 313_o b_o voluntary_a &_o religious_a 4_o 315_o a_o ¶_o look_v bondage_n seven_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o put_v for_o any_o other_o number_n 2_o 237_o a_o it_o comprise_v all_o the_o former_a number_n 1_n 3a_o it_o betoken_v a_o complete_a number_n in_o scripture_n and_o how_o 2_o 362_o b_o it_o be_v mystical_a and_o it_o be_v a_o number_n wherewith_o god_n be_v delight_v &_o why_o 2_o 374_o b_o by_o it_o be_v express_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o 368_o a_o seven_o day_n why_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v name_v to_o have_v neither_o morning_n nor_o evening_n 2_o 375_o a_o of_o the_o sanctification_n thereof_o 2_o 374_o ab_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o thing_n god_n have_v give_v we_o by_o it_o 2_o 374_o b_o how_o god_n rest_v thereon_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v 2_o 374_o b_o ¶_o look_v sabbath_n day_n sh._n shadowe_n how_o the_o shadow_n accompany_v not_o the_o body_n always_o after_o one_o manner_n 1_n 142_o b_o 143_o a_o shame_n shame_n take_v sometime_o for_o frustration_n 3_o 82_o b_o in_o what_o thing_n the_o flesh_n reckon_v it_o 3_o 261_o ab_fw-la who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v put_v to_o shame_n or_o make_v ashamed_a 3_o 227_o ab_fw-la shamefastness_n shamefastness_n be_v no_o virtue_n &_o yet_o commend_v 2_o 412_o a_o of_o the_o excess_n and_o defect_n which_o make_v it_o commendable_a 2_o 412_o a_o sheep_n a_o distinction_n of_o sheep_n 3_o 281_o b_o shepherds_z watch_n of_o shepherd_n 3_o 256_o b_o their_o troublesome_a life_n describe_v 4_o 29_o b_o 30_o a_o shewbread_n the_o use_n and_o end_n of_o the_o shewbread_n 4_o 162_o ab_fw-la shrove_n tide_n the_o abuse_n that_o man_n use_v at_o shrove_n tide_n 3_o 255_o b_o si._n sibyl_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o sibyl_n and_o what_o authentical_a writer_n have_v think_v of_o they_o 1_n 21_o a_o the_o french_a sibyl_n do_v geld_v themselves_o 1_n 21_o b_o sicera_fw-la what_o kind_n of_o drink_n sicera_fw-la be_v 3_o 178_o b_o 179_o a_o sickness_n sickness_n of_o the_o mind_n 3_o 69_o a_o sight_n dishonest_a sight_n must_v be_v avoid_v and_o why_o 2_o 481_o b_o sign_n what_o a_o sign_n be_v and_o the_o same_o distinguish_v 4_o 97_o b_o a_o analogy_n must_v be_v keep_v between_o
and_o not_o join_v 115_o a_o whereby_o the_o same_o be_v wrought_v and_o not_o wrought_v 149_o b_o 150_o a_o wherein_o the_o true_a and_o sound_a respect_n thereof_o consist_v 97_o a_o 5_o b_o whereupon_o it_o depend_v and_o depend_v not_o 131_o a_o k._n key_n of_o the_o church_n and_o how_o they_o be_v mean_v 26_o a_o b_o when_o they_o be_v give_v unto_o peter_n 26_o b_o they_o be_v general_a thing_n and_o how_o 27_o a_o how_o every_o private_a man_n have_v they_o 27_o a_o knowledge_n distinguish_v according_a to_o sense_n reason_n and_o faith_n 105_o b_o that_o of_o god_n without_o integrity_n of_o life_n be_v hurtful_a 86_o a_o two_o kind_n thereof_o 159_o b_o of_o that_o which_o the_o minister_n be_v say_v to_o keep_v with_o their_o lip_n 29_o a_o b._n l._n labour_n with_o hand_n and_o what_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v therein_o 157_o b_o law_n of_o god_n though_o it_o be_v his_o will_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o every_o will_n of_o he_o 119_o b_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o must_v not_o be_v separate_v 165_o b_o why_o all_o man_n may_v not_o perform_v it_o since_o it_o be_v god_n reveal_v will_n 119_o a_o who_o be_v count_v doer_n thereof_o 166_o a_o contrariety_n seem_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o same_o and_o how_o 165_o a_o b_o a_o distinction_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n forbid_v therein_o 68_o b_o what_o the_o not_o regenerate_v can_v do_v in_o the_o same_o 102_o b_o the_o end_n and_o use_v thereof_o 103_o a_o how_o and_o whereby_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v 145_o a_o many_o thing_n command_v therein_o be_v keep_v before_o the_o same_o be_v give_v 147_o b_o the_o promise_n thereof_o not_o vain_a though_o the_o law_n itself_o can_v be_v fulfil_v of_o we_o 165_o b_o it_o require_v three_o perfection_n in_o our_o work_n 166_o a_o with_o what_o terror_n it_o be_v publish_v 163_o b_o why_o god_n give_v it_o in_o the_o desert_n or_o wilderness_n 164_o a_o the_o use_n of_o the_o same_o among_o the_o faithful_a 165_o b_o 166_o a_o what_o it_o require_v touch_v performance_n 102_o b_o how_o the_o moral_a and_o civil_a of_o the_o old_a people_n be_v abrogate_a 165_o b_o to_o go_v to_o law_n be_v permit_v to_o a_o christian_a 163_o a_o a_o lesson_n for_o such_o as_o be_v in_o suit_n 162_o b_o law_n of_o man_n and_o wherein_o the_o justice_n of_o they_o be_v contain_v 164_o b._n lay_v on_o of_o hand_n in_o make_v minister_n whereof_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v come_v 169_o a_o leven_n and_o why_o god_n refuse_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v offer_v he_o 169_o a_o liberty_n christian_n a_o case_n touch_v it_o to_o be_v maintain_v or_o violate_v 71_o b_o lie_v officious_a be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o charity_n 167_o b_o of_o the_o midwife_n of_o the_o hebrews_n and_o their_o lie_n 158_o a_o lie_v though_o officious_a aught_o to_o be_v avoid_v 150_o b_o life_n and_o how_o far_o forth_o we_o ought_v to_o loose_v it_o 68_o a_o we_o must_v lay_v it_o down_o for_o our_o brethren_n 74_o b_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o we_o must_v so_o do_v 75_o a_o argument_n or_o persuasion_n of_o good_a life_n 145_o a_o i'faith_o the_o instrument_n whereby_o we_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n 126_o b_o lift_v up_o of_o hand_n in_o prayer_n 162_o b_o light_n great_a in_o heaven_n and_o the_o end_n &_o use_v of_o they_o 144_o b_o whereof_o the_o original_a of_o they_o in_o church_n spring_v 170_o b_o love_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n 7_o a_o the_o inestimable_a fire_n of_o christ_n 7_o a_o m._n magistrate_n their_o charge_n in_o a_o plentiful_a year_n 157_o a_o touch_v oath_n 164_o b_o touch_v idle_a person_n 157_o b_o why_o they_o be_v institute_v 162_o a_o what_o be_v to_o be_v regard_v in_o the_o make_n of_o they_o 157_o a_o of_o their_o misusage_n 19_o a_o christian_n for_o safety_n of_o their_o life_n may_v use_v their_o help_n 148_o a_o what_o they_o must_v do_v if_o they_o will_v give_v a_o testimony_n of_o their_o innocence_n 155_o a_o a_o strong_a reason_n that_o god_n will_v have_v they_o 163_o a_o mankind_n soon_o increase_v in_o number_n 147_o a_o manna_n whereunto_o like_a and_o unlike_a 162_o a_o what_o we_o be_v to_o learn_v by_o that_o wherewith_o the_o israelite_n be_v feed_v 161_o b_o at_o what_o time_n it_o be_v command_v to_o be_v eat_v 162_o a_o manslaughter_n and_o why_o we_o must_v forbear_v it_o 148_o a_o marry_o with_o infidel_n be_v contempt_n of_o religion_n 155_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v marry_v a_o maid_n with_o who_o he_o have_v lie_v 142_o a_o 2._o marriage_n be_v not_o condemn_v in_o that_o god_n require_v of_o the_o israelite_n to_o abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n until_o the_o three_o day_n 163_o a_o what_o be_v determine_v touch_v such_o as_o be_v couple_v therein_o in_o flight_n in_o persecution_n 77_o a_o b_o who_o must_v not_o delay_v it_o under_o pretence_n of_o poverty_n 154_o b_o marriage_n that_o be_v not_o well_o knit_v and_o conclude_v 146_o a_o mass_n no_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n 132_o b_o 133_o a_o whence_o the_o name_n thereof_o be_v derive_v 135_o b_o 136_o a_o a_o application_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o same_o 134_o b_o no_o eucharistical_a or_o gratulatorie_a sacrifice_n 137_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n 132_o a_o what_o a_o holy_a thing_n it_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v 121_o a_o b_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n 5_o b_o whereof_o the_o elevation_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o same_o spring_v 170_o b_o the_o danger_n ensue_a upon_o go_v thereto_o 146_o a_o mass_n private_a not_o hear_v of_o among_o the_o father_n 134_o b_o when_o they_o begin_v 136_o b_o matrimony_n declare_v to_o be_v inseparable_a and_o how_o 45_o b_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v violate_v 167_o a_o why_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o mystery_n 145_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v good_a simple_o or_o in_o respect_n 167_o a_o what_o be_v not_o ratify_v though_o carnal_a copulation_n follow_v it_o 154_o a_o whether_o the_o lawful_a use_n thereof_o be_v a_o venial_a sin_n 167_o a_o why_o god_n will_v have_v it_o between_o such_o as_o be_v not_o far_o off_o in_o kindred_n 154_o a_o why_o it_o be_v commend_v and_o command_v 167_o a_o delay_v thereof_o shall_v be_v enjoin_v to_o none_o 156_o b_o the_o near_a conjunction_n of_o man_n and_o wife_n in_o it_o 82_o a_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o same_o and_o the_o use_n thereof_o 145_o a_o mediator_n none_o between_o god_n and_o man_n but_o one_o prove_v 91_o a_o christ_n be_v none_o unless_o he_o be_v also_o a_o man_n 134_o b_o 135_o a_o whether_o the_o anabaptist_n have_v the_o true_a one_o 130_o b_o 131_o b_o 132_o a_o meditation_n and_o in_o what_o thing_n it_o do_v consist_v 36_o a_o memory_n and_o why_o diverse_a writer_n do_v extol_v it_o 1_o a_o what_o thing_n must_v be_v commit_v thereunto_o and_o why_o 1_o a_o man_n and_o a_o distinction_n of_o their_o state_n 102_o a_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o same_o and_o how_o far_o forth_o it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v 136_o a_o b._n merit_n of_o congruity_n and_o condignity_n attribute_v to_o the_o will_n 106_o a_o messiah_n and_o touch_v the_o jew_n which_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v come_v 130_o b_o midwife_n of_o the_o hebrews_n and_o their_o lie_n 158_o a_o mind_n of_o man_n how_o it_o behave_v itself_o activelie_a &_o passivelie_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n 127_o a_o how_o it_o can_v attain_v unto_o supernatural_a thing_n 108_o a_o god_n use_v it_o as_o a_o instrument_n to_o perform_v his_o counsel_n 127_o a_o wherein_o the_o change_n thereof_o of_o evil_a to_o be_v make_v good_a do_v stand_v 127_o b_o minister_n when_o they_o may_v labour_v and_o what_o they_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o therein_o 157_o b_o whether_o in_o baptism_n regard_n be_v to_o be_v have_v of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n 137_o a_o b_o 138_o a_o of_o the_o custom_n to_o pray_v and_o prophesy_v at_o the_o make_n of_o they_o 153_o b_o why_o god_n give_v not_o to_o every_o one_o of_o his_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n 159_o a_o b_o controversy_n about_o their_o apparel_n 116_o b_o 122_o a_o 123_o a_o 115_o b_o 118_o a_o etc._n etc._n 121._o whether_o the_o surplis_n etc._n etc._n enjoin_v they_o to_o wear_v have_v original_a from_o the_o pope_n 119_o a_o not_o bind_v to_o work_v and_o labour_n with_o their_o hand_n and_o why_o 157_o b_o whether_o they_o may_v fly_v in_o persecution_n 77_o b_o god_n communicate_v with_o his_o the_o property_n of_o some_o of_o his_o action_n 150_o b_o how_o far_o forth_o slight_a in_o persecution_n